Addted table of content and links
[gender-roles-text-analysis.git] / 564-0.txt
1
2
3 THE MYSTERY OF EDWIN DROOD
4
5
6 [Picture: Rochester castle]
7
8
9
10
11 CHAPTER I—THE DAWN
12
13
14 An ancient English Cathedral Tower? How can the ancient English
15 Cathedral tower be here! The well-known massive gray square tower of its
16 old Cathedral? How can that be here! There is no spike of rusty iron in
17 the air, between the eye and it, from any point of the real prospect.
18 What is the spike that intervenes, and who has set it up? Maybe it is
19 set up by the Sultan’s orders for the impaling of a horde of Turkish
20 robbers, one by one. It is so, for cymbals clash, and the Sultan goes by
21 to his palace in long procession. Ten thousand scimitars flash in the
22 sunlight, and thrice ten thousand dancing-girls strew flowers. Then,
23 follow white elephants caparisoned in countless gorgeous colours, and
24 infinite in number and attendants. Still the Cathedral Tower rises in
25 the background, where it cannot be, and still no writhing figure is on
26 the grim spike. Stay! Is the spike so low a thing as the rusty spike on
27 the top of a post of an old bedstead that has tumbled all awry? Some
28 vague period of drowsy laughter must be devoted to the consideration of
29 this possibility.
30
31 Shaking from head to foot, the man whose scattered consciousness has thus
32 fantastically pieced itself together, at length rises, supports his
33 trembling frame upon his arms, and looks around. He is in the meanest
34 and closest of small rooms. Through the ragged window-curtain, the light
35 of early day steals in from a miserable court. He lies, dressed, across
36 a large unseemly bed, upon a bedstead that has indeed given way under the
37 weight upon it. Lying, also dressed and also across the bed, not
38 longwise, are a Chinaman, a Lascar, and a haggard woman. The two first
39 are in a sleep or stupor; the last is blowing at a kind of pipe, to
40 kindle it. And as she blows, and shading it with her lean hand,
41 concentrates its red spark of light, it serves in the dim morning as a
42 lamp to show him what he sees of her.
43
44 ‘Another?’ says this woman, in a querulous, rattling whisper. ‘Have
45 another?’
46
47 He looks about him, with his hand to his forehead.
48
49 ‘Ye’ve smoked as many as five since ye come in at midnight,’ the woman
50 goes on, as she chronically complains. ‘Poor me, poor me, my head is so
51 bad. Them two come in after ye. Ah, poor me, the business is slack, is
52 slack! Few Chinamen about the Docks, and fewer Lascars, and no ships
53 coming in, these say! Here’s another ready for ye, deary. Ye’ll
54 remember like a good soul, won’t ye, that the market price is dreffle
55 high just now? More nor three shillings and sixpence for a thimbleful!
56 And ye’ll remember that nobody but me (and Jack Chinaman t’other side the
57 court; but he can’t do it as well as me) has the true secret of mixing
58 it? Ye’ll pay up accordingly, deary, won’t ye?’
59
60 She blows at the pipe as she speaks, and, occasionally bubbling at it,
61 inhales much of its contents.
62
63 ‘O me, O me, my lungs is weak, my lungs is bad! It’s nearly ready for
64 ye, deary. Ah, poor me, poor me, my poor hand shakes like to drop off!
65 I see ye coming-to, and I ses to my poor self, “I’ll have another ready
66 for him, and he’ll bear in mind the market price of opium, and pay
67 according.” O my poor head! I makes my pipes of old penny ink-bottles,
68 ye see, deary—this is one—and I fits-in a mouthpiece, this way, and I
69 takes my mixter out of this thimble with this little horn spoon; and so I
70 fills, deary. Ah, my poor nerves! I got Heavens-hard drunk for sixteen
71 year afore I took to this; but this don’t hurt me, not to speak of. And
72 it takes away the hunger as well as wittles, deary.’
73
74 She hands him the nearly-emptied pipe, and sinks back, turning over on
75 her face.
76
77 He rises unsteadily from the bed, lays the pipe upon the hearth-stone,
78 draws back the ragged curtain, and looks with repugnance at his three
79 companions. He notices that the woman has opium-smoked herself into a
80 strange likeness of the Chinaman. His form of cheek, eye, and temple,
81 and his colour, are repeated in her. Said Chinaman convulsively wrestles
82 with one of his many Gods or Devils, perhaps, and snarls horribly. The
83 Lascar laughs and dribbles at the mouth. The hostess is still.
84
85 [Picture: In the Court]
86
87 ‘What visions can _she_ have?’ the waking man muses, as he turns her face
88 towards him, and stands looking down at it. ‘Visions of many butchers’
89 shops, and public-houses, and much credit? Of an increase of hideous
90 customers, and this horrible bedstead set upright again, and this
91 horrible court swept clean? What can she rise to, under any quantity of
92 opium, higher than that!—Eh?’
93
94 He bends down his ear, to listen to her mutterings.
95
96 ‘Unintelligible!’
97
98 As he watches the spasmodic shoots and darts that break out of her face
99 and limbs, like fitful lightning out of a dark sky, some contagion in
100 them seizes upon him: insomuch that he has to withdraw himself to a lean
101 arm-chair by the hearth—placed there, perhaps, for such emergencies—and
102 to sit in it, holding tight, until he has got the better of this unclean
103 spirit of imitation.
104
105 Then he comes back, pounces on the Chinaman, and seizing him with both
106 hands by the throat, turns him violently on the bed. The Chinaman
107 clutches the aggressive hands, resists, gasps, and protests.
108
109 ‘What do you say?’
110
111 A watchful pause.
112
113 ‘Unintelligible!’
114
115 Slowly loosening his grasp as he listens to the incoherent jargon with an
116 attentive frown, he turns to the Lascar and fairly drags him forth upon
117 the floor. As he falls, the Lascar starts into a half-risen attitude,
118 glares with his eyes, lashes about him fiercely with his arms, and draws
119 a phantom knife. It then becomes apparent that the woman has taken
120 possession of this knife, for safety’s sake; for, she too starting up,
121 and restraining and expostulating with him, the knife is visible in her
122 dress, not in his, when they drowsily drop back, side by side.
123
124 There has been chattering and clattering enough between them, but to no
125 purpose. When any distinct word has been flung into the air, it has had
126 no sense or sequence. Wherefore ‘unintelligible!’ is again the comment
127 of the watcher, made with some reassured nodding of his head, and a
128 gloomy smile. He then lays certain silver money on the table, finds his
129 hat, gropes his way down the broken stairs, gives a good morning to some
130 rat-ridden doorkeeper, in bed in a black hutch beneath the stairs, and
131 passes out.
132
133 * * * * *
134
135 That same afternoon, the massive gray square tower of an old Cathedral
136 rises before the sight of a jaded traveller. The bells are going for
137 daily vesper service, and he must needs attend it, one would say, from
138 his haste to reach the open Cathedral door. The choir are getting on
139 their sullied white robes, in a hurry, when he arrives among them, gets
140 on his own robe, and falls into the procession filing in to service.
141 Then, the Sacristan locks the iron-barred gates that divide the sanctuary
142 from the chancel, and all of the procession having scuttled into their
143 places, hide their faces; and then the intoned words, ‘WHEN THE WICKED
144 MAN—’ rise among groins of arches and beams of roof, awakening muttered
145 thunder.
146
147
148
149
150 CHAPTER II—A DEAN, AND A CHAPTER ALSO
151
152
153 Whosoever has observed that sedate and clerical bird, the rook, may
154 perhaps have noticed that when he wings his way homeward towards
155 nightfall, in a sedate and clerical company, two rooks will suddenly
156 detach themselves from the rest, will retrace their flight for some
157 distance, and will there poise and linger; conveying to mere men the
158 fancy that it is of some occult importance to the body politic, that this
159 artful couple should pretend to have renounced connection with it.
160
161 Similarly, service being over in the old Cathedral with the square tower,
162 and the choir scuffling out again, and divers venerable persons of
163 rook-like aspect dispersing, two of these latter retrace their steps, and
164 walk together in the echoing Close.
165
166 Not only is the day waning, but the year. The low sun is fiery and yet
167 cold behind the monastery ruin, and the Virginia creeper on the Cathedral
168 wall has showered half its deep-red leaves down on the pavement. There
169 has been rain this afternoon, and a wintry shudder goes among the little
170 pools on the cracked, uneven flag-stones, and through the giant elm-trees
171 as they shed a gust of tears. Their fallen leaves lie strewn thickly
172 about. Some of these leaves, in a timid rush, seek sanctuary within the
173 low arched Cathedral door; but two men coming out resist them, and cast
174 them forth again with their feet; this done, one of the two locks the
175 door with a goodly key, and the other flits away with a folio music-book.
176
177 ‘Mr. Jasper was that, Tope?’
178
179 ‘Yes, Mr. Dean.’
180
181 ‘He has stayed late.’
182
183 ‘Yes, Mr. Dean. I have stayed for him, your Reverence. He has been took
184 a little poorly.’
185
186 ‘Say “taken,” Tope—to the Dean,’ the younger rook interposes in a low
187 tone with this touch of correction, as who should say: ‘You may offer bad
188 grammar to the laity, or the humbler clergy, not to the Dean.’
189
190 Mr. Tope, Chief Verger and Showman, and accustomed to be high with
191 excursion parties, declines with a silent loftiness to perceive that any
192 suggestion has been tendered to him.
193
194 ‘And when and how has Mr. Jasper been taken—for, as Mr. Crisparkle has
195 remarked, it is better to say taken—taken—’ repeats the Dean; ‘when and
196 how has Mr. Jasper been Taken—’
197
198 ‘Taken, sir,’ Tope deferentially murmurs.
199
200 ‘—Poorly, Tope?’
201
202 ‘Why, sir, Mr. Jasper was that breathed—’
203
204 ‘I wouldn’t say “That breathed,” Tope,’ Mr. Crisparkle interposes with
205 the same touch as before. ‘Not English—to the Dean.’
206
207 ‘Breathed to that extent,’ the Dean (not unflattered by this indirect
208 homage) condescendingly remarks, ‘would be preferable.’
209
210 ‘Mr. Jasper’s breathing was so remarkably short’—thus discreetly does Mr.
211 Tope work his way round the sunken rock—‘when he came in, that it
212 distressed him mightily to get his notes out: which was perhaps the cause
213 of his having a kind of fit on him after a little. His memory grew
214 DAZED.’ Mr. Tope, with his eyes on the Reverend Mr. Crisparkle, shoots
215 this word out, as defying him to improve upon it: ‘and a dimness and
216 giddiness crept over him as strange as ever I saw: though he didn’t seem
217 to mind it particularly, himself. However, a little time and a little
218 water brought him out of his DAZE.’ Mr. Tope repeats the word and its
219 emphasis, with the air of saying: ‘As I _have_ made a success, I’ll make
220 it again.’
221
222 ‘And Mr. Jasper has gone home quite himself, has he?’ asked the Dean.
223
224 ‘Your Reverence, he has gone home quite himself. And I’m glad to see
225 he’s having his fire kindled up, for it’s chilly after the wet, and the
226 Cathedral had both a damp feel and a damp touch this afternoon, and he
227 was very shivery.’
228
229 They all three look towards an old stone gatehouse crossing the Close,
230 with an arched thoroughfare passing beneath it. Through its latticed
231 window, a fire shines out upon the fast-darkening scene, involving in
232 shadow the pendent masses of ivy and creeper covering the building’s
233 front. As the deep Cathedral-bell strikes the hour, a ripple of wind
234 goes through these at their distance, like a ripple of the solemn sound
235 that hums through tomb and tower, broken niche and defaced statue, in the
236 pile close at hand.
237
238 ‘Is Mr. Jasper’s nephew with him?’ the Dean asks.
239
240 ‘No, sir,’ replied the Verger, ‘but expected. There’s his own solitary
241 shadow betwixt his two windows—the one looking this way, and the one
242 looking down into the High Street—drawing his own curtains now.’
243
244 ‘Well, well,’ says the Dean, with a sprightly air of breaking up the
245 little conference, ‘I hope Mr. Jasper’s heart may not be too much set
246 upon his nephew. Our affections, however laudable, in this transitory
247 world, should never master us; we should guide them, guide them. I find
248 I am not disagreeably reminded of my dinner, by hearing my dinner-bell.
249 Perhaps, Mr. Crisparkle, you will, before going home, look in on Jasper?’
250
251 ‘Certainly, Mr. Dean. And tell him that you had the kindness to desire
252 to know how he was?’
253
254 ‘Ay; do so, do so. Certainly. Wished to know how he was. By all means.
255 Wished to know how he was.’
256
257 With a pleasant air of patronage, the Dean as nearly cocks his quaint hat
258 as a Dean in good spirits may, and directs his comely gaiters towards the
259 ruddy dining-room of the snug old red-brick house where he is at present,
260 ‘in residence’ with Mrs. Dean and Miss Dean.
261
262 Mr. Crisparkle, Minor Canon, fair and rosy, and perpetually pitching
263 himself head-foremost into all the deep running water in the surrounding
264 country; Mr. Crisparkle, Minor Canon, early riser, musical, classical,
265 cheerful, kind, good-natured, social, contented, and boy-like; Mr.
266 Crisparkle, Minor Canon and good man, lately ‘Coach’ upon the chief Pagan
267 high roads, but since promoted by a patron (grateful for a well-taught
268 son) to his present Christian beat; betakes himself to the gatehouse, on
269 his way home to his early tea.
270
271 ‘Sorry to hear from Tope that you have not been well, Jasper.’
272
273 ‘O, it was nothing, nothing!’
274
275 ‘You look a little worn.’
276
277 ‘Do I? O, I don’t think so. What is better, I don’t feel so. Tope has
278 made too much of it, I suspect. It’s his trade to make the most of
279 everything appertaining to the Cathedral, you know.’
280
281 ‘I may tell the Dean—I call expressly from the Dean—that you are all
282 right again?’
283
284 The reply, with a slight smile, is: ‘Certainly; with my respects and
285 thanks to the Dean.’
286
287 ‘I’m glad to hear that you expect young Drood.’
288
289 ‘I expect the dear fellow every moment.’
290
291 ‘Ah! He will do you more good than a doctor, Jasper.’
292
293 ‘More good than a dozen doctors. For I love him dearly, and I don’t love
294 doctors, or doctors’ stuff.’
295
296 Mr. Jasper is a dark man of some six-and-twenty, with thick, lustrous,
297 well-arranged black hair and whiskers. He looks older than he is, as
298 dark men often do. His voice is deep and good, his face and figure are
299 good, his manner is a little sombre. His room is a little sombre, and
300 may have had its influence in forming his manner. It is mostly in
301 shadow. Even when the sun shines brilliantly, it seldom touches the
302 grand piano in the recess, or the folio music-books on the stand, or the
303 book-shelves on the wall, or the unfinished picture of a blooming
304 schoolgirl hanging over the chimneypiece; her flowing brown hair tied
305 with a blue riband, and her beauty remarkable for a quite childish,
306 almost babyish, touch of saucy discontent, comically conscious of itself.
307 (There is not the least artistic merit in this picture, which is a mere
308 daub; but it is clear that the painter has made it humorously—one might
309 almost say, revengefully—like the original.)
310
311 ‘We shall miss you, Jasper, at the “Alternate Musical Wednesdays”
312 to-night; but no doubt you are best at home. Good-night. God bless you!
313 “Tell me, shep-herds, te-e-ell me; tell me-e-e, have you seen (have you
314 seen, have you seen, have you seen) my-y-y Flo-o-ora-a pass this way!”’
315 Melodiously good Minor Canon the Reverend Septimus Crisparkle thus
316 delivers himself, in musical rhythm, as he withdraws his amiable face
317 from the doorway and conveys it down-stairs.
318
319 Sounds of recognition and greeting pass between the Reverend Septimus and
320 somebody else, at the stair-foot. Mr. Jasper listens, starts from his
321 chair, and catches a young fellow in his arms, exclaiming:
322
323 ‘My dear Edwin!’
324
325 ‘My dear Jack! So glad to see you!’
326
327 ‘Get off your greatcoat, bright boy, and sit down here in your own
328 corner. Your feet are not wet? Pull your boots off. Do pull your boots
329 off.’
330
331 ‘My dear Jack, I am as dry as a bone. Don’t moddley-coddley, there’s a
332 good fellow. I like anything better than being moddley-coddleyed.’
333
334 With the check upon him of being unsympathetically restrained in a genial
335 outburst of enthusiasm, Mr. Jasper stands still, and looks on intently at
336 the young fellow, divesting himself of his outward coat, hat, gloves, and
337 so forth. Once for all, a look of intentness and intensity—a look of
338 hungry, exacting, watchful, and yet devoted affection—is always, now and
339 ever afterwards, on the Jasper face whenever the Jasper face is addressed
340 in this direction. And whenever it is so addressed, it is never, on this
341 occasion or on any other, dividedly addressed; it is always concentrated.
342
343 ‘Now I am right, and now I’ll take my corner, Jack. Any dinner, Jack?’
344
345 Mr. Jasper opens a door at the upper end of the room, and discloses a
346 small inner room pleasantly lighted and prepared, wherein a comely dame
347 is in the act of setting dishes on table.
348
349 ‘What a jolly old Jack it is!’ cries the young fellow, with a clap of his
350 hands. ‘Look here, Jack; tell me; whose birthday is it?’
351
352 ‘Not yours, I know,’ Mr. Jasper answers, pausing to consider.
353
354 ‘Not mine, you know? No; not mine, _I_ know! Pussy’s!’
355
356 Fixed as the look the young fellow meets, is, there is yet in it some
357 strange power of suddenly including the sketch over the chimneypiece.
358
359 ‘Pussy’s, Jack! We must drink Many happy returns to her. Come, uncle;
360 take your dutiful and sharp-set nephew in to dinner.’
361
362 As the boy (for he is little more) lays a hand on Jasper’s shoulder,
363 Jasper cordially and gaily lays a hand on _his_ shoulder, and so
364 Marseillaise-wise they go in to dinner.
365
366 ‘And, Lord! here’s Mrs. Tope!’ cries the boy. ‘Lovelier than ever!’
367
368 ‘Never you mind me, Master Edwin,’ retorts the Verger’s wife; ‘I can take
369 care of myself.’
370
371 ‘You can’t. You’re much too handsome. Give me a kiss because it’s
372 Pussy’s birthday.’
373
374 ‘I’d Pussy you, young man, if I was Pussy, as you call her,’ Mrs. Tope
375 blushingly retorts, after being saluted. ‘Your uncle’s too much wrapt up
376 in you, that’s where it is. He makes so much of you, that it’s my
377 opinion you think you’ve only to call your Pussys by the dozen, to make
378 ’em come.’
379
380 ‘You forget, Mrs. Tope,’ Mr. Jasper interposes, taking his place at the
381 table with a genial smile, ‘and so do you, Ned, that Uncle and Nephew are
382 words prohibited here by common consent and express agreement. For what
383 we are going to receive His holy name be praised!’
384
385 ‘Done like the Dean! Witness, Edwin Drood! Please to carve, Jack, for I
386 can’t.’
387
388 This sally ushers in the dinner. Little to the present purpose, or to
389 any purpose, is said, while it is in course of being disposed of. At
390 length the cloth is drawn, and a dish of walnuts and a decanter of
391 rich-coloured sherry are placed upon the table.
392
393 ‘I say! Tell me, Jack,’ the young fellow then flows on: ‘do you really
394 and truly feel as if the mention of our relationship divided us at all?
395 _I_ don’t.’
396
397 ‘Uncles as a rule, Ned, are so much older than their nephews,’ is the
398 reply, ‘that I have that feeling instinctively.’
399
400 ‘As a rule! Ah, may-be! But what is a difference in age of half-a-dozen
401 years or so? And some uncles, in large families, are even younger than
402 their nephews. By George, I wish it was the case with us!’
403
404 ‘Why?’
405
406 ‘Because if it was, I’d take the lead with you, Jack, and be as wise as
407 Begone, dull Care! that turned a young man gray, and Begone, dull Care!
408 that turned an old man to clay.—Halloa, Jack! Don’t drink.’
409
410 ‘Why not?’
411
412 ‘Asks why not, on Pussy’s birthday, and no Happy returns proposed!
413 Pussy, Jack, and many of ’em! Happy returns, I mean.’
414
415 Laying an affectionate and laughing touch on the boy’s extended hand, as
416 if it were at once his giddy head and his light heart, Mr. Jasper drinks
417 the toast in silence.
418
419 ‘Hip, hip, hip, and nine times nine, and one to finish with, and all
420 that, understood. Hooray, hooray, hooray!—And now, Jack, let’s have a
421 little talk about Pussy. Two pairs of nut-crackers? Pass me one, and
422 take the other.’ Crack. ‘How’s Pussy getting on Jack?’
423
424 ‘With her music? Fairly.’
425
426 ‘What a dreadfully conscientious fellow you are, Jack! But _I_ know,
427 Lord bless you! Inattentive, isn’t she?’
428
429 ‘She can learn anything, if she will.’
430
431 ‘_If_ she will! Egad, that’s it. But if she won’t?’
432
433 Crack!—on Mr. Jasper’s part.
434
435 ‘How’s she looking, Jack?’
436
437 Mr. Jasper’s concentrated face again includes the portrait as he returns:
438 ‘Very like your sketch indeed.’
439
440 ‘I _am_ a little proud of it,’ says the young fellow, glancing up at the
441 sketch with complacency, and then shutting one eye, and taking a
442 corrected prospect of it over a level bridge of nut-crackers in the air:
443 ‘Not badly hit off from memory. But I ought to have caught that
444 expression pretty well, for I have seen it often enough.’
445
446 Crack!—on Edwin Drood’s part.
447
448 Crack!—on Mr. Jasper’s part.
449
450 ‘In point of fact,’ the former resumes, after some silent dipping among
451 his fragments of walnut with an air of pique, ‘I see it whenever I go to
452 see Pussy. If I don’t find it on her face, I leave it there.—You know I
453 do, Miss Scornful Pert. Booh!’ With a twirl of the nut-crackers at the
454 portrait.
455
456 Crack! crack! crack. Slowly, on Mr. Jasper’s part.
457
458 Crack. Sharply on the part of Edwin Drood.
459
460 Silence on both sides.
461
462 ‘Have you lost your tongue, Jack?’
463
464 ‘Have you found yours, Ned?’
465
466 ‘No, but really;—isn’t it, you know, after all—’
467
468 Mr. Jasper lifts his dark eyebrows inquiringly.
469
470 ‘Isn’t it unsatisfactory to be cut off from choice in such a matter?
471 There, Jack! I tell you! If I could choose, I would choose Pussy from
472 all the pretty girls in the world.’
473
474 ‘But you have not got to choose.’
475
476 ‘That’s what I complain of. My dead and gone father and Pussy’s dead and
477 gone father must needs marry us together by anticipation. Why the—Devil,
478 I was going to say, if it had been respectful to their memory—couldn’t
479 they leave us alone?’
480
481 ‘Tut, tut, dear boy,’ Mr. Jasper remonstrates, in a tone of gentle
482 deprecation.
483
484 ‘Tut, tut? Yes, Jack, it’s all very well for _you_. _You_ can take it
485 easily. _Your_ life is not laid down to scale, and lined and dotted out
486 for you, like a surveyor’s plan. _You_ have no uncomfortable suspicion
487 that you are forced upon anybody, nor has anybody an uncomfortable
488 suspicion that she is forced upon you, or that you are forced upon her.
489 _You_ can choose for yourself. Life, for _you_, is a plum with the
490 natural bloom on; it hasn’t been over-carefully wiped off for _you_—’
491
492 ‘Don’t stop, dear fellow. Go on.’
493
494 ‘Can I anyhow have hurt your feelings, Jack?’
495
496 ‘How can you have hurt my feelings?’
497
498 ‘Good Heaven, Jack, you look frightfully ill! There’s a strange film
499 come over your eyes.’
500
501 Mr. Jasper, with a forced smile, stretches out his right hand, as if at
502 once to disarm apprehension and gain time to get better. After a while
503 he says faintly:
504
505 ‘I have been taking opium for a pain—an agony—that sometimes overcomes
506 me. The effects of the medicine steal over me like a blight or a cloud,
507 and pass. You see them in the act of passing; they will be gone
508 directly. Look away from me. They will go all the sooner.’
509
510 With a scared face the younger man complies by casting his eyes downward
511 at the ashes on the hearth. Not relaxing his own gaze on the fire, but
512 rather strengthening it with a fierce, firm grip upon his elbow-chair,
513 the elder sits for a few moments rigid, and then, with thick drops
514 standing on his forehead, and a sharp catch of his breath, becomes as he
515 was before. On his so subsiding in his chair, his nephew gently and
516 assiduously tends him while he quite recovers. When Jasper is restored,
517 he lays a tender hand upon his nephew’s shoulder, and, in a tone of voice
518 less troubled than the purport of his words—indeed with something of
519 raillery or banter in it—thus addresses him:
520
521 ‘There is said to be a hidden skeleton in every house; but you thought
522 there was none in mine, dear Ned.’
523
524 ‘Upon my life, Jack, I did think so. However, when I come to consider
525 that even in Pussy’s house—if she had one—and in mine—if I had one—’
526
527 ‘You were going to say (but that I interrupted you in spite of myself)
528 what a quiet life mine is. No whirl and uproar around me, no distracting
529 commerce or calculation, no risk, no change of place, myself devoted to
530 the art I pursue, my business my pleasure.’
531
532 ‘I really was going to say something of the kind, Jack; but you see, you,
533 speaking of yourself, almost necessarily leave out much that I should
534 have put in. For instance: I should have put in the foreground your
535 being so much respected as Lay Precentor, or Lay Clerk, or whatever you
536 call it, of this Cathedral; your enjoying the reputation of having done
537 such wonders with the choir; your choosing your society, and holding such
538 an independent position in this queer old place; your gift of teaching
539 (why, even Pussy, who don’t like being taught, says there never was such
540 a Master as you are!), and your connexion.’
541
542 ‘Yes; I saw what you were tending to. I hate it.’
543
544 ‘Hate it, Jack?’ (Much bewildered.)
545
546 ‘I hate it. The cramped monotony of my existence grinds me away by the
547 grain. How does our service sound to you?’
548
549 ‘Beautiful! Quite celestial!’
550
551 ‘It often sounds to me quite devilish. I am so weary of it. The echoes
552 of my own voice among the arches seem to mock me with my daily drudging
553 round. No wretched monk who droned his life away in that gloomy place,
554 before me, can have been more tired of it than I am. He could take for
555 relief (and did take) to carving demons out of the stalls and seats and
556 desks. What shall I do? Must I take to carving them out of my heart?’
557
558 ‘I thought you had so exactly found your niche in life, Jack,’ Edwin
559 Drood returns, astonished, bending forward in his chair to lay a
560 sympathetic hand on Jasper’s knee, and looking at him with an anxious
561 face.
562
563 ‘I know you thought so. They all think so.’
564
565 ‘Well, I suppose they do,’ says Edwin, meditating aloud. ‘Pussy thinks
566 so.’
567
568 ‘When did she tell you that?’
569
570 ‘The last time I was here. You remember when. Three months ago.’
571
572 ‘How did she phrase it?’
573
574 ‘O, she only said that she had become your pupil, and that you were made
575 for your vocation.’
576
577 The younger man glances at the portrait. The elder sees it in him.
578
579 ‘Anyhow, my dear Ned,’ Jasper resumes, as he shakes his head with a grave
580 cheerfulness, ‘I must subdue myself to my vocation: which is much the
581 same thing outwardly. It’s too late to find another now. This is a
582 confidence between us.’
583
584 ‘It shall be sacredly preserved, Jack.’
585
586 ‘I have reposed it in you, because—’
587
588 ‘I feel it, I assure you. Because we are fast friends, and because you
589 love and trust me, as I love and trust you. Both hands, Jack.’
590
591 As each stands looking into the other’s eyes, and as the uncle holds the
592 nephew’s hands, the uncle thus proceeds:
593
594 ‘You know now, don’t you, that even a poor monotonous chorister and
595 grinder of music—in his niche—may be troubled with some stray sort of
596 ambition, aspiration, restlessness, dissatisfaction, what shall we call
597 it?’
598
599 ‘Yes, dear Jack.’
600
601 ‘And you will remember?’
602
603 ‘My dear Jack, I only ask you, am I likely to forget what you have said
604 with so much feeling?’
605
606 ‘Take it as a warning, then.’
607
608 In the act of having his hands released, and of moving a step back, Edwin
609 pauses for an instant to consider the application of these last words.
610 The instant over, he says, sensibly touched:
611
612 ‘I am afraid I am but a shallow, surface kind of fellow, Jack, and that
613 my headpiece is none of the best. But I needn’t say I am young; and
614 perhaps I shall not grow worse as I grow older. At all events, I hope I
615 have something impressible within me, which feels—deeply feels—the
616 disinterestedness of your painfully laying your inner self bare, as a
617 warning to me.’
618
619 Mr. Jasper’s steadiness of face and figure becomes so marvellous that his
620 breathing seems to have stopped.
621
622 ‘I couldn’t fail to notice, Jack, that it cost you a great effort, and
623 that you were very much moved, and very unlike your usual self. Of
624 course I knew that you were extremely fond of me, but I really was not
625 prepared for your, as I may say, sacrificing yourself to me in that way.’
626
627 Mr. Jasper, becoming a breathing man again without the smallest stage of
628 transition between the two extreme states, lifts his shoulders, laughs,
629 and waves his right arm.
630
631 ‘No; don’t put the sentiment away, Jack; please don’t; for I am very much
632 in earnest. I have no doubt that that unhealthy state of mind which you
633 have so powerfully described is attended with some real suffering, and is
634 hard to bear. But let me reassure you, Jack, as to the chances of its
635 overcoming me. I don’t think I am in the way of it. In some few months
636 less than another year, you know, I shall carry Pussy off from school as
637 Mrs. Edwin Drood. I shall then go engineering into the East, and Pussy
638 with me. And although we have our little tiffs now, arising out of a
639 certain unavoidable flatness that attends our love-making, owing to its
640 end being all settled beforehand, still I have no doubt of our getting on
641 capitally then, when it’s done and can’t be helped. In short, Jack, to
642 go back to the old song I was freely quoting at dinner (and who knows old
643 songs better than you?), my wife shall dance, and I will sing, so merrily
644 pass the day. Of Pussy’s being beautiful there cannot be a doubt;—and
645 when you are good besides, Little Miss Impudence,’ once more
646 apostrophising the portrait, ‘I’ll burn your comic likeness, and paint
647 your music-master another.’
648
649 Mr. Jasper, with his hand to his chin, and with an expression of musing
650 benevolence on his face, has attentively watched every animated look and
651 gesture attending the delivery of these words. He remains in that
652 attitude after they, are spoken, as if in a kind of fascination attendant
653 on his strong interest in the youthful spirit that he loves so well.
654 Then he says with a quiet smile:
655
656 ‘You won’t be warned, then?’
657
658 ‘No, Jack.’
659
660 ‘You can’t be warned, then?’
661
662 ‘No, Jack, not by you. Besides that I don’t really consider myself in
663 danger, I don’t like your putting yourself in that position.’
664
665 ‘Shall we go and walk in the churchyard?’
666
667 ‘By all means. You won’t mind my slipping out of it for half a moment to
668 the Nuns’ House, and leaving a parcel there? Only gloves for Pussy; as
669 many pairs of gloves as she is years old to-day. Rather poetical, Jack?’
670
671 Mr. Jasper, still in the same attitude, murmurs: ‘“Nothing half so sweet
672 in life,” Ned!’
673
674 ‘Here’s the parcel in my greatcoat-pocket. They must be presented
675 to-night, or the poetry is gone. It’s against regulations for me to call
676 at night, but not to leave a packet. I am ready, Jack!’
677
678 Mr. Jasper dissolves his attitude, and they go out together.
679
680
681
682
683 CHAPTER III—THE NUNS’ HOUSE
684
685
686 For sufficient reasons, which this narrative will itself unfold as it
687 advances, a fictitious name must be bestowed upon the old Cathedral town.
688 Let it stand in these pages as Cloisterham. It was once possibly known
689 to the Druids by another name, and certainly to the Romans by another,
690 and to the Saxons by another, and to the Normans by another; and a name
691 more or less in the course of many centuries can be of little moment to
692 its dusty chronicles.
693
694 An ancient city, Cloisterham, and no meet dwelling-place for any one with
695 hankerings after the noisy world. A monotonous, silent city, deriving an
696 earthy flavour throughout from its Cathedral crypt, and so abounding in
697 vestiges of monastic graves, that the Cloisterham children grow small
698 salad in the dust of abbots and abbesses, and make dirt-pies of nuns and
699 friars; while every ploughman in its outlying fields renders to once
700 puissant Lord Treasurers, Archbishops, Bishops, and such-like, the
701 attention which the Ogre in the story-book desired to render to his
702 unbidden visitor, and grinds their bones to make his bread.
703
704 A drowsy city, Cloisterham, whose inhabitants seem to suppose, with an
705 inconsistency more strange than rare, that all its changes lie behind it,
706 and that there are no more to come. A queer moral to derive from
707 antiquity, yet older than any traceable antiquity. So silent are the
708 streets of Cloisterham (though prone to echo on the smallest
709 provocation), that of a summer-day the sunblinds of its shops scarce dare
710 to flap in the south wind; while the sun-browned tramps, who pass along
711 and stare, quicken their limp a little, that they may the sooner get
712 beyond the confines of its oppressive respectability. This is a feat not
713 difficult of achievement, seeing that the streets of Cloisterham city are
714 little more than one narrow street by which you get into it and get out
715 of it: the rest being mostly disappointing yards with pumps in them and
716 no thoroughfare—exception made of the Cathedral-close, and a paved Quaker
717 settlement, in colour and general confirmation very like a Quakeress’s
718 bonnet, up in a shady corner.
719
720 In a word, a city of another and a bygone time is Cloisterham, with its
721 hoarse Cathedral-bell, its hoarse rooks hovering about the Cathedral
722 tower, its hoarser and less distinct rooks in the stalls far beneath.
723 Fragments of old wall, saint’s chapel, chapter-house, convent and
724 monastery, have got incongruously or obstructively built into many of its
725 houses and gardens, much as kindred jumbled notions have become
726 incorporated into many of its citizens’ minds. All things in it are of
727 the past. Even its single pawnbroker takes in no pledges, nor has he for
728 a long time, but offers vainly an unredeemed stock for sale, of which the
729 costlier articles are dim and pale old watches apparently in a slow
730 perspiration, tarnished sugar-tongs with ineffectual legs, and odd
731 volumes of dismal books. The most abundant and the most agreeable
732 evidences of progressing life in Cloisterham are the evidences of
733 vegetable life in many gardens; even its drooping and despondent little
734 theatre has its poor strip of garden, receiving the foul fiend, when he
735 ducks from its stage into the infernal regions, among scarlet-beans or
736 oyster-shells, according to the season of the year.
737
738 In the midst of Cloisterham stands the Nuns’ House: a venerable brick
739 edifice, whose present appellation is doubtless derived from the legend
740 of its conventual uses. On the trim gate enclosing its old courtyard is
741 a resplendent brass plate flashing forth the legend: ‘Seminary for Young
742 Ladies. Miss Twinkleton.’ The house-front is so old and worn, and the
743 brass plate is so shining and staring, that the general result has
744 reminded imaginative strangers of a battered old beau with a large modern
745 eye-glass stuck in his blind eye.
746
747 Whether the nuns of yore, being of a submissive rather than a
748 stiff-necked generation, habitually bent their contemplative heads to
749 avoid collision with the beams in the low ceilings of the many chambers
750 of their House; whether they sat in its long low windows telling their
751 beads for their mortification, instead of making necklaces of them for
752 their adornment; whether they were ever walled up alive in odd angles and
753 jutting gables of the building for having some ineradicable leaven of
754 busy mother Nature in them which has kept the fermenting world alive ever
755 since; these may be matters of interest to its haunting ghosts (if any),
756 but constitute no item in Miss Twinkleton’s half-yearly accounts. They
757 are neither of Miss Twinkleton’s inclusive regulars, nor of her extras.
758 The lady who undertakes the poetical department of the establishment at
759 so much (or so little) a quarter has no pieces in her list of recitals
760 bearing on such unprofitable questions.
761
762 As, in some cases of drunkenness, and in others of animal magnetism,
763 there are two states of consciousness which never clash, but each of
764 which pursues its separate course as though it were continuous instead of
765 broken (thus, if I hide my watch when I am drunk, I must be drunk again
766 before I can remember where), so Miss Twinkleton has two distinct and
767 separate phases of being. Every night, the moment the young ladies have
768 retired to rest, does Miss Twinkleton smarten up her curls a little,
769 brighten up her eyes a little, and become a sprightlier Miss Twinkleton
770 than the young ladies have ever seen. Every night, at the same hour,
771 does Miss Twinkleton resume the topics of the previous night,
772 comprehending the tenderer scandal of Cloisterham, of which she has no
773 knowledge whatever by day, and references to a certain season at
774 Tunbridge Wells (airily called by Miss Twinkleton in this state of her
775 existence ‘The Wells’), notably the season wherein a certain finished
776 gentleman (compassionately called by Miss Twinkleton, in this stage of
777 her existence, ‘Foolish Mr. Porters’) revealed a homage of the heart,
778 whereof Miss Twinkleton, in her scholastic state of existence, is as
779 ignorant as a granite pillar. Miss Twinkleton’s companion in both states
780 of existence, and equally adaptable to either, is one Mrs. Tisher: a
781 deferential widow with a weak back, a chronic sigh, and a suppressed
782 voice, who looks after the young ladies’ wardrobes, and leads them to
783 infer that she has seen better days. Perhaps this is the reason why it
784 is an article of faith with the servants, handed down from race to race,
785 that the departed Tisher was a hairdresser.
786
787 The pet pupil of the Nuns’ House is Miss Rosa Bud, of course called
788 Rosebud; wonderfully pretty, wonderfully childish, wonderfully whimsical.
789 An awkward interest (awkward because romantic) attaches to Miss Bud in
790 the minds of the young ladies, on account of its being known to them that
791 a husband has been chosen for her by will and bequest, and that her
792 guardian is bound down to bestow her on that husband when he comes of
793 age. Miss Twinkleton, in her seminarial state of existence, has combated
794 the romantic aspect of this destiny by affecting to shake her head over
795 it behind Miss Bud’s dimpled shoulders, and to brood on the unhappy lot
796 of that doomed little victim. But with no better effect—possibly some
797 unfelt touch of foolish Mr. Porters has undermined the endeavour—than to
798 evoke from the young ladies an unanimous bedchamber cry of ‘O, what a
799 pretending old thing Miss Twinkleton is, my dear!’
800
801 The Nuns’ House is never in such a state of flutter as when this allotted
802 husband calls to see little Rosebud. (It is unanimously understood by
803 the young ladies that he is lawfully entitled to this privilege, and that
804 if Miss Twinkleton disputed it, she would be instantly taken up and
805 transported.) When his ring at the gate-bell is expected, or takes
806 place, every young lady who can, under any pretence, look out of window,
807 looks out of window; while every young lady who is ‘practising,’
808 practises out of time; and the French class becomes so demoralised that
809 the mark goes round as briskly as the bottle at a convivial party in the
810 last century.
811
812 On the afternoon of the day next after the dinner of two at the
813 gatehouse, the bell is rung with the usual fluttering results.
814
815 ‘Mr. Edwin Drood to see Miss Rosa.’
816
817 This is the announcement of the parlour-maid in chief. Miss Twinkleton,
818 with an exemplary air of melancholy on her, turns to the sacrifice, and
819 says, ‘You may go down, my dear.’ Miss Bud goes down, followed by all
820 eyes.
821
822 Mr. Edwin Drood is waiting in Miss Twinkleton’s own parlour: a dainty
823 room, with nothing more directly scholastic in it than a terrestrial and
824 a celestial globe. These expressive machines imply (to parents and
825 guardians) that even when Miss Twinkleton retires into the bosom of
826 privacy, duty may at any moment compel her to become a sort of Wandering
827 Jewess, scouring the earth and soaring through the skies in search of
828 knowledge for her pupils.
829
830 The last new maid, who has never seen the young gentleman Miss Rosa is
831 engaged to, and who is making his acquaintance between the hinges of the
832 open door, left open for the purpose, stumbles guiltily down the kitchen
833 stairs, as a charming little apparition, with its face concealed by a
834 little silk apron thrown over its head, glides into the parlour.
835
836 ‘O! _it is_ so ridiculous!’ says the apparition, stopping and shrinking.
837 ‘Don’t, Eddy!’
838
839 ‘Don’t what, Rosa?’
840
841 ‘Don’t come any nearer, please. It _is_ so absurd.’
842
843 ‘What is absurd, Rosa?’
844
845 ‘The whole thing is. It _is_ so absurd to be an engaged orphan and it
846 _is_ so absurd to have the girls and the servants scuttling about after
847 one, like mice in the wainscot; and it _is_ so absurd to be called upon!’
848
849 The apparition appears to have a thumb in the corner of its mouth while
850 making this complaint.
851
852 ‘You give me an affectionate reception, Pussy, I must say.’
853
854 ‘Well, I will in a minute, Eddy, but I can’t just yet. How are you?’
855 (very shortly.)
856
857 ‘I am unable to reply that I am much the better for seeing you, Pussy,
858 inasmuch as I see nothing of you.’
859
860 This second remonstrance brings a dark, bright, pouting eye out from a
861 corner of the apron; but it swiftly becomes invisible again, as the
862 apparition exclaims: ‘O good gracious! you have had half your hair cut
863 off!’
864
865 ‘I should have done better to have had my head cut off, I think,’ says
866 Edwin, rumpling the hair in question, with a fierce glance at the
867 looking-glass, and giving an impatient stamp. ‘Shall I go?’
868
869 ‘No; you needn’t go just yet, Eddy. The girls would all be asking
870 questions why you went.’
871
872 ‘Once for all, Rosa, will you uncover that ridiculous little head of
873 yours and give me a welcome?’
874
875 The apron is pulled off the childish head, as its wearer replies: ‘You’re
876 very welcome, Eddy. There! I’m sure that’s nice. Shake hands. No, I
877 can’t kiss you, because I’ve got an acidulated drop in my mouth.’
878
879 ‘Are you at all glad to see me, Pussy?’
880
881 ‘O, yes, I’m dreadfully glad.—Go and sit down.—Miss Twinkleton.’
882
883 It is the custom of that excellent lady when these visits occur, to
884 appear every three minutes, either in her own person or in that of Mrs.
885 Tisher, and lay an offering on the shrine of Propriety by affecting to
886 look for some desiderated article. On the present occasion Miss
887 Twinkleton, gracefully gliding in and out, says in passing: ‘How do you
888 do, Mr. Drood? Very glad indeed to have the pleasure. Pray excuse me.
889 Tweezers. Thank you!’
890
891 ‘I got the gloves last evening, Eddy, and I like them very much. They
892 are beauties.’
893
894 ‘Well, that’s something,’ the affianced replies, half grumbling. ‘The
895 smallest encouragement thankfully received. And how did you pass your
896 birthday, Pussy?’
897
898 ‘Delightfully! Everybody gave me a present. And we had a feast. And we
899 had a ball at night.’
900
901 ‘A feast and a ball, eh? These occasions seem to go off tolerably well
902 without me, Pussy.’
903
904 ‘De-lightfully!’ cries Rosa, in a quite spontaneous manner, and without
905 the least pretence of reserve.
906
907 ‘Hah! And what was the feast?’
908
909 ‘Tarts, oranges, jellies, and shrimps.’
910
911 ‘Any partners at the ball?’
912
913 ‘We danced with one another, of course, sir. But some of the girls made
914 game to be their brothers. It _was_ so droll!’
915
916 ‘Did anybody make game to be—’
917
918 ‘To be you? O dear yes!’ cries Rosa, laughing with great enjoyment.
919 ‘That was the first thing done.’
920
921 ‘I hope she did it pretty well,’ says Edwin rather doubtfully.
922
923 ‘O, it was excellent!—I wouldn’t dance with you, you know.’
924
925 Edwin scarcely seems to see the force of this; begs to know if he may
926 take the liberty to ask why?
927
928 ‘Because I was so tired of you,’ returns Rosa. But she quickly adds, and
929 pleadingly too, seeing displeasure in his face: ‘Dear Eddy, you were just
930 as tired of me, you know.’
931
932 ‘Did I say so, Rosa?’
933
934 ‘Say so! Do you ever say so? No, you only showed it. O, she did it so
935 well!’ cries Rosa, in a sudden ecstasy with her counterfeit betrothed.
936
937 ‘It strikes me that she must be a devilish impudent girl,’ says Edwin
938 Drood. ‘And so, Pussy, you have passed your last birthday in this old
939 house.’
940
941 ‘Ah, yes!’ Rosa clasps her hands, looks down with a sigh, and shakes her
942 head.
943
944 ‘You seem to be sorry, Rosa.’
945
946 ‘I am sorry for the poor old place. Somehow, I feel as if it would miss
947 me, when I am gone so far away, so young.’
948
949 ‘Perhaps we had better stop short, Rosa?’
950
951 She looks up at him with a swift bright look; next moment shakes her
952 head, sighs, and looks down again.
953
954 ‘That is to say, is it, Pussy, that we are both resigned?’
955
956 She nods her head again, and after a short silence, quaintly bursts out
957 with: ‘You know we must be married, and married from here, Eddy, or the
958 poor girls will be so dreadfully disappointed!’
959
960 For the moment there is more of compassion, both for her and for himself,
961 in her affianced husband’s face, than there is of love. He checks the
962 look, and asks: ‘Shall I take you out for a walk, Rosa dear?’
963
964 Rosa dear does not seem at all clear on this point, until her face, which
965 has been comically reflective, brightens. ‘O, yes, Eddy; let us go for a
966 walk! And I tell you what we’ll do. You shall pretend that you are
967 engaged to somebody else, and I’ll pretend that I am not engaged to
968 anybody, and then we shan’t quarrel.’
969
970 ‘Do you think that will prevent our falling out, Rosa?’
971
972 ‘I know it will. Hush! Pretend to look out of window—Mrs. Tisher!’
973
974 Through a fortuitous concourse of accidents, the matronly Tisher heaves
975 in sight, says, in rustling through the room like the legendary ghost of
976 a dowager in silken skirts: ‘I hope I see Mr. Drood well; though I
977 needn’t ask, if I may judge from his complexion. I trust I disturb no
978 one; but there _was_ a paper-knife—O, thank you, I am sure!’ and
979 disappears with her prize.
980
981 ‘One other thing you must do, Eddy, to oblige me,’ says Rosebud. ‘The
982 moment we get into the street, you must put me outside, and keep close to
983 the house yourself—squeeze and graze yourself against it.’
984
985 ‘By all means, Rosa, if you wish it. Might I ask why?’
986
987 ‘O! because I don’t want the girls to see you.’
988
989 ‘It’s a fine day; but would you like me to carry an umbrella up?’
990
991 ‘Don’t be foolish, sir. You haven’t got polished leather boots on,’
992 pouting, with one shoulder raised.
993
994 ‘Perhaps that might escape the notice of the girls, even if they did see
995 me,’ remarks Edwin, looking down at his boots with a sudden distaste for
996 them.
997
998 ‘Nothing escapes their notice, sir. And then I know what would happen.
999 Some of them would begin reflecting on me by saying (for _they_ are free)
1000 that they never will on any account engage themselves to lovers without
1001 polished leather boots. Hark! Miss Twinkleton. I’ll ask for leave.’
1002
1003 That discreet lady being indeed heard without, inquiring of nobody in a
1004 blandly conversational tone as she advances: ‘Eh? Indeed! Are you quite
1005 sure you saw my mother-of-pearl button-holder on the work-table in my
1006 room?’ is at once solicited for walking leave, and graciously accords it.
1007 And soon the young couple go out of the Nuns’ House, taking all
1008 precautions against the discovery of the so vitally defective boots of
1009 Mr. Edwin Drood: precautions, let us hope, effective for the peace of
1010 Mrs. Edwin Drood that is to be.
1011
1012 ‘Which way shall we take, Rosa?’
1013
1014 Rosa replies: ‘I want to go to the Lumps-of-Delight shop.’
1015
1016 ‘To the—?’
1017
1018 ‘A Turkish sweetmeat, sir. My gracious me, don’t you understand
1019 anything? Call yourself an Engineer, and not know _that_?’
1020
1021 ‘Why, how should I know it, Rosa?’
1022
1023 ‘Because I am very fond of them. But O! I forgot what we are to pretend.
1024 No, you needn’t know anything about them; never mind.’
1025
1026 So he is gloomily borne off to the Lumps-of-Delight shop, where Rosa
1027 makes her purchase, and, after offering some to him (which he rather
1028 indignantly declines), begins to partake of it with great zest:
1029 previously taking off and rolling up a pair of little pink gloves, like
1030 rose-leaves, and occasionally putting her little pink fingers to her rosy
1031 lips, to cleanse them from the Dust of Delight that comes off the Lumps.
1032
1033 ‘Now, be a good-tempered Eddy, and pretend. And so you are engaged?’
1034
1035 ‘And so I am engaged.’
1036
1037 ‘Is she nice?’
1038
1039 ‘Charming.’
1040
1041 ‘Tall?’
1042
1043 ‘Immensely tall!’ Rosa being short.
1044
1045 ‘Must be gawky, I should think,’ is Rosa’s quiet commentary.
1046
1047 ‘I beg your pardon; not at all,’ contradiction rising in him.
1048
1049 ‘What is termed a fine woman; a splendid woman.’
1050
1051 ‘Big nose, no doubt,’ is the quiet commentary again.
1052
1053 ‘Not a little one, certainly,’ is the quick reply, (Rosa’s being a little
1054 one.)
1055
1056 ‘Long pale nose, with a red knob in the middle. I know the sort of
1057 nose,’ says Rosa, with a satisfied nod, and tranquilly enjoying the
1058 Lumps.
1059
1060 ‘You _don’t_ know the sort of nose, Rosa,’ with some warmth; ‘because
1061 it’s nothing of the kind.’
1062
1063 ‘Not a pale nose, Eddy?’
1064
1065 ‘No.’ Determined not to assent.
1066
1067 ‘A red nose? O! I don’t like red noses. However; to be sure she can
1068 always powder it.’
1069
1070 ‘She would scorn to powder it,’ says Edwin, becoming heated.
1071
1072 ‘Would she? What a stupid thing she must be! Is she stupid in
1073 everything?’
1074
1075 ‘No; in nothing.’
1076
1077 After a pause, in which the whimsically wicked face has not been
1078 unobservant of him, Rosa says:
1079
1080 ‘And this most sensible of creatures likes the idea of being carried off
1081 to Egypt; does she, Eddy?’
1082
1083 ‘Yes. She takes a sensible interest in triumphs of engineering skill:
1084 especially when they are to change the whole condition of an undeveloped
1085 country.’
1086
1087 ‘Lor!’ says Rosa, shrugging her shoulders, with a little laugh of wonder.
1088
1089 ‘Do you object,’ Edwin inquires, with a majestic turn of his eyes
1090 downward upon the fairy figure: ‘do you object, Rosa, to her feeling that
1091 interest?’
1092
1093 ‘Object? my dear Eddy! But really, doesn’t she hate boilers and things?’
1094
1095 ‘I can answer for her not being so idiotic as to hate Boilers,’ he
1096 returns with angry emphasis; ‘though I cannot answer for her views about
1097 Things; really not understanding what Things are meant.’
1098
1099 ‘But don’t she hate Arabs, and Turks, and Fellahs, and people?’
1100
1101 ‘Certainly not.’ Very firmly.
1102
1103 ‘At least she _must_ hate the Pyramids? Come, Eddy?’
1104
1105 ‘Why should she be such a little—tall, I mean—goose, as to hate the
1106 Pyramids, Rosa?’
1107
1108 ‘Ah! you should hear Miss Twinkleton,’ often nodding her head, and much
1109 enjoying the Lumps, ‘bore about them, and then you wouldn’t ask.
1110 Tiresome old burying-grounds! Isises, and Ibises, and Cheopses, and
1111 Pharaohses; who cares about them? And then there was Belzoni, or
1112 somebody, dragged out by the legs, half-choked with bats and dust. All
1113 the girls say: Serve him right, and hope it hurt him, and wish he had
1114 been quite choked.’
1115
1116 The two youthful figures, side by side, but not now arm-in-arm, wander
1117 discontentedly about the old Close; and each sometimes stops and slowly
1118 imprints a deeper footstep in the fallen leaves.
1119
1120 ‘Well!’ says Edwin, after a lengthy silence. ‘According to custom. We
1121 can’t get on, Rosa.’
1122
1123 Rosa tosses her head, and says she don’t want to get on.
1124
1125 ‘That’s a pretty sentiment, Rosa, considering.’
1126
1127 ‘Considering what?’
1128
1129 ‘If I say what, you’ll go wrong again.’
1130
1131 ‘_You’ll_ go wrong, you mean, Eddy. Don’t be ungenerous.’
1132
1133 ‘Ungenerous! I like that!’
1134
1135 ‘Then I _don’t_ like that, and so I tell you plainly,’ Rosa pouts.
1136
1137 ‘Now, Rosa, I put it to you. Who disparaged my profession, my
1138 destination—’
1139
1140 ‘You are not going to be buried in the Pyramids, I hope?’ she interrupts,
1141 arching her delicate eyebrows. ‘You never said you were. If you are,
1142 why haven’t you mentioned it to me? I can’t find out your plans by
1143 instinct.’
1144
1145 ‘Now, Rosa, you know very well what I mean, my dear.’
1146
1147 ‘Well then, why did you begin with your detestable red-nosed giantesses?
1148 And she would, she would, she would, she would, she WOULD powder it!’
1149 cries Rosa, in a little burst of comical contradictory spleen.
1150
1151 ‘Somehow or other, I never can come right in these discussions,’ says
1152 Edwin, sighing and becoming resigned.
1153
1154 ‘How is it possible, sir, that you ever can come right when you’re always
1155 wrong? And as to Belzoni, I suppose he’s dead;—I’m sure I hope he is—and
1156 how can his legs or his chokes concern you?’
1157
1158 ‘It is nearly time for your return, Rosa. We have not had a very happy
1159 walk, have we?’
1160
1161 ‘A happy walk? A detestably unhappy walk, sir. If I go up-stairs the
1162 moment I get in and cry till I can’t take my dancing lesson, you are
1163 responsible, mind!’
1164
1165 ‘Let us be friends, Rosa.’
1166
1167 ‘Ah!’ cries Rosa, shaking her head and bursting into real tears, ‘I wish
1168 we _could_ be friends! It’s because we can’t be friends, that we try one
1169 another so. I am a young little thing, Eddy, to have an old heartache;
1170 but I really, really have, sometimes. Don’t be angry. I know you have
1171 one yourself too often. We should both of us have done better, if What
1172 is to be had been left What might have been. I am quite a little serious
1173 thing now, and not teasing you. Let each of us forbear, this one time,
1174 on our own account, and on the other’s!’
1175
1176 Disarmed by this glimpse of a woman’s nature in the spoilt child, though
1177 for an instant disposed to resent it as seeming to involve the enforced
1178 infliction of himself upon her, Edwin Drood stands watching her as she
1179 childishly cries and sobs, with both hands to the handkerchief at her
1180 eyes, and then—she becoming more composed, and indeed beginning in her
1181 young inconstancy to laugh at herself for having been so moved—leads her
1182 to a seat hard by, under the elm-trees.
1183
1184 [Picture: Under the trees]
1185
1186 ‘One clear word of understanding, Pussy dear. I am not clever out of my
1187 own line—now I come to think of it, I don’t know that I am particularly
1188 clever in it—but I want to do right. There is not—there may be—I really
1189 don’t see my way to what I want to say, but I must say it before we
1190 part—there is not any other young—’
1191
1192 ‘O no, Eddy! It’s generous of you to ask me; but no, no, no!’
1193
1194 They have come very near to the Cathedral windows, and at this moment the
1195 organ and the choir sound out sublimely. As they sit listening to the
1196 solemn swell, the confidence of last night rises in young Edwin Drood’s
1197 mind, and he thinks how unlike this music is to that discordance.
1198
1199 ‘I fancy I can distinguish Jack’s voice,’ is his remark in a low tone in
1200 connection with the train of thought.
1201
1202 ‘Take me back at once, please,’ urges his Affianced, quickly laying her
1203 light hand upon his wrist. ‘They will all be coming out directly; let us
1204 get away. O, what a resounding chord! But don’t let us stop to listen
1205 to it; let us get away!’
1206
1207 Her hurry is over as soon as they have passed out of the Close. They go
1208 arm-in-arm now, gravely and deliberately enough, along the old
1209 High-street, to the Nuns’ House. At the gate, the street being within
1210 sight empty, Edwin bends down his face to Rosebud’s.
1211
1212 She remonstrates, laughing, and is a childish schoolgirl again.
1213
1214 ‘Eddy, no! I’m too sticky to be kissed. But give me your hand, and I’ll
1215 blow a kiss into that.’
1216
1217 He does so. She breathes a light breath into it and asks, retaining it
1218 and looking into it:—
1219
1220 ‘Now say, what do you see?’
1221
1222 ‘See, Rosa?’
1223
1224 ‘Why, I thought you Egyptian boys could look into a hand and see all
1225 sorts of phantoms. Can’t you see a happy Future?’
1226
1227 For certain, neither of them sees a happy Present, as the gate opens and
1228 closes, and one goes in, and the other goes away.
1229
1230
1231
1232
1233 CHAPTER IV—MR. SAPSEA
1234
1235
1236 Accepting the Jackass as the type of self-sufficient stupidity and
1237 conceit—a custom, perhaps, like some few other customs, more conventional
1238 than fair—then the purest jackass in Cloisterham is Mr. Thomas Sapsea,
1239 Auctioneer.
1240
1241 Mr. Sapsea ‘dresses at’ the Dean; has been bowed to for the Dean, in
1242 mistake; has even been spoken to in the street as My Lord, under the
1243 impression that he was the Bishop come down unexpectedly, without his
1244 chaplain. Mr. Sapsea is very proud of this, and of his voice, and of his
1245 style. He has even (in selling landed property) tried the experiment of
1246 slightly intoning in his pulpit, to make himself more like what he takes
1247 to be the genuine ecclesiastical article. So, in ending a Sale by Public
1248 Auction, Mr. Sapsea finishes off with an air of bestowing a benediction
1249 on the assembled brokers, which leaves the real Dean—a modest and worthy
1250 gentleman—far behind.
1251
1252 Mr. Sapsea has many admirers; indeed, the proposition is carried by a
1253 large local majority, even including non-believers in his wisdom, that he
1254 is a credit to Cloisterham. He possesses the great qualities of being
1255 portentous and dull, and of having a roll in his speech, and another roll
1256 in his gait; not to mention a certain gravely flowing action with his
1257 hands, as if he were presently going to Confirm the individual with whom
1258 he holds discourse. Much nearer sixty years of age than fifty, with a
1259 flowing outline of stomach, and horizontal creases in his waistcoat;
1260 reputed to be rich; voting at elections in the strictly respectable
1261 interest; morally satisfied that nothing but he himself has grown since
1262 he was a baby; how can dunder-headed Mr. Sapsea be otherwise than a
1263 credit to Cloisterham, and society?
1264
1265 Mr. Sapsea’s premises are in the High-street, over against the Nuns’
1266 House. They are of about the period of the Nuns’ House, irregularly
1267 modernised here and there, as steadily deteriorating generations found,
1268 more and more, that they preferred air and light to Fever and the Plague.
1269 Over the doorway is a wooden effigy, about half life-size, representing
1270 Mr. Sapsea’s father, in a curly wig and toga, in the act of selling. The
1271 chastity of the idea, and the natural appearance of the little finger,
1272 hammer, and pulpit, have been much admired.
1273
1274 Mr. Sapsea sits in his dull ground-floor sitting-room, giving first on
1275 his paved back yard; and then on his railed-off garden. Mr. Sapsea has a
1276 bottle of port wine on a table before the fire—the fire is an early
1277 luxury, but pleasant on the cool, chilly autumn evening—and is
1278 characteristically attended by his portrait, his eight-day clock, and his
1279 weather-glass. Characteristically, because he would uphold himself
1280 against mankind, his weather-glass against weather, and his clock against
1281 time.
1282
1283 By Mr. Sapsea’s side on the table are a writing-desk and writing
1284 materials. Glancing at a scrap of manuscript, Mr. Sapsea reads it to
1285 himself with a lofty air, and then, slowly pacing the room with his
1286 thumbs in the arm-holes of his waistcoat, repeats it from memory: so
1287 internally, though with much dignity, that the word ‘Ethelinda’ is alone
1288 audible.
1289
1290 There are three clean wineglasses in a tray on the table. His
1291 serving-maid entering, and announcing ‘Mr. Jasper is come, sir,’ Mr.
1292 Sapsea waves ‘Admit him,’ and draws two wineglasses from the rank, as
1293 being claimed.
1294
1295 ‘Glad to see you, sir. I congratulate myself on having the honour of
1296 receiving you here for the first time.’ Mr. Sapsea does the honours of
1297 his house in this wise.
1298
1299 ‘You are very good. The honour is mine and the self-congratulation is
1300 mine.’
1301
1302 ‘You are pleased to say so, sir. But I do assure you that it is a
1303 satisfaction to me to receive you in my humble home. And that is what I
1304 would not say to everybody.’ Ineffable loftiness on Mr. Sapsea’s part
1305 accompanies these words, as leaving the sentence to be understood: ‘You
1306 will not easily believe that your society can be a satisfaction to a man
1307 like myself; nevertheless, it is.’
1308
1309 ‘I have for some time desired to know you, Mr. Sapsea.’
1310
1311 ‘And I, sir, have long known you by reputation as a man of taste. Let me
1312 fill your glass. I will give you, sir,’ says Mr. Sapsea, filling his
1313 own:
1314
1315 ‘When the French come over,
1316 May we meet them at Dover!’
1317
1318 This was a patriotic toast in Mr. Sapsea’s infancy, and he is therefore
1319 fully convinced of its being appropriate to any subsequent era.
1320
1321 ‘You can scarcely be ignorant, Mr. Sapsea,’ observes Jasper, watching the
1322 auctioneer with a smile as the latter stretches out his legs before the
1323 fire, ‘that you know the world.’
1324
1325 ‘Well, sir,’ is the chuckling reply, ‘I think I know something of it;
1326 something of it.’
1327
1328 ‘Your reputation for that knowledge has always interested and surprised
1329 me, and made me wish to know you. For Cloisterham is a little place.
1330 Cooped up in it myself, I know nothing beyond it, and feel it to be a
1331 very little place.’
1332
1333 ‘If I have not gone to foreign countries, young man,’ Mr. Sapsea begins,
1334 and then stops:—‘You will excuse me calling you young man, Mr. Jasper?
1335 You are much my junior.’
1336
1337 ‘By all means.’
1338
1339 ‘If I have not gone to foreign countries, young man, foreign countries
1340 have come to me. They have come to me in the way of business, and I have
1341 improved upon my opportunities. Put it that I take an inventory, or make
1342 a catalogue. I see a French clock. I never saw him before, in my life,
1343 but I instantly lay my finger on him and say “Paris!” I see some cups
1344 and saucers of Chinese make, equally strangers to me personally: I put my
1345 finger on them, then and there, and I say “Pekin, Nankin, and Canton.”
1346 It is the same with Japan, with Egypt, and with bamboo and sandalwood
1347 from the East Indies; I put my finger on them all. I have put my finger
1348 on the North Pole before now, and said “Spear of Esquimaux make, for half
1349 a pint of pale sherry!”’
1350
1351 ‘Really? A very remarkable way, Mr. Sapsea, of acquiring a knowledge of
1352 men and things.’
1353
1354 ‘I mention it, sir,’ Mr. Sapsea rejoins, with unspeakable complacency,
1355 ‘because, as I say, it don’t do to boast of what you are; but show how
1356 you came to be it, and then you prove it.’
1357
1358 ‘Most interesting. We were to speak of the late Mrs. Sapsea.’
1359
1360 ‘We were, sir.’ Mr. Sapsea fills both glasses, and takes the decanter
1361 into safe keeping again. ‘Before I consult your opinion as a man of
1362 taste on this little trifle’—holding it up—‘which is _but_ a trifle, and
1363 still has required some thought, sir, some little fever of the brow, I
1364 ought perhaps to describe the character of the late Mrs. Sapsea, now dead
1365 three quarters of a year.’
1366
1367 Mr. Jasper, in the act of yawning behind his wineglass, puts down that
1368 screen and calls up a look of interest. It is a little impaired in its
1369 expressiveness by his having a shut-up gape still to dispose of, with
1370 watering eyes.
1371
1372 ‘Half a dozen years ago, or so,’ Mr. Sapsea proceeds, ‘when I had
1373 enlarged my mind up to—I will not say to what it now is, for that might
1374 seem to aim at too much, but up to the pitch of wanting another mind to
1375 be absorbed in it—I cast my eye about me for a nuptial partner. Because,
1376 as I say, it is not good for man to be alone.’
1377
1378 Mr. Jasper appears to commit this original idea to memory.
1379
1380 ‘Miss Brobity at that time kept, I will not call it the rival
1381 establishment to the establishment at the Nuns’ House opposite, but I
1382 will call it the other parallel establishment down town. The world did
1383 have it that she showed a passion for attending my sales, when they took
1384 place on half holidays, or in vacation time. The world did put it about,
1385 that she admired my style. The world did notice that as time flowed by,
1386 my style became traceable in the dictation-exercises of Miss Brobity’s
1387 pupils. Young man, a whisper even sprang up in obscure malignity, that
1388 one ignorant and besotted Churl (a parent) so committed himself as to
1389 object to it by name. But I do not believe this. For is it likely that
1390 any human creature in his right senses would so lay himself open to be
1391 pointed at, by what I call the finger of scorn?’
1392
1393 Mr. Jasper shakes his head. Not in the least likely. Mr. Sapsea, in a
1394 grandiloquent state of absence of mind, seems to refill his visitor’s
1395 glass, which is full already; and does really refill his own, which is
1396 empty.
1397
1398 ‘Miss Brobity’s Being, young man, was deeply imbued with homage to Mind.
1399 She revered Mind, when launched, or, as I say, precipitated, on an
1400 extensive knowledge of the world. When I made my proposal, she did me
1401 the honour to be so overshadowed with a species of Awe, as to be able to
1402 articulate only the two words, “O Thou!” meaning myself. Her limpid blue
1403 eyes were fixed upon me, her semi-transparent hands were clasped
1404 together, pallor overspread her aquiline features, and, though encouraged
1405 to proceed, she never did proceed a word further. I disposed of the
1406 parallel establishment by private contract, and we became as nearly one
1407 as could be expected under the circumstances. But she never could, and
1408 she never did, find a phrase satisfactory to her perhaps-too-favourable
1409 estimate of my intellect. To the very last (feeble action of liver), she
1410 addressed me in the same unfinished terms.’
1411
1412 Mr. Jasper has closed his eyes as the auctioneer has deepened his voice.
1413 He now abruptly opens them, and says, in unison with the deepened voice
1414 ‘Ah!’—rather as if stopping himself on the extreme verge of adding—‘men!’
1415
1416 ‘I have been since,’ says Mr. Sapsea, with his legs stretched out, and
1417 solemnly enjoying himself with the wine and the fire, ‘what you behold
1418 me; I have been since a solitary mourner; I have been since, as I say,
1419 wasting my evening conversation on the desert air. I will not say that I
1420 have reproached myself; but there have been times when I have asked
1421 myself the question: What if her husband had been nearer on a level with
1422 her? If she had not had to look up quite so high, what might the
1423 stimulating action have been upon the liver?’
1424
1425 Mr. Jasper says, with an appearance of having fallen into dreadfully low
1426 spirits, that he ‘supposes it was to be.’
1427
1428 ‘We can only suppose so, sir,’ Mr. Sapsea coincides. ‘As I say, Man
1429 proposes, Heaven disposes. It may or may not be putting the same thought
1430 in another form; but that is the way I put it.’
1431
1432 Mr. Jasper murmurs assent.
1433
1434 ‘And now, Mr. Jasper,’ resumes the auctioneer, producing his scrap of
1435 manuscript, ‘Mrs. Sapsea’s monument having had full time to settle and
1436 dry, let me take your opinion, as a man of taste, on the inscription I
1437 have (as I before remarked, not without some little fever of the brow)
1438 drawn out for it. Take it in your own hand. The setting out of the
1439 lines requires to be followed with the eye, as well as the contents with
1440 the mind.’
1441
1442 Mr. Jasper complying, sees and reads as follows:
1443
1444 ETHELINDA,
1445 Reverential Wife of
1446 MR. THOMAS SAPSEA,
1447 AUCTIONEER, VALUER, ESTATE AGENT, &c.,
1448 OF THIS CITY.
1449 Whose Knowledge of the World,
1450 Though somewhat extensive,
1451 Never brought him acquainted with
1452 A SPIRIT
1453 More capable of
1454 LOOKING UP TO HIM.
1455 STRANGER, PAUSE
1456 And ask thyself the Question,
1457 CANST THOU DO LIKEWISE?
1458 If Not,
1459 WITH A BLUSH RETIRE.
1460
1461 Mr. Sapsea having risen and stationed himself with his back to the fire,
1462 for the purpose of observing the effect of these lines on the countenance
1463 of a man of taste, consequently has his face towards the door, when his
1464 serving-maid, again appearing, announces, ‘Durdles is come, sir!’ He
1465 promptly draws forth and fills the third wineglass, as being now claimed,
1466 and replies, ‘Show Durdles in.’
1467
1468 ‘Admirable!’ quoth Mr. Jasper, handing back the paper.
1469
1470 ‘You approve, sir?’
1471
1472 ‘Impossible not to approve. Striking, characteristic, and complete.’
1473
1474 The auctioneer inclines his head, as one accepting his due and giving a
1475 receipt; and invites the entering Durdles to take off that glass of wine
1476 (handing the same), for it will warm him.
1477
1478 Durdles is a stonemason; chiefly in the gravestone, tomb, and monument
1479 way, and wholly of their colour from head to foot. No man is better
1480 known in Cloisterham. He is the chartered libertine of the place. Fame
1481 trumpets him a wonderful workman—which, for aught that anybody knows, he
1482 may be (as he never works); and a wonderful sot—which everybody knows he
1483 is. With the Cathedral crypt he is better acquainted than any living
1484 authority; it may even be than any dead one. It is said that the
1485 intimacy of this acquaintance began in his habitually resorting to that
1486 secret place, to lock-out the Cloisterham boy-populace, and sleep off
1487 fumes of liquor: he having ready access to the Cathedral, as contractor
1488 for rough repairs. Be this as it may, he does know much about it, and,
1489 in the demolition of impedimental fragments of wall, buttress, and
1490 pavement, has seen strange sights. He often speaks of himself in the
1491 third person; perhaps, being a little misty as to his own identity, when
1492 he narrates; perhaps impartially adopting the Cloisterham nomenclature in
1493 reference to a character of acknowledged distinction. Thus he will say,
1494 touching his strange sights: ‘Durdles come upon the old chap,’ in
1495 reference to a buried magnate of ancient time and high degree, ‘by
1496 striking right into the coffin with his pick. The old chap gave Durdles
1497 a look with his open eyes, as much as to say, “Is your name Durdles?
1498 Why, my man, I’ve been waiting for you a devil of a time!” And then he
1499 turned to powder.’ With a two-foot rule always in his pocket, and a
1500 mason’s hammer all but always in his hand, Durdles goes continually
1501 sounding and tapping all about and about the Cathedral; and whenever he
1502 says to Tope: ‘Tope, here’s another old ’un in here!’ Tope announces it
1503 to the Dean as an established discovery.
1504
1505 In a suit of coarse flannel with horn buttons, a yellow neckerchief with
1506 draggled ends, an old hat more russet-coloured than black, and laced
1507 boots of the hue of his stony calling, Durdles leads a hazy, gipsy sort
1508 of life, carrying his dinner about with him in a small bundle, and
1509 sitting on all manner of tombstones to dine. This dinner of Durdles’s
1510 has become quite a Cloisterham institution: not only because of his never
1511 appearing in public without it, but because of its having been, on
1512 certain renowned occasions, taken into custody along with Durdles (as
1513 drunk and incapable), and exhibited before the Bench of justices at the
1514 townhall. These occasions, however, have been few and far apart: Durdles
1515 being as seldom drunk as sober. For the rest, he is an old bachelor, and
1516 he lives in a little antiquated hole of a house that was never finished:
1517 supposed to be built, so far, of stones stolen from the city wall. To
1518 this abode there is an approach, ankle-deep in stone chips, resembling a
1519 petrified grove of tombstones, urns, draperies, and broken columns, in
1520 all stages of sculpture. Herein two journeymen incessantly chip, while
1521 other two journeymen, who face each other, incessantly saw stone; dipping
1522 as regularly in and out of their sheltering sentry-boxes, as if they were
1523 mechanical figures emblematical of Time and Death.
1524
1525 To Durdles, when he had consumed his glass of port, Mr. Sapsea intrusts
1526 that precious effort of his Muse. Durdles unfeelingly takes out his
1527 two-foot rule, and measures the lines calmly, alloying them with
1528 stone-grit.
1529
1530 ‘This is for the monument, is it, Mr. Sapsea?’
1531
1532 ‘The Inscription. Yes.’ Mr. Sapsea waits for its effect on a common
1533 mind.
1534
1535 ‘It’ll come in to a eighth of a inch,’ says Durdles. ‘Your servant, Mr.
1536 Jasper. Hope I see you well.’
1537
1538 ‘How are you Durdles?’
1539
1540 ‘I’ve got a touch of the Tombatism on me, Mr. Jasper, but that I must
1541 expect.’
1542
1543 ‘You mean the Rheumatism,’ says Sapsea, in a sharp tone. (He is nettled
1544 by having his composition so mechanically received.)
1545
1546 ‘No, I don’t. I mean, Mr. Sapsea, the Tombatism. It’s another sort from
1547 Rheumatism. Mr. Jasper knows what Durdles means. You get among them
1548 Tombs afore it’s well light on a winter morning, and keep on, as the
1549 Catechism says, a-walking in the same all the days of your life, and
1550 _you’ll_ know what Durdles means.’
1551
1552 ‘It is a bitter cold place,’ Mr. Jasper assents, with an antipathetic
1553 shiver.
1554
1555 ‘And if it’s bitter cold for you, up in the chancel, with a lot of live
1556 breath smoking out about you, what the bitterness is to Durdles, down in
1557 the crypt among the earthy damps there, and the dead breath of the old
1558 ’uns,’ returns that individual, ‘Durdles leaves you to judge.—Is this to
1559 be put in hand at once, Mr. Sapsea?’
1560
1561 Mr. Sapsea, with an Author’s anxiety to rush into publication, replies
1562 that it cannot be out of hand too soon.
1563
1564 ‘You had better let me have the key then,’ says Durdles.
1565
1566 ‘Why, man, it is not to be put inside the monument!’
1567
1568 ‘Durdles knows where it’s to be put, Mr. Sapsea; no man better. Ask ’ere
1569 a man in Cloisterham whether Durdles knows his work.’
1570
1571 Mr. Sapsea rises, takes a key from a drawer, unlocks an iron safe let
1572 into the wall, and takes from it another key.
1573
1574 ‘When Durdles puts a touch or a finish upon his work, no matter where,
1575 inside or outside, Durdles likes to look at his work all round, and see
1576 that his work is a-doing him credit,’ Durdles explains, doggedly.
1577
1578 The key proffered him by the bereaved widower being a large one, he slips
1579 his two-foot rule into a side-pocket of his flannel trousers made for it,
1580 and deliberately opens his flannel coat, and opens the mouth of a large
1581 breast-pocket within it before taking the key to place it in that
1582 repository.
1583
1584 ‘Why, Durdles!’ exclaims Jasper, looking on amused, ‘you are undermined
1585 with pockets!’
1586
1587 ‘And I carries weight in ’em too, Mr. Jasper. Feel those!’ producing two
1588 other large keys.
1589
1590 ‘Hand me Mr. Sapsea’s likewise. Surely this is the heaviest of the
1591 three.’
1592
1593 ‘You’ll find ’em much of a muchness, I expect,’ says Durdles. ‘They all
1594 belong to monuments. They all open Durdles’s work. Durdles keeps the
1595 keys of his work mostly. Not that they’re much used.’
1596
1597 ‘By the bye,’ it comes into Jasper’s mind to say, as he idly examines the
1598 keys, ‘I have been going to ask you, many a day, and have always
1599 forgotten. You know they sometimes call you Stony Durdles, don’t you?’
1600
1601 ‘Cloisterham knows me as Durdles, Mr. Jasper.’
1602
1603 ‘I am aware of that, of course. But the boys sometimes—’
1604
1605 ‘O! if you mind them young imps of boys—’ Durdles gruffly interrupts.
1606
1607 ‘I don’t mind them any more than you do. But there was a discussion the
1608 other day among the Choir, whether Stony stood for Tony;’ clinking one
1609 key against another.
1610
1611 (‘Take care of the wards, Mr. Jasper.’)
1612
1613 ‘Or whether Stony stood for Stephen;’ clinking with a change of keys.
1614
1615 (‘You can’t make a pitch pipe of ’em, Mr. Jasper.’)
1616
1617 ‘Or whether the name comes from your trade. How stands the fact?’
1618
1619 Mr. Jasper weighs the three keys in his hand, lifts his head from his
1620 idly stooping attitude over the fire, and delivers the keys to Durdles
1621 with an ingenuous and friendly face.
1622
1623 But the stony one is a gruff one likewise, and that hazy state of his is
1624 always an uncertain state, highly conscious of its dignity, and prone to
1625 take offence. He drops his two keys back into his pocket one by one, and
1626 buttons them up; he takes his dinner-bundle from the chair-back on which
1627 he hung it when he came in; he distributes the weight he carries, by
1628 tying the third key up in it, as though he were an Ostrich, and liked to
1629 dine off cold iron; and he gets out of the room, deigning no word of
1630 answer.
1631
1632 Mr. Sapsea then proposes a hit at backgammon, which, seasoned with his
1633 own improving conversation, and terminating in a supper of cold roast
1634 beef and salad, beguiles the golden evening until pretty late. Mr.
1635 Sapsea’s wisdom being, in its delivery to mortals, rather of the diffuse
1636 than the epigrammatic order, is by no means expended even then; but his
1637 visitor intimates that he will come back for more of the precious
1638 commodity on future occasions, and Mr. Sapsea lets him off for the
1639 present, to ponder on the instalment he carries away.
1640
1641
1642
1643
1644 CHAPTER V—MR. DURDLES AND FRIEND
1645
1646
1647 John Jasper, on his way home through the Close, is brought to a
1648 stand-still by the spectacle of Stony Durdles, dinner-bundle and all,
1649 leaning his back against the iron railing of the burial-ground enclosing
1650 it from the old cloister-arches; and a hideous small boy in rags flinging
1651 stones at him as a well-defined mark in the moonlight. Sometimes the
1652 stones hit him, and sometimes they miss him, but Durdles seems
1653 indifferent to either fortune. The hideous small boy, on the contrary,
1654 whenever he hits Durdles, blows a whistle of triumph through a jagged
1655 gap, convenient for the purpose, in the front of his mouth, where half
1656 his teeth are wanting; and whenever he misses him, yelps out ‘Mulled
1657 agin!’ and tries to atone for the failure by taking a more correct and
1658 vicious aim.
1659
1660 ‘What are you doing to the man?’ demands Jasper, stepping out into the
1661 moonlight from the shade.
1662
1663 ‘Making a cock-shy of him,’ replies the hideous small boy.
1664
1665 ‘Give me those stones in your hand.’
1666
1667 ‘Yes, I’ll give ’em you down your throat, if you come a-ketching hold of
1668 me,’ says the small boy, shaking himself loose, and backing. ‘I’ll smash
1669 your eye, if you don’t look out!’
1670
1671 ‘Baby-Devil that you are, what has the man done to you?’
1672
1673 ‘He won’t go home.’
1674
1675 ‘What is that to you?’
1676
1677 ‘He gives me a ’apenny to pelt him home if I ketches him out too late,’
1678 says the boy. And then chants, like a little savage, half stumbling and
1679 half dancing among the rags and laces of his dilapidated boots:—
1680
1681 ‘Widdy widdy wen!
1682 I—ket—ches—Im—out—ar—ter—ten,
1683 Widdy widdy wy!
1684 Then—E—don’t—go—then—I—shy—
1685 Widdy Widdy Wake-cock warning!’
1686
1687 —with a comprehensive sweep on the last word, and one more delivery at
1688 Durdles.
1689
1690 This would seem to be a poetical note of preparation, agreed upon, as a
1691 caution to Durdles to stand clear if he can, or to betake himself
1692 homeward.
1693
1694 John Jasper invites the boy with a beck of his head to follow him
1695 (feeling it hopeless to drag him, or coax him), and crosses to the iron
1696 railing where the Stony (and stoned) One is profoundly meditating.
1697
1698 ‘Do you know this thing, this child?’ asks Jasper, at a loss for a word
1699 that will define this thing.
1700
1701 ‘Deputy,’ says Durdles, with a nod.
1702
1703 ‘Is that its—his—name?’
1704
1705 ‘Deputy,’ assents Durdles.
1706
1707 ‘I’m man-servant up at the Travellers’ Twopenny in Gas Works Garding,’
1708 this thing explains. ‘All us man-servants at Travellers’ Lodgings is
1709 named Deputy. When we’re chock full and the Travellers is all a-bed I
1710 come out for my ’elth.’ Then withdrawing into the road, and taking aim,
1711 he resumes:—
1712
1713 ‘Widdy widdy wen!
1714 I—ket—ches—Im—out—ar—ter—’
1715
1716 ‘Hold your hand,’ cries Jasper, ‘and don’t throw while I stand so near
1717 him, or I’ll kill you! Come, Durdles; let me walk home with you
1718 to-night. Shall I carry your bundle?’
1719
1720 ‘Not on any account,’ replies Durdles, adjusting it. ‘Durdles was making
1721 his reflections here when you come up, sir, surrounded by his works, like
1722 a poplar Author.—Your own brother-in-law;’ introducing a sarcophagus
1723 within the railing, white and cold in the moonlight. ‘Mrs. Sapsea;’
1724 introducing the monument of that devoted wife. ‘Late Incumbent;’
1725 introducing the Reverend Gentleman’s broken column. ‘Departed Assessed
1726 Taxes;’ introducing a vase and towel, standing on what might represent
1727 the cake of soap. ‘Former pastrycook and Muffin-maker, much respected;’
1728 introducing gravestone. ‘All safe and sound here, sir, and all Durdles’s
1729 work. Of the common folk, that is merely bundled up in turf and
1730 brambles, the less said the better. A poor lot, soon forgot.’
1731
1732 ‘This creature, Deputy, is behind us,’ says Jasper, looking back. ‘Is he
1733 to follow us?’
1734
1735 The relations between Durdles and Deputy are of a capricious kind; for,
1736 on Durdles’s turning himself about with the slow gravity of beery
1737 suddenness, Deputy makes a pretty wide circuit into the road and stands
1738 on the defensive.
1739
1740 ‘You never cried Widdy Warning before you begun to-night,’ says Durdles,
1741 unexpectedly reminded of, or imagining, an injury.
1742
1743 ‘Yer lie, I did,’ says Deputy, in his only form of polite contradiction.
1744
1745 ‘Own brother, sir,’ observes Durdles, turning himself about again, and as
1746 unexpectedly forgetting his offence as he had recalled or conceived it;
1747 ‘own brother to Peter the Wild Boy! But I gave him an object in life.’
1748
1749 ‘At which he takes aim?’ Mr. Jasper suggests.
1750
1751 ‘That’s it, sir,’ returns Durdles, quite satisfied; ‘at which he takes
1752 aim. I took him in hand and gave him an object. What was he before? A
1753 destroyer. What work did he do? Nothing but destruction. What did he
1754 earn by it? Short terms in Cloisterham jail. Not a person, not a piece
1755 of property, not a winder, not a horse, nor a dog, nor a cat, nor a bird,
1756 nor a fowl, nor a pig, but what he stoned, for want of an enlightened
1757 object. I put that enlightened object before him, and now he can turn
1758 his honest halfpenny by the three penn’orth a week.’
1759
1760 ‘I wonder he has no competitors.’
1761
1762 ‘He has plenty, Mr. Jasper, but he stones ’em all away. Now, I don’t
1763 know what this scheme of mine comes to,’ pursues Durdles, considering
1764 about it with the same sodden gravity; ‘I don’t know what you may
1765 precisely call it. It ain’t a sort of a—scheme of a—National Education?’
1766
1767 ‘I should say not,’ replies Jasper.
1768
1769 ‘I should say not,’ assents Durdles; ‘then we won’t try to give it a
1770 name.’
1771
1772 ‘He still keeps behind us,’ repeats Jasper, looking over his shoulder;
1773 ‘is he to follow us?’
1774
1775 ‘We can’t help going round by the Travellers’ Twopenny, if we go the
1776 short way, which is the back way,’ Durdles answers, ‘and we’ll drop him
1777 there.’
1778
1779 So they go on; Deputy, as a rear rank one, taking open order, and
1780 invading the silence of the hour and place by stoning every wall, post,
1781 pillar, and other inanimate object, by the deserted way.
1782
1783 ‘Is there anything new down in the crypt, Durdles?’ asks John Jasper.
1784
1785 ‘Anything old, I think you mean,’ growls Durdles. ‘It ain’t a spot for
1786 novelty.’
1787
1788 ‘Any new discovery on your part, I meant.’
1789
1790 ‘There’s a old ’un under the seventh pillar on the left as you go down
1791 the broken steps of the little underground chapel as formerly was; I make
1792 him out (so fur as I’ve made him out yet) to be one of them old ’uns with
1793 a crook. To judge from the size of the passages in the walls, and of the
1794 steps and doors, by which they come and went, them crooks must have been
1795 a good deal in the way of the old ’uns! Two on ’em meeting promiscuous
1796 must have hitched one another by the mitre pretty often, I should say.’
1797
1798 Without any endeavour to correct the literality of this opinion, Jasper
1799 surveys his companion—covered from head to foot with old mortar, lime,
1800 and stone grit—as though he, Jasper, were getting imbued with a romantic
1801 interest in his weird life.
1802
1803 ‘Yours is a curious existence.’
1804
1805 Without furnishing the least clue to the question, whether he receives
1806 this as a compliment or as quite the reverse, Durdles gruffly answers:
1807 ‘Yours is another.’
1808
1809 ‘Well! inasmuch as my lot is cast in the same old earthy, chilly,
1810 never-changing place, Yes. But there is much more mystery and interest
1811 in your connection with the Cathedral than in mine. Indeed, I am
1812 beginning to have some idea of asking you to take me on as a sort of
1813 student, or free ’prentice, under you, and to let me go about with you
1814 sometimes, and see some of these odd nooks in which you pass your days.’
1815
1816 The Stony One replies, in a general way, ‘All right. Everybody knows
1817 where to find Durdles, when he’s wanted.’ Which, if not strictly true,
1818 is approximately so, if taken to express that Durdles may always be found
1819 in a state of vagabondage somewhere.
1820
1821 ‘What I dwell upon most,’ says Jasper, pursuing his subject of romantic
1822 interest, ‘is the remarkable accuracy with which you would seem to find
1823 out where people are buried.—What is the matter? That bundle is in your
1824 way; let me hold it.’
1825
1826 Durdles has stopped and backed a little (Deputy, attentive to all his
1827 movements, immediately skirmishing into the road), and was looking about
1828 for some ledge or corner to place his bundle on, when thus relieved of
1829 it.
1830
1831 ‘Just you give me my hammer out of that,’ says Durdles, ‘and I’ll show
1832 you.’
1833
1834 Clink, clink. And his hammer is handed him.
1835
1836 ‘Now, lookee here. You pitch your note, don’t you, Mr. Jasper?’
1837
1838 ‘Yes.’
1839
1840 ‘So I sound for mine. I take my hammer, and I tap.’ (Here he strikes
1841 the pavement, and the attentive Deputy skirmishes at a rather wider
1842 range, as supposing that his head may be in requisition.) ‘I tap, tap,
1843 tap. Solid! I go on tapping. Solid still! Tap again. Holloa!
1844 Hollow! Tap again, persevering. Solid in hollow! Tap, tap, tap, to try
1845 it better. Solid in hollow; and inside solid, hollow again! There you
1846 are! Old ’un crumbled away in stone coffin, in vault!’
1847
1848 ‘Astonishing!’
1849
1850 ‘I have even done this,’ says Durdles, drawing out his two-foot rule
1851 (Deputy meanwhile skirmishing nearer, as suspecting that Treasure may be
1852 about to be discovered, which may somehow lead to his own enrichment, and
1853 the delicious treat of the discoverers being hanged by the neck, on his
1854 evidence, until they are dead). ‘Say that hammer of mine’s a wall—my
1855 work. Two; four; and two is six,’ measuring on the pavement. ‘Six foot
1856 inside that wall is Mrs. Sapsea.’
1857
1858 ‘Not really Mrs. Sapsea?’
1859
1860 ‘Say Mrs. Sapsea. Her wall’s thicker, but say Mrs. Sapsea. Durdles
1861 taps, that wall represented by that hammer, and says, after good
1862 sounding: “Something betwixt us!” Sure enough, some rubbish has been
1863 left in that same six-foot space by Durdles’s men!’
1864
1865 Jasper opines that such accuracy ‘is a gift.’
1866
1867 ‘I wouldn’t have it at a gift,’ returns Durdles, by no means receiving
1868 the observation in good part. ‘I worked it out for myself. Durdles
1869 comes by _his_ knowledge through grubbing deep for it, and having it up
1870 by the roots when it don’t want to come.—Holloa you Deputy!’
1871
1872 ‘Widdy!’ is Deputy’s shrill response, standing off again.
1873
1874 ‘Catch that ha’penny. And don’t let me see any more of you to-night,
1875 after we come to the Travellers’ Twopenny.’
1876
1877 ‘Warning!’ returns Deputy, having caught the halfpenny, and appearing by
1878 this mystic word to express his assent to the arrangement.
1879
1880 They have but to cross what was once the vineyard, belonging to what was
1881 once the Monastery, to come into the narrow back lane wherein stands the
1882 crazy wooden house of two low stories currently known as the Travellers’
1883 Twopenny:—a house all warped and distorted, like the morals of the
1884 travellers, with scant remains of a lattice-work porch over the door, and
1885 also of a rustic fence before its stamped-out garden; by reason of the
1886 travellers being so bound to the premises by a tender sentiment (or so
1887 fond of having a fire by the roadside in the course of the day), that
1888 they can never be persuaded or threatened into departure, without
1889 violently possessing themselves of some wooden forget-me-not, and bearing
1890 it off.
1891
1892 The semblance of an inn is attempted to be given to this wretched place
1893 by fragments of conventional red curtaining in the windows, which rags
1894 are made muddily transparent in the night-season by feeble lights of rush
1895 or cotton dip burning dully in the close air of the inside. As Durdles
1896 and Jasper come near, they are addressed by an inscribed paper lantern
1897 over the door, setting forth the purport of the house. They are also
1898 addressed by some half-dozen other hideous small boys—whether twopenny
1899 lodgers or followers or hangers-on of such, who knows!—who, as if
1900 attracted by some carrion-scent of Deputy in the air, start into the
1901 moonlight, as vultures might gather in the desert, and instantly fall to
1902 stoning him and one another.
1903
1904 ‘Stop, you young brutes,’ cries Jasper angrily, ‘and let us go by!’
1905
1906 This remonstrance being received with yells and flying stones, according
1907 to a custom of late years comfortably established among the police
1908 regulations of our English communities, where Christians are stoned on
1909 all sides, as if the days of Saint Stephen were revived, Durdles remarks
1910 of the young savages, with some point, that ‘they haven’t got an object,’
1911 and leads the way down the lane.
1912
1913 At the corner of the lane, Jasper, hotly enraged, checks his companion
1914 and looks back. All is silent. Next moment, a stone coming rattling at
1915 his hat, and a distant yell of ‘Wake-Cock! Warning!’ followed by a crow,
1916 as from some infernally-hatched Chanticleer, apprising him under whose
1917 victorious fire he stands, he turns the corner into safety, and takes
1918 Durdles home: Durdles stumbling among the litter of his stony yard as if
1919 he were going to turn head foremost into one of the unfinished tombs.
1920
1921 John Jasper returns by another way to his gatehouse, and entering softly
1922 with his key, finds his fire still burning. He takes from a locked press
1923 a peculiar-looking pipe, which he fills—but not with tobacco—and, having
1924 adjusted the contents of the bowl, very carefully, with a little
1925 instrument, ascends an inner staircase of only a few steps, leading to
1926 two rooms. One of these is his own sleeping chamber: the other is his
1927 nephew’s. There is a light in each.
1928
1929 His nephew lies asleep, calm and untroubled. John Jasper stands looking
1930 down upon him, his unlighted pipe in his hand, for some time, with a
1931 fixed and deep attention. Then, hushing his footsteps, he passes to his
1932 own room, lights his pipe, and delivers himself to the Spectres it
1933 invokes at midnight.
1934
1935
1936
1937
1938 CHAPTER VI—PHILANTHROPY IN MINOR CANON CORNER
1939
1940
1941 The Reverend Septimus Crisparkle (Septimus, because six little brother
1942 Crisparkles before him went out, one by one, as they were born, like six
1943 weak little rushlights, as they were lighted), having broken the thin
1944 morning ice near Cloisterham Weir with his amiable head, much to the
1945 invigoration of his frame, was now assisting his circulation by boxing at
1946 a looking-glass with great science and prowess. A fresh and healthy
1947 portrait the looking-glass presented of the Reverend Septimus, feinting
1948 and dodging with the utmost artfulness, and hitting out from the shoulder
1949 with the utmost straightness, while his radiant features teemed with
1950 innocence, and soft-hearted benevolence beamed from his boxing-gloves.
1951
1952 It was scarcely breakfast-time yet, for Mrs. Crisparkle—mother, not wife
1953 of the Reverend Septimus—was only just down, and waiting for the urn.
1954 Indeed, the Reverend Septimus left off at this very moment to take the
1955 pretty old lady’s entering face between his boxing-gloves and kiss it.
1956 Having done so with tenderness, the Reverend Septimus turned to again,
1957 countering with his left, and putting in his right, in a tremendous
1958 manner.
1959
1960 ‘I say, every morning of my life, that you’ll do it at last, Sept,’
1961 remarked the old lady, looking on; ‘and so you will.’
1962
1963 ‘Do what, Ma dear?’
1964
1965 ‘Break the pier-glass, or burst a blood-vessel.’
1966
1967 ‘Neither, please God, Ma dear. Here’s wind, Ma. Look at this!’ In a
1968 concluding round of great severity, the Reverend Septimus administered
1969 and escaped all sorts of punishment, and wound up by getting the old
1970 lady’s cap into Chancery—such is the technical term used in scientific
1971 circles by the learned in the Noble Art—with a lightness of touch that
1972 hardly stirred the lightest lavender or cherry riband on it.
1973 Magnanimously releasing the defeated, just in time to get his gloves into
1974 a drawer and feign to be looking out of window in a contemplative state
1975 of mind when a servant entered, the Reverend Septimus then gave place to
1976 the urn and other preparations for breakfast. These completed, and the
1977 two alone again, it was pleasant to see (or would have been, if there had
1978 been any one to see it, which there never was), the old lady standing to
1979 say the Lord’s Prayer aloud, and her son, Minor Canon nevertheless,
1980 standing with bent head to hear it, he being within five years of forty:
1981 much as he had stood to hear the same words from the same lips when he
1982 was within five months of four.
1983
1984 What is prettier than an old lady—except a young lady—when her eyes are
1985 bright, when her figure is trim and compact, when her face is cheerful
1986 and calm, when her dress is as the dress of a china shepherdess: so
1987 dainty in its colours, so individually assorted to herself, so neatly
1988 moulded on her? Nothing is prettier, thought the good Minor Canon
1989 frequently, when taking his seat at table opposite his long-widowed
1990 mother. Her thought at such times may be condensed into the two words
1991 that oftenest did duty together in all her conversations: ‘My Sept!’
1992
1993 They were a good pair to sit breakfasting together in Minor Canon Corner,
1994 Cloisterham. For Minor Canon Corner was a quiet place in the shadow of
1995 the Cathedral, which the cawing of the rooks, the echoing footsteps of
1996 rare passers, the sound of the Cathedral bell, or the roll of the
1997 Cathedral organ, seemed to render more quiet than absolute silence.
1998 Swaggering fighting men had had their centuries of ramping and raving
1999 about Minor Canon Corner, and beaten serfs had had their centuries of
2000 drudging and dying there, and powerful monks had had their centuries of
2001 being sometimes useful and sometimes harmful there, and behold they were
2002 all gone out of Minor Canon Corner, and so much the better. Perhaps one
2003 of the highest uses of their ever having been there, was, that there
2004 might be left behind, that blessed air of tranquillity which pervaded
2005 Minor Canon Corner, and that serenely romantic state of the
2006 mind—productive for the most part of pity and forbearance—which is
2007 engendered by a sorrowful story that is all told, or a pathetic play that
2008 is played out.
2009
2010 Red-brick walls harmoniously toned down in colour by time, strong-rooted
2011 ivy, latticed windows, panelled rooms, big oaken beams in little places,
2012 and stone-walled gardens where annual fruit yet ripened upon monkish
2013 trees, were the principal surroundings of pretty old Mrs. Crisparkle and
2014 the Reverend Septimus as they sat at breakfast.
2015
2016 ‘And what, Ma dear,’ inquired the Minor Canon, giving proof of a
2017 wholesome and vigorous appetite, ‘does the letter say?’
2018
2019 The pretty old lady, after reading it, had just laid it down upon the
2020 breakfast-cloth. She handed it over to her son.
2021
2022 Now, the old lady was exceedingly proud of her bright eyes being so clear
2023 that she could read writing without spectacles. Her son was also so
2024 proud of the circumstance, and so dutifully bent on her deriving the
2025 utmost possible gratification from it, that he had invented the pretence
2026 that he himself could _not_ read writing without spectacles. Therefore
2027 he now assumed a pair, of grave and prodigious proportions, which not
2028 only seriously inconvenienced his nose and his breakfast, but seriously
2029 impeded his perusal of the letter. For, he had the eyes of a microscope
2030 and a telescope combined, when they were unassisted.
2031
2032 ‘It’s from Mr. Honeythunder, of course,’ said the old lady, folding her
2033 arms.
2034
2035 ‘Of course,’ assented her son. He then lamely read on:
2036
2037 ‘“Haven of Philanthropy,
2038 Chief Offices, London, Wednesday.
2039
2040 ‘“DEAR MADAM,
2041
2042 ‘“I write in the—;” In the what’s this? What does he write in?’
2043
2044 ‘In the chair,’ said the old lady.
2045
2046 The Reverend Septimus took off his spectacles, that he might see her
2047 face, as he exclaimed:
2048
2049 ‘Why, what should he write in?’
2050
2051 ‘Bless me, bless me, Sept,’ returned the old lady, ‘you don’t see the
2052 context! Give it back to me, my dear.’
2053
2054 Glad to get his spectacles off (for they always made his eyes water), her
2055 son obeyed: murmuring that his sight for reading manuscript got worse and
2056 worse daily.
2057
2058 ‘“I write,”’ his mother went on, reading very perspicuously and
2059 precisely, ‘“from the chair, to which I shall probably be confined for
2060 some hours.”’
2061
2062 Septimus looked at the row of chairs against the wall, with a
2063 half-protesting and half-appealing countenance.
2064
2065 ‘“We have,”’ the old lady read on with a little extra emphasis, ‘“a
2066 meeting of our Convened Chief Composite Committee of Central and District
2067 Philanthropists, at our Head Haven as above; and it is their unanimous
2068 pleasure that I take the chair.”’
2069
2070 Septimus breathed more freely, and muttered: ‘O! if he comes to _that_,
2071 let him.’
2072
2073 ‘“Not to lose a day’s post, I take the opportunity of a long report being
2074 read, denouncing a public miscreant—”’
2075
2076 ‘It is a most extraordinary thing,’ interposed the gentle Minor Canon,
2077 laying down his knife and fork to rub his ear in a vexed manner, ‘that
2078 these Philanthropists are always denouncing somebody. And it is another
2079 most extraordinary thing that they are always so violently flush of
2080 miscreants!’
2081
2082 ‘“Denouncing a public miscreant—”’—the old lady resumed, ‘“to get our
2083 little affair of business off my mind. I have spoken with my two wards,
2084 Neville and Helena Landless, on the subject of their defective education,
2085 and they give in to the plan proposed; as I should have taken good care
2086 they did, whether they liked it or not.”’
2087
2088 ‘And it is another most extraordinary thing,’ remarked the Minor Canon in
2089 the same tone as before, ‘that these philanthropists are so given to
2090 seizing their fellow-creatures by the scruff of the neck, and (as one may
2091 say) bumping them into the paths of peace.—I beg your pardon, Ma dear,
2092 for interrupting.’
2093
2094 ‘“Therefore, dear Madam, you will please prepare your son, the Rev. Mr.
2095 Septimus, to expect Neville as an inmate to be read with, on Monday next.
2096 On the same day Helena will accompany him to Cloisterham, to take up her
2097 quarters at the Nuns’ House, the establishment recommended by yourself
2098 and son jointly. Please likewise to prepare for her reception and
2099 tuition there. The terms in both cases are understood to be exactly as
2100 stated to me in writing by yourself, when I opened a correspondence with
2101 you on this subject, after the honour of being introduced to you at your
2102 sister’s house in town here. With compliments to the Rev. Mr. Septimus,
2103 I am, Dear Madam, Your affectionate brother (In Philanthropy), LUKE
2104 HONEYTHUNDER.”’
2105
2106 ‘Well, Ma,’ said Septimus, after a little more rubbing of his ear, ‘we
2107 must try it. There can be no doubt that we have room for an inmate, and
2108 that I have time to bestow upon him, and inclination too. I must confess
2109 to feeling rather glad that he is not Mr. Honeythunder himself. Though
2110 that seems wretchedly prejudiced—does it not?—for I never saw him. Is he
2111 a large man, Ma?’
2112
2113 ‘I should call him a large man, my dear,’ the old lady replied after some
2114 hesitation, ‘but that his voice is so much larger.’
2115
2116 ‘Than himself?’
2117
2118 ‘Than anybody.’
2119
2120 ‘Hah!’ said Septimus. And finished his breakfast as if the flavour of
2121 the Superior Family Souchong, and also of the ham and toast and eggs,
2122 were a little on the wane.
2123
2124 Mrs. Crisparkle’s sister, another piece of Dresden china, and matching
2125 her so neatly that they would have made a delightful pair of ornaments
2126 for the two ends of any capacious old-fashioned chimneypiece, and by
2127 right should never have been seen apart, was the childless wife of a
2128 clergyman holding Corporation preferment in London City. Mr.
2129 Honeythunder in his public character of Professor of Philanthropy had
2130 come to know Mrs. Crisparkle during the last re-matching of the china
2131 ornaments (in other words during her last annual visit to her sister),
2132 after a public occasion of a philanthropic nature, when certain devoted
2133 orphans of tender years had been glutted with plum buns, and plump
2134 bumptiousness. These were all the antecedents known in Minor Canon
2135 Corner of the coming pupils.
2136
2137 ‘I am sure you will agree with me, Ma,’ said Mr. Crisparkle, after
2138 thinking the matter over, ‘that the first thing to be done, is, to put
2139 these young people as much at their ease as possible. There is nothing
2140 disinterested in the notion, because we cannot be at our ease with them
2141 unless they are at their ease with us. Now, Jasper’s nephew is down here
2142 at present; and like takes to like, and youth takes to youth. He is a
2143 cordial young fellow, and we will have him to meet the brother and sister
2144 at dinner. That’s three. We can’t think of asking him, without asking
2145 Jasper. That’s four. Add Miss Twinkleton and the fairy bride that is to
2146 be, and that’s six. Add our two selves, and that’s eight. Would eight
2147 at a friendly dinner at all put you out, Ma?’
2148
2149 ‘Nine would, Sept,’ returned the old lady, visibly nervous.
2150
2151 ‘My dear Ma, I particularise eight.’
2152
2153 ‘The exact size of the table and the room, my dear.’
2154
2155 So it was settled that way: and when Mr. Crisparkle called with his
2156 mother upon Miss Twinkleton, to arrange for the reception of Miss Helena
2157 Landless at the Nuns’ House, the two other invitations having reference
2158 to that establishment were proffered and accepted. Miss Twinkleton did,
2159 indeed, glance at the globes, as regretting that they were not formed to
2160 be taken out into society; but became reconciled to leaving them behind.
2161 Instructions were then despatched to the Philanthropist for the departure
2162 and arrival, in good time for dinner, of Mr. Neville and Miss Helena; and
2163 stock for soup became fragrant in the air of Minor Canon Corner.
2164
2165 In those days there was no railway to Cloisterham, and Mr. Sapsea said
2166 there never would be. Mr. Sapsea said more; he said there never should
2167 be. And yet, marvellous to consider, it has come to pass, in these days,
2168 that Express Trains don’t think Cloisterham worth stopping at, but yell
2169 and whirl through it on their larger errands, casting the dust off their
2170 wheels as a testimony against its insignificance. Some remote fragment
2171 of Main Line to somewhere else, there was, which was going to ruin the
2172 Money Market if it failed, and Church and State if it succeeded, and (of
2173 course), the Constitution, whether or no; but even that had already so
2174 unsettled Cloisterham traffic, that the traffic, deserting the high road,
2175 came sneaking in from an unprecedented part of the country by a back
2176 stable-way, for many years labelled at the corner: ‘Beware of the Dog.’
2177
2178 To this ignominious avenue of approach, Mr. Crisparkle repaired, awaiting
2179 the arrival of a short, squat omnibus, with a disproportionate heap of
2180 luggage on the roof—like a little Elephant with infinitely too much
2181 Castle—which was then the daily service between Cloisterham and external
2182 mankind. As this vehicle lumbered up, Mr. Crisparkle could hardly see
2183 anything else of it for a large outside passenger seated on the box, with
2184 his elbows squared, and his hands on his knees, compressing the driver
2185 into a most uncomfortably small compass, and glowering about him with a
2186 strongly-marked face.
2187
2188 ‘Is this Cloisterham?’ demanded the passenger, in a tremendous voice.
2189
2190 ‘It is,’ replied the driver, rubbing himself as if he ached, after
2191 throwing the reins to the ostler. ‘And I never was so glad to see it.’
2192
2193 ‘Tell your master to make his box-seat wider, then,’ returned the
2194 passenger. ‘Your master is morally bound—and ought to be legally, under
2195 ruinous penalties—to provide for the comfort of his fellow-man.’
2196
2197 The driver instituted, with the palms of his hands, a superficial
2198 perquisition into the state of his skeleton; which seemed to make him
2199 anxious.
2200
2201 ‘Have I sat upon you?’ asked the passenger.
2202
2203 ‘You have,’ said the driver, as if he didn’t like it at all.
2204
2205 ‘Take that card, my friend.’
2206
2207 ‘I think I won’t deprive you on it,’ returned the driver, casting his
2208 eyes over it with no great favour, without taking it. ‘What’s the good
2209 of it to me?’
2210
2211 ‘Be a Member of that Society,’ said the passenger.
2212
2213 ‘What shall I get by it?’ asked the driver.
2214
2215 ‘Brotherhood,’ returned the passenger, in a ferocious voice.
2216
2217 ‘Thankee,’ said the driver, very deliberately, as he got down; ‘my mother
2218 was contented with myself, and so am I. I don’t want no brothers.’
2219
2220 ‘But you must have them,’ replied the passenger, also descending,
2221 ‘whether you like it or not. I am your brother.’
2222
2223 ‘I say!’ expostulated the driver, becoming more chafed in temper, ‘not
2224 too fur! The worm _will_, when—’
2225
2226 But here, Mr. Crisparkle interposed, remonstrating aside, in a friendly
2227 voice: ‘Joe, Joe, Joe! don’t forget yourself, Joe, my good fellow!’ and
2228 then, when Joe peaceably touched his hat, accosting the passenger with:
2229 ‘Mr. Honeythunder?’
2230
2231 ‘That is my name, sir.’
2232
2233 ‘My name is Crisparkle.’
2234
2235 ‘Reverend Mr. Septimus? Glad to see you, sir. Neville and Helena are
2236 inside. Having a little succumbed of late, under the pressure of my
2237 public labours, I thought I would take a mouthful of fresh air, and come
2238 down with them, and return at night. So you are the Reverend Mr.
2239 Septimus, are you?’ surveying him on the whole with disappointment, and
2240 twisting a double eyeglass by its ribbon, as if he were roasting it, but
2241 not otherwise using it. ‘Hah! I expected to see you older, sir.’
2242
2243 ‘I hope you will,’ was the good-humoured reply.
2244
2245 ‘Eh?’ demanded Mr. Honeythunder.
2246
2247 ‘Only a poor little joke. Not worth repeating.’
2248
2249 ‘Joke? Ay; I never see a joke,’ Mr. Honeythunder frowningly retorted.
2250 ‘A joke is wasted upon me, sir. Where are they? Helena and Neville,
2251 come here! Mr. Crisparkle has come down to meet you.’
2252
2253 An unusually handsome lithe young fellow, and an unusually handsome lithe
2254 girl; much alike; both very dark, and very rich in colour; she of almost
2255 the gipsy type; something untamed about them both; a certain air upon
2256 them of hunter and huntress; yet withal a certain air of being the
2257 objects of the chase, rather than the followers. Slender, supple, quick
2258 of eye and limb; half shy, half defiant; fierce of look; an indefinable
2259 kind of pause coming and going on their whole expression, both of face
2260 and form, which might be equally likened to the pause before a crouch or
2261 a bound. The rough mental notes made in the first five minutes by Mr.
2262 Crisparkle would have read thus, _verbatim_.
2263
2264 He invited Mr. Honeythunder to dinner, with a troubled mind (for the
2265 discomfiture of the dear old china shepherdess lay heavy on it), and gave
2266 his arm to Helena Landless. Both she and her brother, as they walked all
2267 together through the ancient streets, took great delight in what he
2268 pointed out of the Cathedral and the Monastery ruin, and wondered—so his
2269 notes ran on—much as if they were beautiful barbaric captives brought
2270 from some wild tropical dominion. Mr. Honeythunder walked in the middle
2271 of the road, shouldering the natives out of his way, and loudly
2272 developing a scheme he had, for making a raid on all the unemployed
2273 persons in the United Kingdom, laying them every one by the heels in
2274 jail, and forcing them, on pain of prompt extermination, to become
2275 philanthropists.
2276
2277 Mrs. Crisparkle had need of her own share of philanthropy when she beheld
2278 this very large and very loud excrescence on the little party. Always
2279 something in the nature of a Boil upon the face of society, Mr.
2280 Honeythunder expanded into an inflammatory Wen in Minor Canon Corner.
2281 Though it was not literally true, as was facetiously charged against him
2282 by public unbelievers, that he called aloud to his fellow-creatures:
2283 ‘Curse your souls and bodies, come here and be blessed!’ still his
2284 philanthropy was of that gunpowderous sort that the difference between it
2285 and animosity was hard to determine. You were to abolish military force,
2286 but you were first to bring all commanding officers who had done their
2287 duty, to trial by court-martial for that offence, and shoot them. You
2288 were to abolish war, but were to make converts by making war upon them,
2289 and charging them with loving war as the apple of their eye. You were to
2290 have no capital punishment, but were first to sweep off the face of the
2291 earth all legislators, jurists, and judges, who were of the contrary
2292 opinion. You were to have universal concord, and were to get it by
2293 eliminating all the people who wouldn’t, or conscientiously couldn’t, be
2294 concordant. You were to love your brother as yourself, but after an
2295 indefinite interval of maligning him (very much as if you hated him), and
2296 calling him all manner of names. Above all things, you were to do
2297 nothing in private, or on your own account. You were to go to the
2298 offices of the Haven of Philanthropy, and put your name down as a Member
2299 and a Professing Philanthropist. Then, you were to pay up your
2300 subscription, get your card of membership and your riband and medal, and
2301 were evermore to live upon a platform, and evermore to say what Mr.
2302 Honeythunder said, and what the Treasurer said, and what the
2303 sub-Treasurer said, and what the Committee said, and what the
2304 sub-Committee said, and what the Secretary said, and what the
2305 Vice-Secretary said. And this was usually said in the
2306 unanimously-carried resolution under hand and seal, to the effect: ‘That
2307 this assembled Body of Professing Philanthropists views, with indignant
2308 scorn and contempt, not unmixed with utter detestation and loathing
2309 abhorrence’—in short, the baseness of all those who do not belong to it,
2310 and pledges itself to make as many obnoxious statements as possible about
2311 them, without being at all particular as to facts.
2312
2313 The dinner was a most doleful breakdown. The philanthropist deranged the
2314 symmetry of the table, sat himself in the way of the waiting, blocked up
2315 the thoroughfare, and drove Mr. Tope (who assisted the parlour-maid) to
2316 the verge of distraction by passing plates and dishes on, over his own
2317 head. Nobody could talk to anybody, because he held forth to everybody
2318 at once, as if the company had no individual existence, but were a
2319 Meeting. He impounded the Reverend Mr. Septimus, as an official
2320 personage to be addressed, or kind of human peg to hang his oratorical
2321 hat on, and fell into the exasperating habit, common among such orators,
2322 of impersonating him as a wicked and weak opponent. Thus, he would ask:
2323 ‘And will you, sir, now stultify yourself by telling me’—and so forth,
2324 when the innocent man had not opened his lips, nor meant to open them.
2325 Or he would say: ‘Now see, sir, to what a position you are reduced. I
2326 will leave you no escape. After exhausting all the resources of fraud
2327 and falsehood, during years upon years; after exhibiting a combination of
2328 dastardly meanness with ensanguined daring, such as the world has not
2329 often witnessed; you have now the hypocrisy to bend the knee before the
2330 most degraded of mankind, and to sue and whine and howl for mercy!’
2331 Whereat the unfortunate Minor Canon would look, in part indignant and in
2332 part perplexed; while his worthy mother sat bridling, with tears in her
2333 eyes, and the remainder of the party lapsed into a sort of gelatinous
2334 state, in which there was no flavour or solidity, and very little
2335 resistance.
2336
2337 But the gush of philanthropy that burst forth when the departure of Mr.
2338 Honeythunder began to impend, must have been highly gratifying to the
2339 feelings of that distinguished man. His coffee was produced, by the
2340 special activity of Mr. Tope, a full hour before he wanted it. Mr.
2341 Crisparkle sat with his watch in his hand for about the same period, lest
2342 he should overstay his time. The four young people were unanimous in
2343 believing that the Cathedral clock struck three-quarters, when it
2344 actually struck but one. Miss Twinkleton estimated the distance to the
2345 omnibus at five-and-twenty minutes’ walk, when it was really five. The
2346 affectionate kindness of the whole circle hustled him into his greatcoat,
2347 and shoved him out into the moonlight, as if he were a fugitive traitor
2348 with whom they sympathised, and a troop of horse were at the back door.
2349 Mr. Crisparkle and his new charge, who took him to the omnibus, were so
2350 fervent in their apprehensions of his catching cold, that they shut him
2351 up in it instantly and left him, with still half-an-hour to spare.
2352
2353
2354
2355
2356 CHAPTER VII—MORE CONFIDENCES THAN ONE
2357
2358
2359 ‘I know very little of that gentleman, sir,’ said Neville to the Minor
2360 Canon as they turned back.
2361
2362 ‘You know very little of your guardian?’ the Minor Canon repeated.
2363
2364 ‘Almost nothing!’
2365
2366 ‘How came he—’
2367
2368 ‘To _be_ my guardian? I’ll tell you, sir. I suppose you know that we
2369 come (my sister and I) from Ceylon?’
2370
2371 ‘Indeed, no.’
2372
2373 ‘I wonder at that. We lived with a stepfather there. Our mother died
2374 there, when we were little children. We have had a wretched existence.
2375 She made him our guardian, and he was a miserly wretch who grudged us
2376 food to eat, and clothes to wear. At his death, he passed us over to
2377 this man; for no better reason that I know of, than his being a friend or
2378 connexion of his, whose name was always in print and catching his
2379 attention.’
2380
2381 ‘That was lately, I suppose?’
2382
2383 ‘Quite lately, sir. This stepfather of ours was a cruel brute as well as
2384 a grinding one. It is well he died when he did, or I might have killed
2385 him.’
2386
2387 Mr. Crisparkle stopped short in the moonlight and looked at his hopeful
2388 pupil in consternation.
2389
2390 ‘I surprise you, sir?’ he said, with a quick change to a submissive
2391 manner.
2392
2393 ‘You shock me; unspeakably shock me.’
2394
2395 The pupil hung his head for a little while, as they walked on, and then
2396 said: ‘You never saw him beat your sister. I have seen him beat mine,
2397 more than once or twice, and I never forgot it.’
2398
2399 ‘Nothing,’ said Mr. Crisparkle, ‘not even a beloved and beautiful
2400 sister’s tears under dastardly ill-usage;’ he became less severe, in
2401 spite of himself, as his indignation rose; ‘could justify those horrible
2402 expressions that you used.’
2403
2404 ‘I am sorry I used them, and especially to you, sir. I beg to recall
2405 them. But permit me to set you right on one point. You spoke of my
2406 sister’s tears. My sister would have let him tear her to pieces, before
2407 she would have let him believe that he could make her shed a tear.’
2408
2409 Mr. Crisparkle reviewed those mental notes of his, and was neither at all
2410 surprised to hear it, nor at all disposed to question it.
2411
2412 ‘Perhaps you will think it strange, sir,’—this was said in a hesitating
2413 voice—‘that I should so soon ask you to allow me to confide in you, and
2414 to have the kindness to hear a word or two from me in my defence?’
2415
2416 ‘Defence?’ Mr. Crisparkle repeated. ‘You are not on your defence, Mr.
2417 Neville.’
2418
2419 ‘I think I am, sir. At least I know I should be, if you were better
2420 acquainted with my character.’
2421
2422 ‘Well, Mr. Neville,’ was the rejoinder. ‘What if you leave me to find it
2423 out?’
2424
2425 ‘Since it is your pleasure, sir,’ answered the young man, with a quick
2426 change in his manner to sullen disappointment: ‘since it is your pleasure
2427 to check me in my impulse, I must submit.’
2428
2429 There was that in the tone of this short speech which made the
2430 conscientious man to whom it was addressed uneasy. It hinted to him that
2431 he might, without meaning it, turn aside a trustfulness beneficial to a
2432 mis-shapen young mind and perhaps to his own power of directing and
2433 improving it. They were within sight of the lights in his windows, and
2434 he stopped.
2435
2436 ‘Let us turn back and take a turn or two up and down, Mr. Neville, or you
2437 may not have time to finish what you wish to say to me. You are hasty in
2438 thinking that I mean to check you. Quite the contrary. I invite your
2439 confidence.’
2440
2441 ‘You have invited it, sir, without knowing it, ever since I came here. I
2442 say “ever since,” as if I had been here a week. The truth is, we came
2443 here (my sister and I) to quarrel with you, and affront you, and break
2444 away again.’
2445
2446 ‘Really?’ said Mr. Crisparkle, at a dead loss for anything else to say.
2447
2448 ‘You see, we could not know what you were beforehand, sir; could we?’
2449
2450 ‘Clearly not,’ said Mr. Crisparkle.
2451
2452 ‘And having liked no one else with whom we have ever been brought into
2453 contact, we had made up our minds not to like you.’
2454
2455 ‘Really?’ said Mr. Crisparkle again.
2456
2457 ‘But we do like you, sir, and we see an unmistakable difference between
2458 your house and your reception of us, and anything else we have ever
2459 known. This—and my happening to be alone with you—and everything around
2460 us seeming so quiet and peaceful after Mr. Honeythunder’s departure—and
2461 Cloisterham being so old and grave and beautiful, with the moon shining
2462 on it—these things inclined me to open my heart.’
2463
2464 ‘I quite understand, Mr. Neville. And it is salutary to listen to such
2465 influences.’
2466
2467 ‘In describing my own imperfections, sir, I must ask you not to suppose
2468 that I am describing my sister’s. She has come out of the disadvantages
2469 of our miserable life, as much better than I am, as that Cathedral tower
2470 is higher than those chimneys.’
2471
2472 Mr. Crisparkle in his own breast was not so sure of this.
2473
2474 ‘I have had, sir, from my earliest remembrance, to suppress a deadly and
2475 bitter hatred. This has made me secret and revengeful. I have been
2476 always tyrannically held down by the strong hand. This has driven me, in
2477 my weakness, to the resource of being false and mean. I have been
2478 stinted of education, liberty, money, dress, the very necessaries of
2479 life, the commonest pleasures of childhood, the commonest possessions of
2480 youth. This has caused me to be utterly wanting in I don’t know what
2481 emotions, or remembrances, or good instincts—I have not even a name for
2482 the thing, you see!—that you have had to work upon in other young men to
2483 whom you have been accustomed.’
2484
2485 ‘This is evidently true. But this is not encouraging,’ thought Mr.
2486 Crisparkle as they turned again.
2487
2488 ‘And to finish with, sir: I have been brought up among abject and servile
2489 dependents, of an inferior race, and I may easily have contracted some
2490 affinity with them. Sometimes, I don’t know but that it may be a drop of
2491 what is tigerish in their blood.’
2492
2493 ‘As in the case of that remark just now,’ thought Mr. Crisparkle.
2494
2495 ‘In a last word of reference to my sister, sir (we are twin children),
2496 you ought to know, to her honour, that nothing in our misery ever subdued
2497 her, though it often cowed me. When we ran away from it (we ran away
2498 four times in six years, to be soon brought back and cruelly punished),
2499 the flight was always of her planning and leading. Each time she dressed
2500 as a boy, and showed the daring of a man. I take it we were seven years
2501 old when we first decamped; but I remember, when I lost the pocket-knife
2502 with which she was to have cut her hair short, how desperately she tried
2503 to tear it out, or bite it off. I have nothing further to say, sir,
2504 except that I hope you will bear with me and make allowance for me.’
2505
2506 ‘Of that, Mr. Neville, you may be sure,’ returned the Minor Canon. ‘I
2507 don’t preach more than I can help, and I will not repay your confidence
2508 with a sermon. But I entreat you to bear in mind, very seriously and
2509 steadily, that if I am to do you any good, it can only be with your own
2510 assistance; and that you can only render that, efficiently, by seeking
2511 aid from Heaven.’
2512
2513 ‘I will try to do my part, sir.’
2514
2515 ‘And, Mr. Neville, I will try to do mine. Here is my hand on it. May
2516 God bless our endeavours!’
2517
2518 They were now standing at his house-door, and a cheerful sound of voices
2519 and laughter was heard within.
2520
2521 ‘We will take one more turn before going in,’ said Mr. Crisparkle, ‘for I
2522 want to ask you a question. When you said you were in a changed mind
2523 concerning me, you spoke, not only for yourself, but for your sister
2524 too?’
2525
2526 ‘Undoubtedly I did, sir.’
2527
2528 ‘Excuse me, Mr. Neville, but I think you have had no opportunity of
2529 communicating with your sister, since I met you. Mr. Honeythunder was
2530 very eloquent; but perhaps I may venture to say, without ill-nature, that
2531 he rather monopolised the occasion. May you not have answered for your
2532 sister without sufficient warrant?’
2533
2534 Neville shook his head with a proud smile.
2535
2536 ‘You don’t know, sir, yet, what a complete understanding can exist
2537 between my sister and me, though no spoken word—perhaps hardly as much as
2538 a look—may have passed between us. She not only feels as I have
2539 described, but she very well knows that I am taking this opportunity of
2540 speaking to you, both for her and for myself.’
2541
2542 Mr. Crisparkle looked in his face, with some incredulity; but his face
2543 expressed such absolute and firm conviction of the truth of what he said,
2544 that Mr. Crisparkle looked at the pavement, and mused, until they came to
2545 his door again.
2546
2547 ‘I will ask for one more turn, sir, this time,’ said the young man, with
2548 a rather heightened colour rising in his face. ‘But for Mr.
2549 Honeythunder’s—I think you called it eloquence, sir?’ (somewhat slyly.)
2550
2551 ‘I—yes, I called it eloquence,’ said Mr. Crisparkle.
2552
2553 ‘But for Mr. Honeythunder’s eloquence, I might have had no need to ask
2554 you what I am going to ask you. This Mr. Edwin Drood, sir: I think
2555 that’s the name?’
2556
2557 ‘Quite correct,’ said Mr. Crisparkle. ‘D-r-double o-d.’
2558
2559 ‘Does he—or did he—read with you, sir?’
2560
2561 ‘Never, Mr. Neville. He comes here visiting his relation, Mr. Jasper.’
2562
2563 ‘Is Miss Bud his relation too, sir?’
2564
2565 (‘Now, why should he ask that, with sudden superciliousness?’ thought Mr.
2566 Crisparkle.) Then he explained, aloud, what he knew of the little story
2567 of their betrothal.
2568
2569 ‘O! _that’s_ it, is it?’ said the young man. ‘I understand his air of
2570 proprietorship now!’
2571
2572 This was said so evidently to himself, or to anybody rather than Mr.
2573 Crisparkle, that the latter instinctively felt as if to notice it would
2574 be almost tantamount to noticing a passage in a letter which he had read
2575 by chance over the writer’s shoulder. A moment afterwards they
2576 re-entered the house.
2577
2578 Mr. Jasper was seated at the piano as they came into his drawing-room,
2579 and was accompanying Miss Rosebud while she sang. It was a consequence
2580 of his playing the accompaniment without notes, and of her being a
2581 heedless little creature, very apt to go wrong, that he followed her lips
2582 most attentively, with his eyes as well as hands; carefully and softly
2583 hinting the key-note from time to time. Standing with an arm drawn round
2584 her, but with a face far more intent on Mr. Jasper than on her singing,
2585 stood Helena, between whom and her brother an instantaneous recognition
2586 passed, in which Mr. Crisparkle saw, or thought he saw, the understanding
2587 that had been spoken of, flash out. Mr. Neville then took his admiring
2588 station, leaning against the piano, opposite the singer; Mr. Crisparkle
2589 sat down by the china shepherdess; Edwin Drood gallantly furled and
2590 unfurled Miss Twinkleton’s fan; and that lady passively claimed that sort
2591 of exhibitor’s proprietorship in the accomplishment on view, which Mr.
2592 Tope, the Verger, daily claimed in the Cathedral service.
2593
2594 [Picture: At the piano]
2595
2596 The song went on. It was a sorrowful strain of parting, and the fresh
2597 young voice was very plaintive and tender. As Jasper watched the pretty
2598 lips, and ever and again hinted the one note, as though it were a low
2599 whisper from himself, the voice became less steady, until all at once the
2600 singer broke into a burst of tears, and shrieked out, with her hands over
2601 her eyes: ‘I can’t bear this! I am frightened! Take me away!’
2602
2603 With one swift turn of her lithe figures Helena laid the little beauty on
2604 a sofa, as if she had never caught her up. Then, on one knee beside her,
2605 and with one hand upon her rosy mouth, while with the other she appealed
2606 to all the rest, Helena said to them: ‘It’s nothing; it’s all over; don’t
2607 speak to her for one minute, and she is well!’
2608
2609 Jasper’s hands had, in the same instant, lifted themselves from the keys,
2610 and were now poised above them, as though he waited to resume. In that
2611 attitude he yet sat quiet: not even looking round, when all the rest had
2612 changed their places and were reassuring one another.
2613
2614 ‘Pussy’s not used to an audience; that’s the fact,’ said Edwin Drood.
2615 ‘She got nervous, and couldn’t hold out. Besides, Jack, you are such a
2616 conscientious master, and require so much, that I believe you make her
2617 afraid of you. No wonder.’
2618
2619 ‘No wonder,’ repeated Helena.
2620
2621 ‘There, Jack, you hear! You would be afraid of him, under similar
2622 circumstances, wouldn’t you, Miss Landless?’
2623
2624 ‘Not under any circumstances,’ returned Helena.
2625
2626 Jasper brought down his hands, looked over his shoulder, and begged to
2627 thank Miss Landless for her vindication of his character. Then he fell
2628 to dumbly playing, without striking the notes, while his little pupil was
2629 taken to an open window for air, and was otherwise petted and restored.
2630 When she was brought back, his place was empty. ‘Jack’s gone, Pussy,’
2631 Edwin told her. ‘I am more than half afraid he didn’t like to be charged
2632 with being the Monster who had frightened you.’ But she answered never a
2633 word, and shivered, as if they had made her a little too cold.
2634
2635 Miss Twinkleton now opining that indeed these were late hours, Mrs.
2636 Crisparkle, for finding ourselves outside the walls of the Nuns’ House,
2637 and that we who undertook the formation of the future wives and mothers
2638 of England (the last words in a lower voice, as requiring to be
2639 communicated in confidence) were really bound (voice coming up again) to
2640 set a better example than one of rakish habits, wrappers were put in
2641 requisition, and the two young cavaliers volunteered to see the ladies
2642 home. It was soon done, and the gate of the Nuns’ House closed upon
2643 them.
2644
2645 The boarders had retired, and only Mrs. Tisher in solitary vigil awaited
2646 the new pupil. Her bedroom being within Rosa’s, very little introduction
2647 or explanation was necessary, before she was placed in charge of her new
2648 friend, and left for the night.
2649
2650 ‘This is a blessed relief, my dear,’ said Helena. ‘I have been dreading
2651 all day, that I should be brought to bay at this time.’
2652
2653 ‘There are not many of us,’ returned Rosa, ‘and we are good-natured
2654 girls; at least the others are; I can answer for them.’
2655
2656 ‘I can answer for you,’ laughed Helena, searching the lovely little face
2657 with her dark, fiery eyes, and tenderly caressing the small figure. ‘You
2658 will be a friend to me, won’t you?’
2659
2660 ‘I hope so. But the idea of my being a friend to you seems too absurd,
2661 though.’
2662
2663 ‘Why?’
2664
2665 ‘O, I am such a mite of a thing, and you are so womanly and handsome.
2666 You seem to have resolution and power enough to crush me. I shrink into
2667 nothing by the side of your presence even.’
2668
2669 ‘I am a neglected creature, my dear, unacquainted with all
2670 accomplishments, sensitively conscious that I have everything to learn,
2671 and deeply ashamed to own my ignorance.’
2672
2673 ‘And yet you acknowledge everything to me!’ said Rosa.
2674
2675 ‘My pretty one, can I help it? There is a fascination in you.’
2676
2677 ‘O! is there though?’ pouted Rosa, half in jest and half in earnest.
2678 ‘What a pity Master Eddy doesn’t feel it more!’
2679
2680 Of course her relations towards that young gentleman had been already
2681 imparted in Minor Canon Corner.
2682
2683 ‘Why, surely he must love you with all his heart!’ cried Helena, with an
2684 earnestness that threatened to blaze into ferocity if he didn’t.
2685
2686 ‘Eh? O, well, I suppose he does,’ said Rosa, pouting again; ‘I am sure I
2687 have no right to say he doesn’t. Perhaps it’s my fault. Perhaps I am
2688 not as nice to him as I ought to be. I don’t think I am. But it _is_ so
2689 ridiculous!’
2690
2691 Helena’s eyes demanded what was.
2692
2693 ‘_We_ are,’ said Rosa, answering as if she had spoken. ‘We are such a
2694 ridiculous couple. And we are always quarrelling.’
2695
2696 ‘Why?’
2697
2698 ‘Because we both know we are ridiculous, my dear!’ Rosa gave that answer
2699 as if it were the most conclusive answer in the world.
2700
2701 Helena’s masterful look was intent upon her face for a few moments, and
2702 then she impulsively put out both her hands and said:
2703
2704 ‘You will be my friend and help me?’
2705
2706 ‘Indeed, my dear, I will,’ replied Rosa, in a tone of affectionate
2707 childishness that went straight and true to her heart; ‘I will be as good
2708 a friend as such a mite of a thing can be to such a noble creature as
2709 you. And be a friend to me, please; I don’t understand myself: and I
2710 want a friend who can understand me, very much indeed.’
2711
2712 Helena Landless kissed her, and retaining both her hands said:
2713
2714 ‘Who is Mr. Jasper?’
2715
2716 Rosa turned aside her head in answering: ‘Eddy’s uncle, and my
2717 music-master.’
2718
2719 ‘You do not love him?’
2720
2721 ‘Ugh!’ She put her hands up to her face, and shook with fear or horror.
2722
2723 ‘You know that he loves you?’
2724
2725 ‘O, don’t, don’t, don’t!’ cried Rosa, dropping on her knees, and clinging
2726 to her new resource. ‘Don’t tell me of it! He terrifies me. He haunts
2727 my thoughts, like a dreadful ghost. I feel that I am never safe from
2728 him. I feel as if he could pass in through the wall when he is spoken
2729 of.’ She actually did look round, as if she dreaded to see him standing
2730 in the shadow behind her.
2731
2732 ‘Try to tell me more about it, darling.’
2733
2734 ‘Yes, I will, I will. Because you are so strong. But hold me the while,
2735 and stay with me afterwards.’
2736
2737 ‘My child! You speak as if he had threatened you in some dark way.’
2738
2739 ‘He has never spoken to me about—that. Never.’
2740
2741 ‘What has he done?’
2742
2743 ‘He has made a slave of me with his looks. He has forced me to
2744 understand him, without his saying a word; and he has forced me to keep
2745 silence, without his uttering a threat. When I play, he never moves his
2746 eyes from my hands. When I sing, he never moves his eyes from my lips.
2747 When he corrects me, and strikes a note, or a chord, or plays a passage,
2748 he himself is in the sounds, whispering that he pursues me as a lover,
2749 and commanding me to keep his secret. I avoid his eyes, but he forces me
2750 to see them without looking at them. Even when a glaze comes over them
2751 (which is sometimes the case), and he seems to wander away into a
2752 frightful sort of dream in which he threatens most, he obliges me to know
2753 it, and to know that he is sitting close at my side, more terrible to me
2754 than ever.’
2755
2756 ‘What is this imagined threatening, pretty one? What is threatened?’
2757
2758 ‘I don’t know. I have never even dared to think or wonder what it is.’
2759
2760 ‘And was this all, to-night?’
2761
2762 ‘This was all; except that to-night when he watched my lips so closely as
2763 I was singing, besides feeling terrified I felt ashamed and passionately
2764 hurt. It was as if he kissed me, and I couldn’t bear it, but cried out.
2765 You must never breathe this to any one. Eddy is devoted to him. But you
2766 said to-night that you would not be afraid of him, under any
2767 circumstances, and that gives me—who am so much afraid of him—courage to
2768 tell only you. Hold me! Stay with me! I am too frightened to be left
2769 by myself.’
2770
2771 The lustrous gipsy-face drooped over the clinging arms and bosom, and the
2772 wild black hair fell down protectingly over the childish form. There was
2773 a slumbering gleam of fire in the intense dark eyes, though they were
2774 then softened with compassion and admiration. Let whomsoever it most
2775 concerned look well to it!
2776
2777
2778
2779
2780 CHAPTER VIII—DAGGERS DRAWN
2781
2782
2783 The two young men, having seen the damsels, their charges, enter the
2784 courtyard of the Nuns’ House, and finding themselves coldly stared at by
2785 the brazen door-plate, as if the battered old beau with the glass in his
2786 eye were insolent, look at one another, look along the perspective of the
2787 moonlit street, and slowly walk away together.
2788
2789 ‘Do you stay here long, Mr. Drood?’ says Neville.
2790
2791 ‘Not this time,’ is the careless answer. ‘I leave for London again,
2792 to-morrow. But I shall be here, off and on, until next Midsummer; then I
2793 shall take my leave of Cloisterham, and England too; for many a long day,
2794 I expect.’
2795
2796 ‘Are you going abroad?’
2797
2798 ‘Going to wake up Egypt a little,’ is the condescending answer.
2799
2800 ‘Are you reading?’
2801
2802 ‘Reading?’ repeats Edwin Drood, with a touch of contempt. ‘No. Doing,
2803 working, engineering. My small patrimony was left a part of the capital
2804 of the Firm I am with, by my father, a former partner; and I am a charge
2805 upon the Firm until I come of age; and then I step into my modest share
2806 in the concern. Jack—you met him at dinner—is, until then, my guardian
2807 and trustee.’
2808
2809 ‘I heard from Mr. Crisparkle of your other good fortune.’
2810
2811 ‘What do you mean by my other good fortune?’
2812
2813 Neville has made his remark in a watchfully advancing, and yet furtive
2814 and shy manner, very expressive of that peculiar air already noticed, of
2815 being at once hunter and hunted. Edwin has made his retort with an
2816 abruptness not at all polite. They stop and interchange a rather heated
2817 look.
2818
2819 ‘I hope,’ says Neville, ‘there is no offence, Mr. Drood, in my innocently
2820 referring to your betrothal?’
2821
2822 ‘By George!’ cries Edwin, leading on again at a somewhat quicker pace;
2823 ‘everybody in this chattering old Cloisterham refers to it I wonder no
2824 public-house has been set up, with my portrait for the sign of The
2825 Betrothed’s Head. Or Pussy’s portrait. One or the other.’
2826
2827 ‘I am not accountable for Mr. Crisparkle’s mentioning the matter to me,
2828 quite openly,’ Neville begins.
2829
2830 ‘No; that’s true; you are not,’ Edwin Drood assents.
2831
2832 ‘But,’ resumes Neville, ‘I am accountable for mentioning it to you. And
2833 I did so, on the supposition that you could not fail to be highly proud
2834 of it.’
2835
2836 Now, there are these two curious touches of human nature working the
2837 secret springs of this dialogue. Neville Landless is already enough
2838 impressed by Little Rosebud, to feel indignant that Edwin Drood (far
2839 below her) should hold his prize so lightly. Edwin Drood is already
2840 enough impressed by Helena, to feel indignant that Helena’s brother (far
2841 below her) should dispose of him so coolly, and put him out of the way so
2842 entirely.
2843
2844 However, the last remark had better be answered. So, says Edwin:
2845
2846 ‘I don’t know, Mr. Neville’ (adopting that mode of address from Mr.
2847 Crisparkle), ‘that what people are proudest of, they usually talk most
2848 about; I don’t know either, that what they are proudest of, they most
2849 like other people to talk about. But I live a busy life, and I speak
2850 under correction by you readers, who ought to know everything, and I
2851 daresay do.’
2852
2853 By this time they had both become savage; Mr. Neville out in the open;
2854 Edwin Drood under the transparent cover of a popular tune, and a stop now
2855 and then to pretend to admire picturesque effects in the moonlight before
2856 him.
2857
2858 ‘It does not seem to me very civil in you,’ remarks Neville, at length,
2859 ‘to reflect upon a stranger who comes here, not having had your
2860 advantages, to try to make up for lost time. But, to be sure, I was not
2861 brought up in “busy life,” and my ideas of civility were formed among
2862 Heathens.’
2863
2864 ‘Perhaps, the best civility, whatever kind of people we are brought up
2865 among,’ retorts Edwin Drood, ‘is to mind our own business. If you will
2866 set me that example, I promise to follow it.’
2867
2868 ‘Do you know that you take a great deal too much upon yourself?’ is the
2869 angry rejoinder, ‘and that in the part of the world I come from, you
2870 would be called to account for it?’
2871
2872 ‘By whom, for instance?’ asks Edwin Drood, coming to a halt, and
2873 surveying the other with a look of disdain.
2874
2875 But, here a startling right hand is laid on Edwin’s shoulder, and Jasper
2876 stands between them. For, it would seem that he, too, has strolled round
2877 by the Nuns’ House, and has come up behind them on the shadowy side of
2878 the road.
2879
2880 ‘Ned, Ned, Ned!’ he says; ‘we must have no more of this. I don’t like
2881 this. I have overheard high words between you two. Remember, my dear
2882 boy, you are almost in the position of host to-night. You belong, as it
2883 were, to the place, and in a manner represent it towards a stranger. Mr.
2884 Neville is a stranger, and you should respect the obligations of
2885 hospitality. And, Mr. Neville,’ laying his left hand on the inner
2886 shoulder of that young gentleman, and thus walking on between them, hand
2887 to shoulder on either side: ‘you will pardon me; but I appeal to you to
2888 govern your temper too. Now, what is amiss? But why ask! Let there be
2889 nothing amiss, and the question is superfluous. We are all three on a
2890 good understanding, are we not?’
2891
2892 After a silent struggle between the two young men who shall speak last,
2893 Edwin Drood strikes in with: ‘So far as I am concerned, Jack, there is no
2894 anger in me.’
2895
2896 ‘Nor in me,’ says Neville Landless, though not so freely; or perhaps so
2897 carelessly. ‘But if Mr. Drood knew all that lies behind me, far away
2898 from here, he might know better how it is that sharp-edged words have
2899 sharp edges to wound me.’
2900
2901 ‘Perhaps,’ says Jasper, in a soothing manner, ‘we had better not qualify
2902 our good understanding. We had better not say anything having the
2903 appearance of a remonstrance or condition; it might not seem generous.
2904 Frankly and freely, you see there is no anger in Ned. Frankly and
2905 freely, there is no anger in you, Mr. Neville?’
2906
2907 ‘None at all, Mr. Jasper.’ Still, not quite so frankly or so freely; or,
2908 be it said once again, not quite so carelessly perhaps.
2909
2910 ‘All over then! Now, my bachelor gatehouse is a few yards from here, and
2911 the heater is on the fire, and the wine and glasses are on the table, and
2912 it is not a stone’s throw from Minor Canon Corner. Ned, you are up and
2913 away to-morrow. We will carry Mr. Neville in with us, to take a
2914 stirrup-cup.’
2915
2916 ‘With all my heart, Jack.’
2917
2918 ‘And with all mine, Mr. Jasper.’ Neville feels it impossible to say
2919 less, but would rather not go. He has an impression upon him that he has
2920 lost hold of his temper; feels that Edwin Drood’s coolness, so far from
2921 being infectious, makes him red-hot.
2922
2923 Mr. Jasper, still walking in the centre, hand to shoulder on either side,
2924 beautifully turns the Refrain of a drinking song, and they all go up to
2925 his rooms. There, the first object visible, when he adds the light of a
2926 lamp to that of the fire, is the portrait over the chimneypicce. It is
2927 not an object calculated to improve the understanding between the two
2928 young men, as rather awkwardly reviving the subject of their difference.
2929 Accordingly, they both glance at it consciously, but say nothing.
2930 Jasper, however (who would appear from his conduct to have gained but an
2931 imperfect clue to the cause of their late high words), directly calls
2932 attention to it.
2933
2934 ‘You recognise that picture, Mr. Neville?’ shading the lamp to throw the
2935 light upon it.
2936
2937 ‘I recognise it, but it is far from flattering the original.’
2938
2939 ‘O, you are hard upon it! It was done by Ned, who made me a present of
2940 it.’
2941
2942 ‘I am sorry for that, Mr. Drood.’ Neville apologises, with a real
2943 intention to apologise; ‘if I had known I was in the artist’s presence—’
2944
2945 ‘O, a joke, sir, a mere joke,’ Edwin cuts in, with a provoking yawn. ‘A
2946 little humouring of Pussy’s points! I’m going to paint her gravely, one
2947 of these days, if she’s good.’
2948
2949 The air of leisurely patronage and indifference with which this is said,
2950 as the speaker throws himself back in a chair and clasps his hands at the
2951 back of his head, as a rest for it, is very exasperating to the excitable
2952 and excited Neville. Jasper looks observantly from the one to the other,
2953 slightly smiles, and turns his back to mix a jug of mulled wine at the
2954 fire. It seems to require much mixing and compounding.
2955
2956 ‘I suppose, Mr. Neville,’ says Edwin, quick to resent the indignant
2957 protest against himself in the face of young Landless, which is fully as
2958 visible as the portrait, or the fire, or the lamp: ‘I suppose that if you
2959 painted the picture of your lady love—’
2960
2961 ‘I can’t paint,’ is the hasty interruption.
2962
2963 ‘That’s your misfortune, and not your fault. You would if you could.
2964 But if you could, I suppose you would make her (no matter what she was in
2965 reality), Juno, Minerva, Diana, and Venus, all in one. Eh?’
2966
2967 ‘I have no lady love, and I can’t say.’
2968
2969 ‘If I were to try my hand,’ says Edwin, with a boyish boastfulness
2970 getting up in him, ‘on a portrait of Miss Landless—in earnest, mind you;
2971 in earnest—you should see what I could do!’
2972
2973 ‘My sister’s consent to sit for it being first got, I suppose? As it
2974 never will be got, I am afraid I shall never see what you can do. I must
2975 bear the loss.’
2976
2977 Jasper turns round from the fire, fills a large goblet glass for Neville,
2978 fills a large goblet glass for Edwin, and hands each his own; then fills
2979 for himself, saying:
2980
2981 ‘Come, Mr. Neville, we are to drink to my nephew, Ned. As it is his foot
2982 that is in the stirrup—metaphorically—our stirrup-cup is to be devoted to
2983 him. Ned, my dearest fellow, my love!’
2984
2985 Jasper sets the example of nearly emptying his glass, and Neville follows
2986 it. Edwin Drood says, ‘Thank you both very much,’ and follows the double
2987 example.
2988
2989 ‘Look at him,’ cries Jasper, stretching out his hand admiringly and
2990 tenderly, though rallyingly too. ‘See where he lounges so easily, Mr.
2991 Neville! The world is all before him where to choose. A life of
2992 stirring work and interest, a life of change and excitement, a life of
2993 domestic ease and love! Look at him!’
2994
2995 Edwin Drood’s face has become quickly and remarkably flushed with the
2996 wine; so has the face of Neville Landless. Edwin still sits thrown back
2997 in his chair, making that rest of clasped hands for his head.
2998
2999 ‘See how little he heeds it all!’ Jasper proceeds in a bantering vein.
3000 ‘It is hardly worth his while to pluck the golden fruit that hangs ripe
3001 on the tree for him. And yet consider the contrast, Mr. Neville. You
3002 and I have no prospect of stirring work and interest, or of change and
3003 excitement, or of domestic ease and love. You and I have no prospect
3004 (unless you are more fortunate than I am, which may easily be), but the
3005 tedious unchanging round of this dull place.’
3006
3007 ‘Upon my soul, Jack,’ says Edwin, complacently, ‘I feel quite apologetic
3008 for having my way smoothed as you describe. But you know what I know,
3009 Jack, and it may not be so very easy as it seems, after all. May it,
3010 Pussy?’ To the portrait, with a snap of his thumb and finger. ‘We have
3011 got to hit it off yet; haven’t we, Pussy? You know what I mean, Jack.’
3012
3013 [Picture: On dangerous ground]
3014
3015 His speech has become thick and indistinct. Jasper, quiet and
3016 self-possessed, looks to Neville, as expecting his answer or comment.
3017 When Neville speaks, _his_ speech is also thick and indistinct.
3018
3019 ‘It might have been better for Mr. Drood to have known some hardships,’
3020 he says, defiantly.
3021
3022 ‘Pray,’ retorts Edwin, turning merely his eyes in that direction, ‘pray
3023 why might it have been better for Mr. Drood to have known some
3024 hardships?’
3025
3026 ‘Ay,’ Jasper assents, with an air of interest; ‘let us know why?’
3027
3028 ‘Because they might have made him more sensible,’ says Neville, ‘of good
3029 fortune that is not by any means necessarily the result of his own
3030 merits.’
3031
3032 Mr. Jasper quickly looks to his nephew for his rejoinder.
3033
3034 ‘Have _you_ known hardships, may I ask?’ says Edwin Drood, sitting
3035 upright.
3036
3037 Mr. Jasper quickly looks to the other for his retort.
3038
3039 ‘I have.’
3040
3041 ‘And what have they made you sensible of?’
3042
3043 Mr. Jasper’s play of eyes between the two holds good throughout the
3044 dialogue, to the end.
3045
3046 ‘I have told you once before to-night.’
3047
3048 ‘You have done nothing of the sort.’
3049
3050 ‘I tell you I have. That you take a great deal too much upon yourself.’
3051
3052 ‘You added something else to that, if I remember?’
3053
3054 ‘Yes, I did say something else.’
3055
3056 ‘Say it again.’
3057
3058 ‘I said that in the part of the world I come from, you would be called to
3059 account for it.’
3060
3061 ‘Only there?’ cries Edwin Drood, with a contemptuous laugh. ‘A long way
3062 off, I believe? Yes; I see! That part of the world is at a safe
3063 distance.’
3064
3065 ‘Say here, then,’ rejoins the other, rising in a fury. ‘Say anywhere!
3066 Your vanity is intolerable, your conceit is beyond endurance; you talk as
3067 if you were some rare and precious prize, instead of a common boaster.
3068 You are a common fellow, and a common boaster.’
3069
3070 ‘Pooh, pooh,’ says Edwin Drood, equally furious, but more collected; ‘how
3071 should you know? You may know a black common fellow, or a black common
3072 boaster, when you see him (and no doubt you have a large acquaintance
3073 that way); but you are no judge of white men.’
3074
3075 This insulting allusion to his dark skin infuriates Neville to that
3076 violent degree, that he flings the dregs of his wine at Edwin Drood, and
3077 is in the act of flinging the goblet after it, when his arm is caught in
3078 the nick of time by Jasper.
3079
3080 ‘Ned, my dear fellow!’ he cries in a loud voice; ‘I entreat you, I
3081 command you, to be still!’ There has been a rush of all the three, and a
3082 clattering of glasses and overturning of chairs. ‘Mr. Neville, for
3083 shame! Give this glass to me. Open your hand, sir. I WILL have it!’
3084
3085 But Neville throws him off, and pauses for an instant, in a raging
3086 passion, with the goblet yet in his uplifted hand. Then, he dashes it
3087 down under the grate, with such force that the broken splinters fly out
3088 again in a shower; and he leaves the house.
3089
3090 When he first emerges into the night air, nothing around him is still or
3091 steady; nothing around him shows like what it is; he only knows that he
3092 stands with a bare head in the midst of a blood-red whirl, waiting to be
3093 struggled with, and to struggle to the death.
3094
3095 But, nothing happening, and the moon looking down upon him as if he were
3096 dead after a fit of wrath, he holds his steam-hammer beating head and
3097 heart, and staggers away. Then, he becomes half-conscious of having
3098 heard himself bolted and barred out, like a dangerous animal; and thinks
3099 what shall he do?
3100
3101 Some wildly passionate ideas of the river dissolve under the spell of the
3102 moonlight on the Cathedral and the graves, and the remembrance of his
3103 sister, and the thought of what he owes to the good man who has but that
3104 very day won his confidence and given him his pledge. He repairs to
3105 Minor Canon Corner, and knocks softly at the door.
3106
3107 It is Mr. Crisparkle’s custom to sit up last of the early household, very
3108 softly touching his piano and practising his favourite parts in concerted
3109 vocal music. The south wind that goes where it lists, by way of Minor
3110 Canon Corner on a still night, is not more subdued than Mr. Crisparkle at
3111 such times, regardful of the slumbers of the china shepherdess.
3112
3113 His knock is immediately answered by Mr. Crisparkle himself. When he
3114 opens the door, candle in hand, his cheerful face falls, and disappointed
3115 amazement is in it.
3116
3117 ‘Mr. Neville! In this disorder! Where have you been?’
3118
3119 ‘I have been to Mr. Jasper’s, sir. With his nephew.’
3120
3121 ‘Come in.’
3122
3123 The Minor Canon props him by the elbow with a strong hand (in a strictly
3124 scientific manner, worthy of his morning trainings), and turns him into
3125 his own little book-room, and shuts the door.’
3126
3127 ‘I have begun ill, sir. I have begun dreadfully ill.’
3128
3129 ‘Too true. You are not sober, Mr. Neville.’
3130
3131 ‘I am afraid I am not, sir, though I can satisfy you at another time that
3132 I have had a very little indeed to drink, and that it overcame me in the
3133 strangest and most sudden manner.’
3134
3135 ‘Mr. Neville, Mr. Neville,’ says the Minor Canon, shaking his head with a
3136 sorrowful smile; ‘I have heard that said before.’
3137
3138 ‘I think—my mind is much confused, but I think—it is equally true of Mr.
3139 Jasper’s nephew, sir.’
3140
3141 ‘Very likely,’ is the dry rejoinder.
3142
3143 ‘We quarrelled, sir. He insulted me most grossly. He had heated that
3144 tigerish blood I told you of to-day, before then.’
3145
3146 ‘Mr. Neville,’ rejoins the Minor Canon, mildly, but firmly: ‘I request
3147 you not to speak to me with that clenched right hand. Unclench it, if
3148 you please.’
3149
3150 ‘He goaded me, sir,’ pursues the young man, instantly obeying, ‘beyond my
3151 power of endurance. I cannot say whether or no he meant it at first, but
3152 he did it. He certainly meant it at last. In short, sir,’ with an
3153 irrepressible outburst, ‘in the passion into which he lashed me, I would
3154 have cut him down if I could, and I tried to do it.’
3155
3156 ‘You have clenched that hand again,’ is Mr. Crisparkle’s quiet
3157 commentary.
3158
3159 ‘I beg your pardon, sir.’
3160
3161 ‘You know your room, for I showed it you before dinner; but I will
3162 accompany you to it once more. Your arm, if you please. Softly, for the
3163 house is all a-bed.’
3164
3165 Scooping his hand into the same scientific elbow-rest as before, and
3166 backing it up with the inert strength of his arm, as skilfully as a
3167 Police Expert, and with an apparent repose quite unattainable by novices,
3168 Mr. Crisparkle conducts his pupil to the pleasant and orderly old room
3169 prepared for him. Arrived there, the young man throws himself into a
3170 chair, and, flinging his arms upon his reading-table, rests his head upon
3171 them with an air of wretched self-reproach.
3172
3173 The gentle Minor Canon has had it in his thoughts to leave the room,
3174 without a word. But looking round at the door, and seeing this dejected
3175 figure, he turns back to it, touches it with a mild hand, says ‘Good
3176 night!’ A sob is his only acknowledgment. He might have had many a
3177 worse; perhaps, could have had few better.
3178
3179 Another soft knock at the outer door attracts his attention as he goes
3180 down-stairs. He opens it to Mr. Jasper, holding in his hand the pupil’s
3181 hat.
3182
3183 ‘We have had an awful scene with him,’ says Jasper, in a low voice.
3184
3185 ‘Has it been so bad as that?’
3186
3187 ‘Murderous!’
3188
3189 Mr. Crisparkle remonstrates: ‘No, no, no. Do not use such strong words.’
3190
3191 ‘He might have laid my dear boy dead at my feet. It is no fault of his,
3192 that he did not. But that I was, through the mercy of God, swift and
3193 strong with him, he would have cut him down on my hearth.’
3194
3195 The phrase smites home. ‘Ah!’ thinks Mr. Crisparkle, ‘his own words!’
3196
3197 ‘Seeing what I have seen to-night, and hearing what I have heard,’ adds
3198 Jasper, with great earnestness, ‘I shall never know peace of mind when
3199 there is danger of those two coming together, with no one else to
3200 interfere. It was horrible. There is something of the tiger in his dark
3201 blood.’
3202
3203 ‘Ah!’ thinks Mr. Crisparkle, ‘so he said!’
3204
3205 ‘You, my dear sir,’ pursues Jasper, taking his hand, ‘even you, have
3206 accepted a dangerous charge.’
3207
3208 ‘You need have no fear for me, Jasper,’ returns Mr. Crisparkle, with a
3209 quiet smile. ‘I have none for myself.’
3210
3211 ‘I have none for myself,’ returns Jasper, with an emphasis on the last
3212 pronoun, ‘because I am not, nor am I in the way of being, the object of
3213 his hostility. But you may be, and my dear boy has been. Good night!’
3214
3215 Mr. Crisparkle goes in, with the hat that has so easily, so almost
3216 imperceptibly, acquired the right to be hung up in his hall; hangs it up;
3217 and goes thoughtfully to bed.
3218
3219
3220
3221
3222 CHAPTER IX—BIRDS IN THE BUSH
3223
3224
3225 Rosa, having no relation that she knew of in the world, had, from the
3226 seventh year of her age, known no home but the Nuns’ House, and no mother
3227 but Miss Twinkleton. Her remembrance of her own mother was of a pretty
3228 little creature like herself (not much older than herself it seemed to
3229 her), who had been brought home in her father’s arms, drowned. The fatal
3230 accident had happened at a party of pleasure. Every fold and colour in
3231 the pretty summer dress, and even the long wet hair, with scattered
3232 petals of ruined flowers still clinging to it, as the dead young figure,
3233 in its sad, sad beauty lay upon the bed, were fixed indelibly in Rosa’s
3234 recollection. So were the wild despair and the subsequent bowed-down
3235 grief of her poor young father, who died broken-hearted on the first
3236 anniversary of that hard day.
3237
3238 The betrothal of Rosa grew out of the soothing of his year of mental
3239 distress by his fast friend and old college companion, Drood: who
3240 likewise had been left a widower in his youth. But he, too, went the
3241 silent road into which all earthly pilgrimages merge, some sooner, and
3242 some later; and thus the young couple had come to be as they were.
3243
3244 The atmosphere of pity surrounding the little orphan girl when she first
3245 came to Cloisterham, had never cleared away. It had taken brighter hues
3246 as she grew older, happier, prettier; now it had been golden, now
3247 roseate, and now azure; but it had always adorned her with some soft
3248 light of its own. The general desire to console and caress her, had
3249 caused her to be treated in the beginning as a child much younger than
3250 her years; the same desire had caused her to be still petted when she was
3251 a child no longer. Who should be her favourite, who should anticipate
3252 this or that small present, or do her this or that small service; who
3253 should take her home for the holidays; who should write to her the
3254 oftenest when they were separated, and whom she would most rejoice to see
3255 again when they were reunited; even these gentle rivalries were not
3256 without their slight dashes of bitterness in the Nuns’ House. Well for
3257 the poor Nuns in their day, if they hid no harder strife under their
3258 veils and rosaries!
3259
3260 Thus Rosa had grown to be an amiable, giddy, wilful, winning little
3261 creature; spoilt, in the sense of counting upon kindness from all around
3262 her; but not in the sense of repaying it with indifference. Possessing
3263 an exhaustless well of affection in her nature, its sparkling waters had
3264 freshened and brightened the Nuns’ House for years, and yet its depths
3265 had never yet been moved: what might betide when that came to pass; what
3266 developing changes might fall upon the heedless head, and light heart,
3267 then; remained to be seen.
3268
3269 By what means the news that there had been a quarrel between the two
3270 young men overnight, involving even some kind of onslaught by Mr. Neville
3271 upon Edwin Drood, got into Miss Twinkleton’s establishment before
3272 breakfast, it is impossible to say. Whether it was brought in by the
3273 birds of the air, or came blowing in with the very air itself, when the
3274 casement windows were set open; whether the baker brought it kneaded into
3275 the bread, or the milkman delivered it as part of the adulteration of his
3276 milk; or the housemaids, beating the dust out of their mats against the
3277 gateposts, received it in exchange deposited on the mats by the town
3278 atmosphere; certain it is that the news permeated every gable of the old
3279 building before Miss Twinkleton was down, and that Miss Twinkleton
3280 herself received it through Mrs. Tisher, while yet in the act of
3281 dressing; or (as she might have expressed the phrase to a parent or
3282 guardian of a mythological turn) of sacrificing to the Graces.
3283
3284 Miss Landless’s brother had thrown a bottle at Mr. Edwin Drood.
3285
3286 Miss Landless’s brother had thrown a knife at Mr. Edwin Drood.
3287
3288 A knife became suggestive of a fork; and Miss Landless’s brother had
3289 thrown a fork at Mr. Edwin Drood.
3290
3291 As in the governing precedence of Peter Piper, alleged to have picked the
3292 peck of pickled pepper, it was held physically desirable to have evidence
3293 of the existence of the peck of pickled pepper which Peter Piper was
3294 alleged to have picked; so, in this case, it was held psychologically
3295 important to know why Miss Landless’s brother threw a bottle, knife, or
3296 fork-or bottle, knife, _and_ fork—for the cook had been given to
3297 understand it was all three—at Mr. Edwin Drood?
3298
3299 Well, then. Miss Landless’s brother had said he admired Miss Bud. Mr.
3300 Edwin Drood had said to Miss Landless’s brother that he had no business
3301 to admire Miss Bud. Miss Landless’s brother had then ‘up’d’ (this was
3302 the cook’s exact information) with the bottle, knife, fork, and decanter
3303 (the decanter now coolly flying at everybody’s head, without the least
3304 introduction), and thrown them all at Mr. Edwin Drood.
3305
3306 Poor little Rosa put a forefinger into each of her ears when these
3307 rumours began to circulate, and retired into a corner, beseeching not to
3308 be told any more; but Miss Landless, begging permission of Miss
3309 Twinkleton to go and speak with her brother, and pretty plainly showing
3310 that she would take it if it were not given, struck out the more definite
3311 course of going to Mr. Crisparkle’s for accurate intelligence.
3312
3313 When she came back (being first closeted with Miss Twinkleton, in order
3314 that anything objectionable in her tidings might be retained by that
3315 discreet filter), she imparted to Rosa only, what had taken place;
3316 dwelling with a flushed cheek on the provocation her brother had
3317 received, but almost limiting it to that last gross affront as crowning
3318 ‘some other words between them,’ and, out of consideration for her new
3319 friend, passing lightly over the fact that the other words had originated
3320 in her lover’s taking things in general so very easily. To Rosa direct,
3321 she brought a petition from her brother that she would forgive him; and,
3322 having delivered it with sisterly earnestness, made an end of the
3323 subject.
3324
3325 It was reserved for Miss Twinkleton to tone down the public mind of the
3326 Nuns’ House. That lady, therefore, entering in a stately manner what
3327 plebeians might have called the school-room, but what, in the patrician
3328 language of the head of the Nuns’ House, was euphuistically, not to say
3329 round-aboutedly, denominated ‘the apartment allotted to study,’ and
3330 saying with a forensic air, ‘Ladies!’ all rose. Mrs. Tisher at the same
3331 time grouped herself behind her chief, as representing Queen Elizabeth’s
3332 first historical female friend at Tilbury fort. Miss Twinkleton then
3333 proceeded to remark that Rumour, Ladies, had been represented by the bard
3334 of Avon—needless were it to mention the immortal SHAKESPEARE, also called
3335 the Swan of his native river, not improbably with some reference to the
3336 ancient superstition that that bird of graceful plumage (Miss Jennings
3337 will please stand upright) sang sweetly on the approach of death, for
3338 which we have no ornithological authority,—Rumour, Ladies, had been
3339 represented by that bard—hem!—
3340
3341 ‘who drew
3342 The celebrated Jew,’
3343
3344 as painted full of tongues. Rumour in Cloisterham (Miss Ferdinand will
3345 honour me with her attention) was no exception to the great limner’s
3346 portrait of Rumour elsewhere. A slight _fracas_ between two young
3347 gentlemen occurring last night within a hundred miles of these peaceful
3348 walls (Miss Ferdinand, being apparently incorrigible, will have the
3349 kindness to write out this evening, in the original language, the first
3350 four fables of our vivacious neighbour, Monsieur La Fontaine) had been
3351 very grossly exaggerated by Rumour’s voice. In the first alarm and
3352 anxiety arising from our sympathy with a sweet young friend, not wholly
3353 to be dissociated from one of the gladiators in the bloodless arena in
3354 question (the impropriety of Miss Reynolds’s appearing to stab herself in
3355 the hand with a pin, is far too obvious, and too glaringly unladylike, to
3356 be pointed out), we descended from our maiden elevation to discuss this
3357 uncongenial and this unfit theme. Responsible inquiries having assured
3358 us that it was but one of those ‘airy nothings’ pointed at by the Poet
3359 (whose name and date of birth Miss Giggles will supply within half an
3360 hour), we would now discard the subject, and concentrate our minds upon
3361 the grateful labours of the day.
3362
3363 But the subject so survived all day, nevertheless, that Miss Ferdinand
3364 got into new trouble by surreptitiously clapping on a paper moustache at
3365 dinner-time, and going through the motions of aiming a water-bottle at
3366 Miss Giggles, who drew a table-spoon in defence.
3367
3368 Now, Rosa thought of this unlucky quarrel a great deal, and thought of it
3369 with an uncomfortable feeling that she was involved in it, as cause, or
3370 consequence, or what not, through being in a false position altogether as
3371 to her marriage engagement. Never free from such uneasiness when she was
3372 with her affianced husband, it was not likely that she would be free from
3373 it when they were apart. To-day, too, she was cast in upon herself, and
3374 deprived of the relief of talking freely with her new friend, because the
3375 quarrel had been with Helena’s brother, and Helena undisguisedly avoided
3376 the subject as a delicate and difficult one to herself. At this critical
3377 time, of all times, Rosa’s guardian was announced as having come to see
3378 her.
3379
3380 Mr. Grewgious had been well selected for his trust, as a man of
3381 incorruptible integrity, but certainly for no other appropriate quality
3382 discernible on the surface. He was an arid, sandy man, who, if he had
3383 been put into a grinding-mill, looked as if he would have ground
3384 immediately into high-dried snuff. He had a scanty flat crop of hair, in
3385 colour and consistency like some very mangy yellow fur tippet; it was so
3386 unlike hair, that it must have been a wig, but for the stupendous
3387 improbability of anybody’s voluntarily sporting such a head. The little
3388 play of feature that his face presented, was cut deep into it, in a few
3389 hard curves that made it more like work; and he had certain notches in
3390 his forehead, which looked as though Nature had been about to touch them
3391 into sensibility or refinement, when she had impatiently thrown away the
3392 chisel, and said: ‘I really cannot be worried to finish off this man; let
3393 him go as he is.’
3394
3395 With too great length of throat at his upper end, and too much ankle-bone
3396 and heel at his lower; with an awkward and hesitating manner; with a
3397 shambling walk; and with what is called a near sight—which perhaps
3398 prevented his observing how much white cotton stocking he displayed to
3399 the public eye, in contrast with his black suit—Mr. Grewgious still had
3400 some strange capacity in him of making on the whole an agreeable
3401 impression.
3402
3403 Mr. Grewgious was discovered by his ward, much discomfited by being in
3404 Miss Twinkleton’s company in Miss Twinkleton’s own sacred room. Dim
3405 forebodings of being examined in something, and not coming well out of
3406 it, seemed to oppress the poor gentleman when found in these
3407 circumstances.
3408
3409 ‘My dear, how do you do? I am glad to see you. My dear, how much
3410 improved you are. Permit me to hand you a chair, my dear.’
3411
3412 Miss Twinkleton rose at her little writing-table, saying, with general
3413 sweetness, as to the polite Universe: ‘Will you permit me to retire?’
3414
3415 ‘By no means, madam, on my account. I beg that you will not move.’
3416
3417 ‘I must entreat permission to _move_,’ returned Miss Twinkleton,
3418 repeating the word with a charming grace; ‘but I will not withdraw, since
3419 you are so obliging. If I wheel my desk to this corner window, shall I
3420 be in the way?’
3421
3422 ‘Madam! In the way!’
3423
3424 ‘You are very kind.—Rosa, my dear, you will be under no restraint, I am
3425 sure.’
3426
3427 Here Mr. Grewgious, left by the fire with Rosa, said again: ‘My dear, how
3428 do you do? I am glad to see you, my dear.’ And having waited for her to
3429 sit down, sat down himself.
3430
3431 ‘My visits,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘are, like those of the angels—not that
3432 I compare myself to an angel.’
3433
3434 ‘No, sir,’ said Rosa.
3435
3436 ‘Not by any means,’ assented Mr. Grewgious. ‘I merely refer to my
3437 visits, which are few and far between. The angels are, we know very
3438 well, up-stairs.’
3439
3440 Miss Twinkleton looked round with a kind of stiff stare.
3441
3442 ‘I refer, my dear,’ said Mr. Grewgious, laying his hand on Rosa’s, as the
3443 possibility thrilled through his frame of his otherwise seeming to take
3444 the awful liberty of calling Miss Twinkleton my dear; ‘I refer to the
3445 other young ladies.’
3446
3447 Miss Twinkleton resumed her writing.
3448
3449 Mr. Grewgious, with a sense of not having managed his opening point quite
3450 as neatly as he might have desired, smoothed his head from back to front
3451 as if he had just dived, and were pressing the water out—this smoothing
3452 action, however superfluous, was habitual with him—and took a pocket-book
3453 from his coat-pocket, and a stump of black-lead pencil from his
3454 waistcoat-pocket.
3455
3456 ‘I made,’ he said, turning the leaves: ‘I made a guiding memorandum or
3457 so—as I usually do, for I have no conversational powers whatever—to which
3458 I will, with your permission, my dear, refer. “Well and happy.” Truly.
3459 You are well and happy, my dear? You look so.’
3460
3461 ‘Yes, indeed, sir,’ answered Rosa.
3462
3463 ‘For which,’ said Mr. Grewgious, with a bend of his head towards the
3464 corner window, ‘our warmest acknowledgments are due, and I am sure are
3465 rendered, to the maternal kindness and the constant care and
3466 consideration of the lady whom I have now the honour to see before me.’
3467
3468 This point, again, made but a lame departure from Mr. Grewgious, and
3469 never got to its destination; for, Miss Twinkleton, feeling that the
3470 courtesies required her to be by this time quite outside the
3471 conversation, was biting the end of her pen, and looking upward, as
3472 waiting for the descent of an idea from any member of the Celestial Nine
3473 who might have one to spare.
3474
3475 Mr. Grewgious smoothed his smooth head again, and then made another
3476 reference to his pocket-book; lining out ‘well and happy,’ as disposed
3477 of.
3478
3479 ‘“Pounds, shillings, and pence,” is my next note. A dry subject for a
3480 young lady, but an important subject too. Life is pounds, shillings, and
3481 pence. Death is—’ A sudden recollection of the death of her two parents
3482 seemed to stop him, and he said in a softer tone, and evidently inserting
3483 the negative as an after-thought: ‘Death is _not_ pounds, shillings, and
3484 pence.’
3485
3486 His voice was as hard and dry as himself, and Fancy might have ground it
3487 straight, like himself, into high-dried snuff. And yet, through the very
3488 limited means of expression that he possessed, he seemed to express
3489 kindness. If Nature had but finished him off, kindness might have been
3490 recognisable in his face at this moment. But if the notches in his
3491 forehead wouldn’t fuse together, and if his face would work and couldn’t
3492 play, what could he do, poor man!
3493
3494 ‘“Pounds, shillings, and pence.” You find your allowance always
3495 sufficient for your wants, my dear?’
3496
3497 Rosa wanted for nothing, and therefore it was ample.
3498
3499 ‘And you are not in debt?’
3500
3501 Rosa laughed at the idea of being in debt. It seemed, to her
3502 inexperience, a comical vagary of the imagination. Mr. Grewgious
3503 stretched his near sight to be sure that this was her view of the case.
3504 ‘Ah!’ he said, as comment, with a furtive glance towards Miss Twinkleton,
3505 and lining out pounds, shillings, and pence: ‘I spoke of having got among
3506 the angels! So I did!’
3507
3508 Rosa felt what his next memorandum would prove to be, and was blushing
3509 and folding a crease in her dress with one embarrassed hand, long before
3510 he found it.
3511
3512 ‘“Marriage.” Hem!’ Mr. Grewgious carried his smoothing hand down over
3513 his eyes and nose, and even chin, before drawing his chair a little
3514 nearer, and speaking a little more confidentially: ‘I now touch, my dear,
3515 upon the point that is the direct cause of my troubling you with the
3516 present visit. Othenwise, being a particularly Angular man, I should not
3517 have intruded here. I am the last man to intrude into a sphere for which
3518 I am so entirely unfitted. I feel, on these premises, as if I was a
3519 bear—with the cramp—in a youthful Cotillon.’
3520
3521 His ungainliness gave him enough of the air of his simile to set Rosa off
3522 laughing heartily.
3523
3524 ‘It strikes you in the same light,’ said Mr. Grewgious, with perfect
3525 calmness. ‘Just so. To return to my memorandum. Mr. Edwin has been to
3526 and fro here, as was arranged. You have mentioned that, in your
3527 quarterly letters to me. And you like him, and he likes you.’
3528
3529 ‘I _like_ him very much, sir,’ rejoined Rosa.
3530
3531 ‘So I said, my dear,’ returned her guardian, for whose ear the timid
3532 emphasis was much too fine. ‘Good. And you correspond.’
3533
3534 ‘We write to one another,’ said Rosa, pouting, as she recalled their
3535 epistolary differences.
3536
3537 ‘Such is the meaning that I attach to the word “correspond” in this
3538 application, my dear,’ said Mr. Grewgious. ‘Good. All goes well, time
3539 works on, and at this next Christmas-time it will become necessary, as a
3540 matter of form, to give the exemplary lady in the corner window, to whom
3541 we are so much indebted, business notice of your departure in the ensuing
3542 half-year. Your relations with her are far more than business relations,
3543 no doubt; but a residue of business remains in them, and business is
3544 business ever. I am a particularly Angular man,’ proceeded Mr.
3545 Grewgious, as if it suddenly occurred to him to mention it, ‘and I am not
3546 used to give anything away. If, for these two reasons, some competent
3547 Proxy would give _you_ away, I should take it very kindly.’
3548
3549 Rosa intimated, with her eyes on the ground, that she thought a
3550 substitute might be found, if required.
3551
3552 ‘Surely, surely,’ said Mr. Grewgious. ‘For instance, the gentleman who
3553 teaches Dancing here—he would know how to do it with graceful propriety.
3554 He would advance and retire in a manner satisfactory to the feelings of
3555 the officiating clergyman, and of yourself, and the bridegroom, and all
3556 parties concerned. I am—I am a particularly Angular man,’ said Mr.
3557 Grewgious, as if he had made up his mind to screw it out at last: ‘and
3558 should only blunder.’
3559
3560 Rosa sat still and silent. Perhaps her mind had not got quite so far as
3561 the ceremony yet, but was lagging on the way there.
3562
3563 ‘Memorandum, “Will.” Now, my dear,’ said Mr. Grewgious, referring to his
3564 notes, disposing of ‘Marriage’ with his pencil, and taking a paper from
3565 his pocket; ‘although. I have before possessed you with the contents of
3566 your father’s will, I think it right at this time to leave a certified
3567 copy of it in your hands. And although Mr. Edwin is also aware of its
3568 contents, I think it right at this time likewise to place a certified
3569 copy of it in Mr. Jasper’s hand—’
3570
3571 ‘Not in his own!’ asked Rosa, looking up quickly. ‘Cannot the copy go to
3572 Eddy himself?’
3573
3574 ‘Why, yes, my dear, if you particularly wish it; but I spoke of Mr.
3575 Jasper as being his trustee.’
3576
3577 ‘I do particularly wish it, if you please,’ said Rosa, hurriedly and
3578 earnestly; ‘I don’t like Mr. Jasper to come between us, in any way.’
3579
3580 ‘It is natural, I suppose,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘that your young husband
3581 should be all in all. Yes. You observe that I say, I suppose. The fact
3582 is, I am a particularly Unnatural man, and I don’t know from my own
3583 knowledge.’
3584
3585 Rosa looked at him with some wonder.
3586
3587 ‘I mean,’ he explained, ‘that young ways were never my ways. I was the
3588 only offspring of parents far advanced in life, and I half believe I was
3589 born advanced in life myself. No personality is intended towards the
3590 name you will so soon change, when I remark that while the general growth
3591 of people seem to have come into existence, buds, I seem to have come
3592 into existence a chip. I was a chip—and a very dry one—when I first
3593 became aware of myself. Respecting the other certified copy, your wish
3594 shall be complied with. Respecting your inheritance, I think you know
3595 all. It is an annuity of two hundred and fifty pounds. The savings upon
3596 that annuity, and some other items to your credit, all duly carried to
3597 account, with vouchers, will place you in possession of a lump-sum of
3598 money, rather exceeding Seventeen Hundred Pounds. I am empowered to
3599 advance the cost of your preparations for your marriage out of that fund.
3600 All is told.’
3601
3602 ‘Will you please tell me,’ said Rosa, taking the paper with a prettily
3603 knitted brow, but not opening it: ‘whether I am right in what I am going
3604 to say? I can understand what you tell me, so very much better than what
3605 I read in law-writings. My poor papa and Eddy’s father made their
3606 agreement together, as very dear and firm and fast friends, in order that
3607 we, too, might be very dear and firm and fast friends after them?’
3608
3609 ‘Just so.’
3610
3611 ‘For the lasting good of both of us, and the lasting happiness of both of
3612 us?’
3613
3614 ‘Just so.’
3615
3616 ‘That we might be to one another even much more than they had been to one
3617 another?’
3618
3619 ‘Just so.’
3620
3621 ‘It was not bound upon Eddy, and it was not bound upon me, by any
3622 forfeit, in case—’
3623
3624 ‘Don’t be agitated, my dear. In the case that it brings tears into your
3625 affectionate eyes even to picture to yourself—in the case of your not
3626 marrying one another—no, no forfeiture on either side. You would then
3627 have been my ward until you were of age. No worse would have befallen
3628 you. Bad enough perhaps!’
3629
3630 ‘And Eddy?’
3631
3632 ‘He would have come into his partnership derived from his father, and
3633 into its arrears to his credit (if any), on attaining his majority, just
3634 as now.’
3635
3636 Rosa, with her perplexed face and knitted brow, bit the corner of her
3637 attested copy, as she sat with her head on one side, looking abstractedly
3638 on the floor, and smoothing it with her foot.
3639
3640 ‘In short,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘this betrothal is a wish, a sentiment, a
3641 friendly project, tenderly expressed on both sides. That it was strongly
3642 felt, and that there was a lively hope that it would prosper, there can
3643 be no doubt. When you were both children, you began to be accustomed to
3644 it, and it _has_ prospered. But circumstances alter cases; and I made
3645 this visit to-day, partly, indeed principally, to discharge myself of the
3646 duty of telling you, my dear, that two young people can only be betrothed
3647 in marriage (except as a matter of convenience, and therefore mockery and
3648 misery) of their own free will, their own attachment, and their own
3649 assurance (it may or it may not prove a mistaken one, but we must take
3650 our chance of that), that they are suited to each other, and will make
3651 each other happy. Is it to be supposed, for example, that if either of
3652 your fathers were living now, and had any mistrust on that subject, his
3653 mind would not be changed by the change of circumstances involved in the
3654 change of your years? Untenable, unreasonable, inconclusive, and
3655 preposterous!’
3656
3657 Mr. Grewgious said all this, as if he were reading it aloud; or, still
3658 more, as if he were repeating a lesson. So expressionless of any
3659 approach to spontaneity were his face and manner.
3660
3661 ‘I have now, my dear,’ he added, blurring out ‘Will’ with his pencil,
3662 ‘discharged myself of what is doubtless a formal duty in this case, but
3663 still a duty in such a case. Memorandum, “Wishes.” My dear, is there
3664 any wish of yours that I can further?’
3665
3666 Rosa shook her head, with an almost plaintive air of hesitation in want
3667 of help.
3668
3669 ‘Is there any instruction that I can take from you with reference to your
3670 affairs?’
3671
3672 ‘I—I should like to settle them with Eddy first, if you please,’ said
3673 Rosa, plaiting the crease in her dress.
3674
3675 ‘Surely, surely,’ returned Mr. Grewgious. ‘You two should be of one mind
3676 in all things. Is the young gentleman expected shortly?’
3677
3678 ‘He has gone away only this morning. He will be back at Christmas.’
3679
3680 ‘Nothing could happen better. You will, on his return at Christmas,
3681 arrange all matters of detail with him; you will then communicate with
3682 me; and I will discharge myself (as a mere business acquaintance) of my
3683 business responsibilities towards the accomplished lady in the corner
3684 window. They will accrue at that season.’ Blurring pencil once again.
3685 ‘Memorandum, “Leave.” Yes. I will now, my dear, take my leave.’
3686
3687 ‘Could I,’ said Rosa, rising, as he jerked out of his chair in his
3688 ungainly way: ‘could I ask you, most kindly to come to me at Christmas,
3689 if I had anything particular to say to you?’
3690
3691 ‘Why, certainly, certainly,’ he rejoined; apparently—if such a word can
3692 be used of one who had no apparent lights or shadows about
3693 him—complimented by the question. ‘As a particularly Angular man, I do
3694 not fit smoothly into the social circle, and consequently I have no other
3695 engagement at Christmas-time than to partake, on the twenty-fifth, of a
3696 boiled turkey and celery sauce with a—with a particularly Angular clerk I
3697 have the good fortune to possess, whose father, being a Norfolk farmer,
3698 sends him up (the turkey up), as a present to me, from the neighbourhood
3699 of Norwich. I should be quite proud of your wishing to see me, my dear.
3700 As a professional Receiver of rents, so very few people _do_ wish to see
3701 me, that the novelty would be bracing.’
3702
3703 For his ready acquiescence, the grateful Rosa put her hands upon his
3704 shoulders, stood on tiptoe, and instantly kissed him.
3705
3706 ‘Lord bless me!’ cried Mr. Grewgious. ‘Thank you, my dear! The honour
3707 is almost equal to the pleasure. Miss Twinkleton, madam, I have had a
3708 most satisfactory conversation with my ward, and I will now release you
3709 from the incumbrance of my presence.’
3710
3711 ‘Nay, sir,’ rejoined Miss Twinkleton, rising with a gracious
3712 condescension: ‘say not incumbrance. Not so, by any means. I cannot
3713 permit you to say so.’
3714
3715 ‘Thank you, madam. I have read in the newspapers,’ said Mr. Grewgious,
3716 stammering a little, ‘that when a distinguished visitor (not that I am
3717 one: far from it) goes to a school (not that this is one: far from it),
3718 he asks for a holiday, or some sort of grace. It being now the afternoon
3719 in the—College—of which you are the eminent head, the young ladies might
3720 gain nothing, except in name, by having the rest of the day allowed them.
3721 But if there is any young lady at all under a cloud, might I solicit—’
3722
3723 ‘Ah, Mr. Grewgious, Mr. Grewgious!’ cried Miss Twinkleton, with a
3724 chastely-rallying forefinger. ‘O you gentlemen, you gentlemen! Fie for
3725 shame, that you are so hard upon us poor maligned disciplinarians of our
3726 sex, for your sakes! But as Miss Ferdinand is at present weighed down by
3727 an incubus’—Miss Twinkleton might have said a pen-and-ink-ubus of writing
3728 out Monsieur La Fontaine—‘go to her, Rosa my dear, and tell her the
3729 penalty is remitted, in deference to the intercession of your guardian,
3730 Mr. Grewgious.’
3731
3732 Miss Twinkleton here achieved a curtsey, suggestive of marvels happening
3733 to her respected legs, and which she came out of nobly, three yards
3734 behind her starting-point.
3735
3736 As he held it incumbent upon him to call on Mr. Jasper before leaving
3737 Cloisterham, Mr. Grewgious went to the gatehouse, and climbed its postern
3738 stair. But Mr. Jasper’s door being closed, and presenting on a slip of
3739 paper the word ‘Cathedral,’ the fact of its being service-time was borne
3740 into the mind of Mr. Grewgious. So he descended the stair again, and,
3741 crossing the Close, paused at the great western folding-door of the
3742 Cathedral, which stood open on the fine and bright, though short-lived,
3743 afternoon, for the airing of the place.
3744
3745 ‘Dear me,’ said Mr. Grewgious, peeping in, ‘it’s like looking down the
3746 throat of Old Time.’
3747
3748 Old Time heaved a mouldy sigh from tomb and arch and vault; and gloomy
3749 shadows began to deepen in corners; and damps began to rise from green
3750 patches of stone; and jewels, cast upon the pavement of the nave from
3751 stained glass by the declining sun, began to perish. Within the
3752 grill-gate of the chancel, up the steps surmounted loomingly by the
3753 fast-darkening organ, white robes could be dimly seen, and one feeble
3754 voice, rising and falling in a cracked, monotonous mutter, could at
3755 intervals be faintly heard. In the free outer air, the river, the green
3756 pastures, and the brown arable lands, the teeming hills and dales, were
3757 reddened by the sunset: while the distant little windows in windmills and
3758 farm homesteads, shone, patches of bright beaten gold. In the Cathedral,
3759 all became gray, murky, and sepulchral, and the cracked monotonous mutter
3760 went on like a dying voice, until the organ and the choir burst forth,
3761 and drowned it in a sea of music. Then, the sea fell, and the dying
3762 voice made another feeble effort, and then the sea rose high, and beat
3763 its life out, and lashed the roof, and surged among the arches, and
3764 pierced the heights of the great tower; and then the sea was dry, and all
3765 was still.
3766
3767 Mr. Grewgious had by that time walked to the chancel-steps, where he met
3768 the living waters coming out.
3769
3770 ‘Nothing is the matter?’ Thus Jasper accosted him, rather quickly. ‘You
3771 have not been sent for?’
3772
3773 ‘Not at all, not at all. I came down of my own accord. I have been to
3774 my pretty ward’s, and am now homeward bound again.’
3775
3776 ‘You found her thriving?’
3777
3778 ‘Blooming indeed. Most blooming. I merely came to tell her, seriously,
3779 what a betrothal by deceased parents is.’
3780
3781 ‘And what is it—according to your judgment?’
3782
3783 Mr. Grewgious noticed the whiteness of the lips that asked the question,
3784 and put it down to the chilling account of the Cathedral.
3785
3786 ‘I merely came to tell her that it could not be considered binding,
3787 against any such reason for its dissolution as a want of affection, or
3788 want of disposition to carry it into effect, on the side of either
3789 party.’
3790
3791 ‘May I ask, had you any especial reason for telling her that?’
3792
3793 Mr. Grewgious answered somewhat sharply: ‘The especial reason of doing my
3794 duty, sir. Simply that.’ Then he added: ‘Come, Mr. Jasper; I know your
3795 affection for your nephew, and that you are quick to feel on his behalf.
3796 I assure you that this implies not the least doubt of, or disrespect to,
3797 your nephew.’
3798
3799 ‘You could not,’ returned Jasper, with a friendly pressure of his arm, as
3800 they walked on side by side, ‘speak more handsomely.’
3801
3802 Mr. Grewgious pulled off his hat to smooth his head, and, having smoothed
3803 it, nodded it contentedly, and put his hat on again.
3804
3805 ‘I will wager,’ said Jasper, smiling—his lips were still so white that he
3806 was conscious of it, and bit and moistened them while speaking: ‘I will
3807 wager that she hinted no wish to be released from Ned.’
3808
3809 ‘And you will win your wager, if you do,’ retorted Mr. Grewgious. ‘We
3810 should allow some margin for little maidenly delicacies in a young
3811 motherless creature, under such circumstances, I suppose; it is not in my
3812 line; what do you think?’
3813
3814 ‘There can be no doubt of it.’
3815
3816 ‘I am glad you say so. Because,’ proceeded Mr. Grewgious, who had all
3817 this time very knowingly felt his way round to action on his remembrance
3818 of what she had said of Jasper himself: ‘because she seems to have some
3819 little delicate instinct that all preliminary arrangements had best be
3820 made between Mr. Edwin Drood and herself, don’t you see? She don’t want
3821 us, don’t you know?’
3822
3823 Jasper touched himself on the breast, and said, somewhat indistinctly:
3824 ‘You mean me.’
3825
3826 Mr. Grewgious touched himself on the breast, and said: ‘I mean us.
3827 Therefore, let them have their little discussions and councils together,
3828 when Mr. Edwin Drood comes back here at Christmas; and then you and I
3829 will step in, and put the final touches to the business.’
3830
3831 ‘So, you settled with her that you would come back at Christmas?’
3832 observed Jasper. ‘I see! Mr. Grewgious, as you quite fairly said just
3833 now, there is such an exceptional attachment between my nephew and me,
3834 that I am more sensitive for the dear, fortunate, happy, happy fellow
3835 than for myself. But it is only right that the young lady should be
3836 considered, as you have pointed out, and that I should accept my cue from
3837 you. I accept it. I understand that at Christmas they will complete
3838 their preparations for May, and that their marriage will be put in final
3839 train by themselves, and that nothing will remain for us but to put
3840 ourselves in train also, and have everything ready for our formal release
3841 from our trusts, on Edwin’s birthday.’
3842
3843 ‘That is my understanding,’ assented Mr. Grewgious, as they shook hands
3844 to part. ‘God bless them both!’
3845
3846 ‘God save them both!’ cried Jasper.
3847
3848 ‘I said, bless them,’ remarked the former, looking back over his
3849 shoulder.
3850
3851 ‘I said, save them,’ returned the latter. ‘Is there any difference?’
3852
3853
3854
3855
3856 CHAPTER X—SMOOTHING THE WAY
3857
3858
3859 It has been often enough remarked that women have a curious power of
3860 divining the characters of men, which would seem to be innate and
3861 instinctive; seeing that it is arrived at through no patient process of
3862 reasoning, that it can give no satisfactory or sufficient account of
3863 itself, and that it pronounces in the most confident manner even against
3864 accumulated observation on the part of the other sex. But it has not
3865 been quite so often remarked that this power (fallible, like every other
3866 human attribute) is for the most part absolutely incapable of
3867 self-revision; and that when it has delivered an adverse opinion which by
3868 all human lights is subsequently proved to have failed, it is
3869 undistinguishable from prejudice, in respect of its determination not to
3870 be corrected. Nay, the very possibility of contradiction or disproof,
3871 however remote, communicates to this feminine judgment from the first, in
3872 nine cases out of ten, the weakness attendant on the testimony of an
3873 interested witness; so personally and strongly does the fair diviner
3874 connect herself with her divination.
3875
3876 ‘Now, don’t you think, Ma dear,’ said the Minor Canon to his mother one
3877 day as she sat at her knitting in his little book-room, ‘that you are
3878 rather hard on Mr. Neville?’
3879
3880 ‘No, I do _not_, Sept,’ returned the old lady.
3881
3882 ‘Let us discuss it, Ma.’
3883
3884 ‘I have no objection to discuss it, Sept. I trust, my dear, I am always
3885 open to discussion.’ There was a vibration in the old lady’s cap, as
3886 though she internally added: ‘and I should like to see the discussion
3887 that would change _my_ mind!’
3888
3889 ‘Very good, Ma,’ said her conciliatory son. ‘There is nothing like being
3890 open to discussion.’
3891
3892 ‘I hope not, my dear,’ returned the old lady, evidently shut to it.
3893
3894 ‘Well! Mr. Neville, on that unfortunate occasion, commits himself under
3895 provocation.’
3896
3897 ‘And under mulled wine,’ added the old lady.
3898
3899 ‘I must admit the wine. Though I believe the two young men were much
3900 alike in that regard.’
3901
3902 ‘I don’t,’ said the old lady.
3903
3904 ‘Why not, Ma?’
3905
3906 ‘Because I _don’t_,’ said the old lady. ‘Still, I am quite open to
3907 discussion.’
3908
3909 ‘But, my dear Ma, I cannot see how we are to discuss, if you take that
3910 line.’
3911
3912 ‘Blame Mr. Neville for it, Sept, and not me,’ said the old lady, with
3913 stately severity.
3914
3915 ‘My dear Ma! why Mr. Neville?’
3916
3917 ‘Because,’ said Mrs. Crisparkle, retiring on first principles, ‘he came
3918 home intoxicated, and did great discredit to this house, and showed great
3919 disrespect to this family.’
3920
3921 ‘That is not to be denied, Ma. He was then, and he is now, very sorry
3922 for it.’
3923
3924 ‘But for Mr. Jasper’s well-bred consideration in coming up to me, next
3925 day, after service, in the Nave itself, with his gown still on, and
3926 expressing his hope that I had not been greatly alarmed or had my rest
3927 violently broken, I believe I might never have heard of that disgraceful
3928 transaction,’ said the old lady.
3929
3930 ‘To be candid, Ma, I think I should have kept it from you if I could:
3931 though I had not decidedly made up my mind. I was following Jasper out,
3932 to confer with him on the subject, and to consider the expediency of his
3933 and my jointly hushing the thing up on all accounts, when I found him
3934 speaking to you. Then it was too late.’
3935
3936 ‘Too late, indeed, Sept. He was still as pale as gentlemanly ashes at
3937 what had taken place in his rooms overnight.’
3938
3939 ‘If I _had_ kept it from you, Ma, you may be sure it would have been for
3940 your peace and quiet, and for the good of the young men, and in my best
3941 discharge of my duty according to my lights.’
3942
3943 The old lady immediately walked across the room and kissed him: saying,
3944 ‘Of course, my dear Sept, I am sure of that.’
3945
3946 ‘However, it became the town-talk,’ said Mr. Crisparkle, rubbing his ear,
3947 as his mother resumed her seat, and her knitting, ‘and passed out of my
3948 power.’
3949
3950 ‘And I said then, Sept,’ returned the old lady, ‘that I thought ill of
3951 Mr. Neville. And I say now, that I think ill of Mr. Neville. And I said
3952 then, and I say now, that I hope Mr. Neville may come to good, but I
3953 don’t believe he will.’ Here the cap vibrated again considerably.
3954
3955 ‘I am sorry to hear you say so, Ma—’
3956
3957 ‘I am sorry to say so, my dear,’ interposed the old lady, knitting on
3958 firmly, ‘but I can’t help it.’
3959
3960 ‘—For,’ pursued the Minor Canon, ‘it is undeniable that Mr. Neville is
3961 exceedingly industrious and attentive, and that he improves apace, and
3962 that he has—I hope I may say—an attachment to me.’
3963
3964 ‘There is no merit in the last article, my dear,’ said the old lady,
3965 quickly; ‘and if he says there is, I think the worse of him for the
3966 boast.’
3967
3968 ‘But, my dear Ma, he never said there was.’
3969
3970 ‘Perhaps not,’ returned the old lady; ‘still, I don’t see that it greatly
3971 signifies.’
3972
3973 There was no impatience in the pleasant look with which Mr. Crisparkle
3974 contemplated the pretty old piece of china as it knitted; but there was,
3975 certainly, a humorous sense of its not being a piece of china to argue
3976 with very closely.
3977
3978 ‘Besides, Sept, ask yourself what he would be without his sister. You
3979 know what an influence she has over him; you know what a capacity she
3980 has; you know that whatever he reads with you, he reads with her. Give
3981 her her fair share of your praise, and how much do you leave for him?’
3982
3983 At these words Mr. Crisparkle fell into a little reverie, in which he
3984 thought of several things. He thought of the times he had seen the
3985 brother and sister together in deep converse over one of his own old
3986 college books; now, in the rimy mornings, when he made those sharpening
3987 pilgrimages to Cloisterham Weir; now, in the sombre evenings, when he
3988 faced the wind at sunset, having climbed his favourite outlook, a
3989 beetling fragment of monastery ruin; and the two studious figures passed
3990 below him along the margin of the river, in which the town fires and
3991 lights already shone, making the landscape bleaker. He thought how the
3992 consciousness had stolen upon him that in teaching one, he was teaching
3993 two; and how he had almost insensibly adapted his explanations to both
3994 minds—that with which his own was daily in contact, and that which he
3995 only approached through it. He thought of the gossip that had reached
3996 him from the Nuns’ House, to the effect that Helena, whom he had
3997 mistrusted as so proud and fierce, submitted herself to the fairy-bride
3998 (as he called her), and learnt from her what she knew. He thought of the
3999 picturesque alliance between those two, externally so very different. He
4000 thought—perhaps most of all—could it be that these things were yet but so
4001 many weeks old, and had become an integral part of his life?
4002
4003 As, whenever the Reverend Septimus fell a-musing, his good mother took it
4004 to be an infallible sign that he ‘wanted support,’ the blooming old lady
4005 made all haste to the dining-room closet, to produce from it the support
4006 embodied in a glass of Constantia and a home-made biscuit. It was a most
4007 wonderful closet, worthy of Cloisterham and of Minor Canon Corner. Above
4008 it, a portrait of Handel in a flowing wig beamed down at the spectator,
4009 with a knowing air of being up to the contents of the closet, and a
4010 musical air of intending to combine all its harmonies in one delicious
4011 fugue. No common closet with a vulgar door on hinges, openable all at
4012 once, and leaving nothing to be disclosed by degrees, this rare closet
4013 had a lock in mid-air, where two perpendicular slides met; the one
4014 falling down, and the other pushing up. The upper slide, on being pulled
4015 down (leaving the lower a double mystery), revealed deep shelves of
4016 pickle-jars, jam-pots, tin canisters, spice-boxes, and agreeably
4017 outlandish vessels of blue and white, the luscious lodgings of preserved
4018 tamarinds and ginger. Every benevolent inhabitant of this retreat had
4019 his name inscribed upon his stomach. The pickles, in a uniform of rich
4020 brown double-breasted buttoned coat, and yellow or sombre drab
4021 continuations, announced their portly forms, in printed capitals, as
4022 Walnut, Gherkin, Onion, Cabbage, Cauliflower, Mixed, and other members of
4023 that noble family. The jams, as being of a less masculine temperament,
4024 and as wearing curlpapers, announced themselves in feminine caligraphy,
4025 like a soft whisper, to be Raspberry, Gooseberry, Apricot, Plum, Damson,
4026 Apple, and Peach. The scene closing on these charmers, and the lower
4027 slide ascending, oranges were revealed, attended by a mighty japanned
4028 sugar-box, to temper their acerbity if unripe. Home-made biscuits waited
4029 at the Court of these Powers, accompanied by a goodly fragment of
4030 plum-cake, and various slender ladies’ fingers, to be dipped into sweet
4031 wine and kissed. Lowest of all, a compact leaden-vault enshrined the
4032 sweet wine and a stock of cordials: whence issued whispers of Seville
4033 Orange, Lemon, Almond, and Caraway-seed. There was a crowning air upon
4034 this closet of closets, of having been for ages hummed through by the
4035 Cathedral bell and organ, until those venerable bees had made sublimated
4036 honey of everything in store; and it was always observed that every
4037 dipper among the shelves (deep, as has been noticed, and swallowing up
4038 head, shoulders, and elbows) came forth again mellow-faced, and seeming
4039 to have undergone a saccharine transfiguration.
4040
4041 The Reverend Septimus yielded himself up quite as willing a victim to a
4042 nauseous medicinal herb-closet, also presided over by the china
4043 shepherdess, as to this glorious cupboard. To what amazing infusions of
4044 gentian, peppermint, gilliflower, sage, parsley, thyme, rue, rosemary,
4045 and dandelion, did his courageous stomach submit itself! In what
4046 wonderful wrappers, enclosing layers of dried leaves, would he swathe his
4047 rosy and contented face, if his mother suspected him of a toothache!
4048 What botanical blotches would he cheerfully stick upon his cheek, or
4049 forehead, if the dear old lady convicted him of an imperceptible pimple
4050 there! Into this herbaceous penitentiary, situated on an upper
4051 staircase-landing: a low and narrow whitewashed cell, where bunches of
4052 dried leaves hung from rusty hooks in the ceiling, and were spread out
4053 upon shelves, in company with portentous bottles: would the Reverend
4054 Septimus submissively be led, like the highly popular lamb who has so
4055 long and unresistingly been led to the slaughter, and there would he,
4056 unlike that lamb, bore nobody but himself. Not even doing that much, so
4057 that the old lady were busy and pleased, he would quietly swallow what
4058 was given him, merely taking a corrective dip of hands and face into the
4059 great bowl of dried rose-leaves, and into the other great bowl of dried
4060 lavender, and then would go out, as confident in the sweetening powers of
4061 Cloisterham Weir and a wholesome mind, as Lady Macbeth was hopeless of
4062 those of all the seas that roll.
4063
4064 In the present instance the good Minor Canon took his glass of Constantia
4065 with an excellent grace, and, so supported to his mother’s satisfaction,
4066 applied himself to the remaining duties of the day. In their orderly and
4067 punctual progress they brought round Vesper Service and twilight. The
4068 Cathedral being very cold, he set off for a brisk trot after service; the
4069 trot to end in a charge at his favourite fragment of ruin, which was to
4070 be carried by storm, without a pause for breath.
4071
4072 He carried it in a masterly manner, and, not breathed even then, stood
4073 looking down upon the river. The river at Cloisterham is sufficiently
4074 near the sea to throw up oftentimes a quantity of seaweed. An unusual
4075 quantity had come in with the last tide, and this, and the confusion of
4076 the water, and the restless dipping and flapping of the noisy gulls, and
4077 an angry light out seaward beyond the brown-sailed barges that were
4078 turning black, foreshadowed a stormy night. In his mind he was
4079 contrasting the wild and noisy sea with the quiet harbour of Minor Canon
4080 Corner, when Helena and Neville Landless passed below him. He had had
4081 the two together in his thoughts all day, and at once climbed down to
4082 speak to them together. The footing was rough in an uncertain light for
4083 any tread save that of a good climber; but the Minor Canon was as good a
4084 climber as most men, and stood beside them before many good climbers
4085 would have been half-way down.
4086
4087 ‘A wild evening, Miss Landless! Do you not find your usual walk with
4088 your brother too exposed and cold for the time of year? Or at all
4089 events, when the sun is down, and the weather is driving in from the
4090 sea?’
4091
4092 Helena thought not. It was their favourite walk. It was very retired.
4093
4094 ‘It is very retired,’ assented Mr. Crisparkle, laying hold of his
4095 opportunity straightway, and walking on with them. ‘It is a place of all
4096 others where one can speak without interruption, as I wish to do. Mr.
4097 Neville, I believe you tell your sister everything that passes between
4098 us?’
4099
4100 ‘Everything, sir.’
4101
4102 ‘Consequently,’ said Mr. Crisparkle, ‘your sister is aware that I have
4103 repeatedly urged you to make some kind of apology for that unfortunate
4104 occurrence which befell on the night of your arrival here.’ In saying it
4105 he looked to her, and not to him; therefore it was she, and not he, who
4106 replied:
4107
4108 ‘Yes.’
4109
4110 ‘I call it unfortunate, Miss Helena,’ resumed Mr. Crisparkle, ‘forasmuch
4111 as it certainly has engendered a prejudice against Neville. There is a
4112 notion about, that he is a dangerously passionate fellow, of an
4113 uncontrollable and furious temper: he is really avoided as such.’
4114
4115 ‘I have no doubt he is, poor fellow,’ said Helena, with a look of proud
4116 compassion at her brother, expressing a deep sense of his being
4117 ungenerously treated. ‘I should be quite sure of it, from your saying
4118 so; but what you tell me is confirmed by suppressed hints and references
4119 that I meet with every day.’
4120
4121 ‘Now,’ Mr. Crisparkle again resumed, in a tone of mild though firm
4122 persuasion, ‘is not this to be regretted, and ought it not to be amended?
4123 These are early days of Neville’s in Cloisterham, and I have no fear of
4124 his outliving such a prejudice, and proving himself to have been
4125 misunderstood. But how much wiser to take action at once, than to trust
4126 to uncertain time! Besides, apart from its being politic, it is right.
4127 For there can be no question that Neville was wrong.’
4128
4129 ‘He was provoked,’ Helena submitted.
4130
4131 ‘He was the assailant,’ Mr. Crisparkle submitted.
4132
4133 They walked on in silence, until Helena raised her eyes to the Minor
4134 Canon’s face, and said, almost reproachfully: ‘O Mr. Crisparkle, would
4135 you have Neville throw himself at young Drood’s feet, or at Mr. Jasper’s,
4136 who maligns him every day? In your heart you cannot mean it. From your
4137 heart you could not do it, if his case were yours.’
4138
4139 ‘I have represented to Mr. Crisparkle, Helena,’ said Neville, with a
4140 glance of deference towards his tutor, ‘that if I could do it from my
4141 heart, I would. But I cannot, and I revolt from the pretence. You
4142 forget however, that to put the case to Mr. Crisparkle as his own, is to
4143 suppose to have done what I did.’
4144
4145 ‘I ask his pardon,’ said Helena.
4146
4147 ‘You see,’ remarked Mr. Crisparkle, again laying hold of his opportunity,
4148 though with a moderate and delicate touch, ‘you both instinctively
4149 acknowledge that Neville did wrong. Then why stop short, and not
4150 otherwise acknowledge it?’
4151
4152 ‘Is there no difference,’ asked Helena, with a little faltering in her
4153 manner; ‘between submission to a generous spirit, and submission to a
4154 base or trivial one?’
4155
4156 Before the worthy Minor Canon was quite ready with his argument in
4157 reference to this nice distinction, Neville struck in:
4158
4159 ‘Help me to clear myself with Mr. Crisparkle, Helena. Help me to
4160 convince him that I cannot be the first to make concessions without
4161 mockery and falsehood. My nature must be changed before I can do so, and
4162 it is not changed. I am sensible of inexpressible affront, and
4163 deliberate aggravation of inexpressible affront, and I am angry. The
4164 plain truth is, I am still as angry when I recall that night as I was
4165 that night.’
4166
4167 ‘Neville,’ hinted the Minor Canon, with a steady countenance, ‘you have
4168 repeated that former action of your hands, which I so much dislike.’
4169
4170 ‘I am sorry for it, sir, but it was involuntary. I confessed that I was
4171 still as angry.’
4172
4173 ‘And I confess,’ said Mr. Crisparkle, ‘that I hoped for better things.’
4174
4175 ‘I am sorry to disappoint you, sir, but it would be far worse to deceive
4176 you, and I should deceive you grossly if I pretended that you had
4177 softened me in this respect. The time may come when your powerful
4178 influence will do even that with the difficult pupil whose antecedents
4179 you know; but it has not come yet. Is this so, and in spite of my
4180 struggles against myself, Helena?’
4181
4182 She, whose dark eyes were watching the effect of what he said on Mr.
4183 Crisparkle’s face, replied—to Mr. Crisparkle, not to him: ‘It is so.’
4184 After a short pause, she answered the slightest look of inquiry
4185 conceivable, in her brother’s eyes, with as slight an affirmative bend of
4186 her own head; and he went on:
4187
4188 ‘I have never yet had the courage to say to you, sir, what in full
4189 openness I ought to have said when you first talked with me on this
4190 subject. It is not easy to say, and I have been withheld by a fear of
4191 its seeming ridiculous, which is very strong upon me down to this last
4192 moment, and might, but for my sister, prevent my being quite open with
4193 you even now.—I admire Miss Bud, sir, so very much, that I cannot bear
4194 her being treated with conceit or indifference; and even if I did not
4195 feel that I had an injury against young Drood on my own account, I should
4196 feel that I had an injury against him on hers.’
4197
4198 Mr. Crisparkle, in utter amazement, looked at Helena for corroboration,
4199 and met in her expressive face full corroboration, and a plea for advice.
4200
4201 ‘The young lady of whom you speak is, as you know, Mr. Neville, shortly
4202 to be married,’ said Mr. Crisparkle, gravely; ‘therefore your admiration,
4203 if it be of that special nature which you seem to indicate, is
4204 outrageously misplaced. Moreover, it is monstrous that you should take
4205 upon yourself to be the young lady’s champion against her chosen husband.
4206 Besides, you have seen them only once. The young lady has become your
4207 sister’s friend; and I wonder that your sister, even on her behalf, has
4208 not checked you in this irrational and culpable fancy.’
4209
4210 ‘She has tried, sir, but uselessly. Husband or no husband, that fellow
4211 is incapable of the feeling with which I am inspired towards the
4212 beautiful young creature whom he treats like a doll. I say he is as
4213 incapable of it, as he is unworthy of her. I say she is sacrificed in
4214 being bestowed upon him. I say that I love her, and despise and hate
4215 him!’ This with a face so flushed, and a gesture so violent, that his
4216 sister crossed to his side, and caught his arm, remonstrating, ‘Neville,
4217 Neville!’
4218
4219 Thus recalled to himself, he quickly became sensible of having lost the
4220 guard he had set upon his passionate tendency, and covered his face with
4221 his hand, as one repentant and wretched.
4222
4223 Mr. Crisparkle, watching him attentively, and at the same time meditating
4224 how to proceed, walked on for some paces in silence. Then he spoke:
4225
4226 ‘Mr. Neville, Mr. Neville, I am sorely grieved to see in you more traces
4227 of a character as sullen, angry, and wild, as the night now closing in.
4228 They are of too serious an aspect to leave me the resource of treating
4229 the infatuation you have disclosed, as undeserving serious consideration.
4230 I give it very serious consideration, and I speak to you accordingly.
4231 This feud between you and young Drood must not go on. I cannot permit it
4232 to go on any longer, knowing what I now know from you, and you living
4233 under my roof. Whatever prejudiced and unauthorised constructions your
4234 blind and envious wrath may put upon his character, it is a frank,
4235 good-natured character. I know I can trust to it for that. Now, pray
4236 observe what I am about to say. On reflection, and on your sister’s
4237 representation, I am willing to admit that, in making peace with young
4238 Drood, you have a right to be met half-way. I will engage that you shall
4239 be, and even that young Drood shall make the first advance. This
4240 condition fulfilled, you will pledge me the honour of a Christian
4241 gentleman that the quarrel is for ever at an end on your side. What may
4242 be in your heart when you give him your hand, can only be known to the
4243 Searcher of all hearts; but it will never go well with you, if there be
4244 any treachery there. So far, as to that; next as to what I must again
4245 speak of as your infatuation. I understand it to have been confided to
4246 me, and to be known to no other person save your sister and yourself. Do
4247 I understand aright?’
4248
4249 Helena answered in a low voice: ‘It is only known to us three who are
4250 here together.’
4251
4252 ‘It is not at all known to the young lady, your friend?’
4253
4254 ‘On my soul, no!’
4255
4256 ‘I require you, then, to give me your similar and solemn pledge, Mr.
4257 Neville, that it shall remain the secret it is, and that you will take no
4258 other action whatsoever upon it than endeavouring (and that most
4259 earnestly) to erase it from your mind. I will not tell you that it will
4260 soon pass; I will not tell you that it is the fancy of the moment; I will
4261 not tell you that such caprices have their rise and fall among the young
4262 and ardent every hour; I will leave you undisturbed in the belief that it
4263 has few parallels or none, that it will abide with you a long time, and
4264 that it will be very difficult to conquer. So much the more weight shall
4265 I attach to the pledge I require from you, when it is unreservedly
4266 given.’
4267
4268 The young man twice or thrice essayed to speak, but failed.
4269
4270 ‘Let me leave you with your sister, whom it is time you took home,’ said
4271 Mr. Crisparkle. ‘You will find me alone in my room by-and-by.’
4272
4273 ‘Pray do not leave us yet,’ Helena implored him. ‘Another minute.’
4274
4275 ‘I should not,’ said Neville, pressing his hand upon his face, ‘have
4276 needed so much as another minute, if you had been less patient with me,
4277 Mr. Crisparkle, less considerate of me, and less unpretendingly good and
4278 true. O, if in my childhood I had known such a guide!’
4279
4280 ‘Follow your guide now, Neville,’ murmured Helena, ‘and follow him to
4281 Heaven!’
4282
4283 There was that in her tone which broke the good Minor Canon’s voice, or
4284 it would have repudiated her exaltation of him. As it was, he laid a
4285 finger on his lips, and looked towards her brother.
4286
4287 ‘To say that I give both pledges, Mr. Crisparkle, out of my innermost
4288 heart, and to say that there is no treachery in it, is to say nothing!’
4289 Thus Neville, greatly moved. ‘I beg your forgiveness for my miserable
4290 lapse into a burst of passion.’
4291
4292 ‘Not mine, Neville, not mine. You know with whom forgiveness lies, as
4293 the highest attribute conceivable. Miss Helena, you and your brother are
4294 twin children. You came into this world with the same dispositions, and
4295 you passed your younger days together surrounded by the same adverse
4296 circumstances. What you have overcome in yourself, can you not overcome
4297 in him? You see the rock that lies in his course. Who but you can keep
4298 him clear of it?’
4299
4300 ‘Who but you, sir?’ replied Helena. ‘What is my influence, or my weak
4301 wisdom, compared with yours!’
4302
4303 ‘You have the wisdom of Love,’ returned the Minor Canon, ‘and it was the
4304 highest wisdom ever known upon this earth, remember. As to mine—but the
4305 less said of that commonplace commodity the better. Good night!’
4306
4307 She took the hand he offered her, and gratefully and almost reverently
4308 raised it to her lips.
4309
4310 ‘Tut!’ said the Minor Canon softly, ‘I am much overpaid!’ and turned
4311 away.
4312
4313 [Picture: Mr. Crisparkle is overpaid]
4314
4315 Retracing his steps towards the Cathedral Close, he tried, as he went
4316 along in the dark, to think out the best means of bringing to pass what
4317 he had promised to effect, and what must somehow be done. ‘I shall
4318 probably be asked to marry them,’ he reflected, ‘and I would they were
4319 married and gone! But this presses first.’
4320
4321 He debated principally whether he should write to young Drood, or whether
4322 he should speak to Jasper. The consciousness of being popular with the
4323 whole Cathedral establishment inclined him to the latter course, and the
4324 well-timed sight of the lighted gatehouse decided him to take it. ‘I
4325 will strike while the iron is hot,’ he said, ‘and see him now.’
4326
4327 Jasper was lying asleep on a couch before the fire, when, having ascended
4328 the postern-stair, and received no answer to his knock at the door, Mr.
4329 Crisparkle gently turned the handle and looked in. Long afterwards he
4330 had cause to remember how Jasper sprang from the couch in a delirious
4331 state between sleeping and waking, and crying out: ‘What is the matter?
4332 Who did it?’
4333
4334 ‘It is only I, Jasper. I am sorry to have disturbed you.’
4335
4336 The glare of his eyes settled down into a look of recognition, and he
4337 moved a chair or two, to make a way to the fireside.
4338
4339 ‘I was dreaming at a great rate, and am glad to be disturbed from an
4340 indigestive after-dinner sleep. Not to mention that you are always
4341 welcome.’
4342
4343 ‘Thank you. I am not confident,’ returned Mr. Crisparkle, as he sat
4344 himself down in the easy-chair placed for him, ‘that my subject will at
4345 first sight be quite as welcome as myself; but I am a minister of peace,
4346 and I pursue my subject in the interests of peace. In a word, Jasper, I
4347 want to establish peace between these two young fellows.’
4348
4349 A very perplexed expression took hold of Mr. Jasper’s face; a very
4350 perplexing expression too, for Mr. Crisparkle could make nothing of it.
4351
4352 ‘How?’ was Jasper’s inquiry, in a low and slow voice, after a silence.
4353
4354 ‘For the “How” I come to you. I want to ask you to do me the great
4355 favour and service of interposing with your nephew (I have already
4356 interposed with Mr. Neville), and getting him to write you a short note,
4357 in his lively way, saying that he is willing to shake hands. I know what
4358 a good-natured fellow he is, and what influence you have with him. And
4359 without in the least defending Mr. Neville, we must all admit that he was
4360 bitterly stung.’
4361
4362 Jasper turned that perplexed face towards the fire. Mr. Crisparkle
4363 continuing to observe it, found it even more perplexing than before,
4364 inasmuch as it seemed to denote (which could hardly be) some close
4365 internal calculation.
4366
4367 ‘I know that you are not prepossessed in Mr. Neville’s favour,’ the Minor
4368 Canon was going on, when Jasper stopped him:
4369
4370 ‘You have cause to say so. I am not, indeed.’
4371
4372 ‘Undoubtedly; and I admit his lamentable violence of temper, though I
4373 hope he and I will get the better of it between us. But I have exacted a
4374 very solemn promise from him as to his future demeanour towards your
4375 nephew, if you do kindly interpose; and I am sure he will keep it.’
4376
4377 ‘You are always responsible and trustworthy, Mr. Crisparkle. Do you
4378 really feel sure that you can answer for him so confidently?’
4379
4380 ‘I do.’
4381
4382 The perplexed and perplexing look vanished.
4383
4384 ‘Then you relieve my mind of a great dread, and a heavy weight,’ said
4385 Jasper; ‘I will do it.’
4386
4387 Mr. Crisparkle, delighted by the swiftness and completeness of his
4388 success, acknowledged it in the handsomest terms.
4389
4390 ‘I will do it,’ repeated Jasper, ‘for the comfort of having your
4391 guarantee against my vague and unfounded fears. You will laugh—but do
4392 you keep a Diary?’
4393
4394 ‘A line for a day; not more.’
4395
4396 ‘A line for a day would be quite as much as my uneventful life would
4397 need, Heaven knows,’ said Jasper, taking a book from a desk, ‘but that my
4398 Diary is, in fact, a Diary of Ned’s life too. You will laugh at this
4399 entry; you will guess when it was made:
4400
4401 ‘“Past midnight.—After what I have just now seen, I have a morbid
4402 dread upon me of some horrible consequences resulting to my dear boy,
4403 that I cannot reason with or in any way contend against. All my
4404 efforts are vain. The demoniacal passion of this Neville Landless,
4405 his strength in his fury, and his savage rage for the destruction of
4406 its object, appal me. So profound is the impression, that twice
4407 since I have gone into my dear boy’s room, to assure myself of his
4408 sleeping safely, and not lying dead in his blood.”
4409
4410 ‘Here is another entry next morning:
4411
4412 ‘“Ned up and away. Light-hearted and unsuspicious as ever. He
4413 laughed when I cautioned him, and said he was as good a man as
4414 Neville Landless any day. I told him that might be, but he was not
4415 as bad a man. He continued to make light of it, but I travelled with
4416 him as far as I could, and left him most unwillingly. I am unable to
4417 shake off these dark intangible presentiments of evil—if feelings
4418 founded upon staring facts are to be so called.”
4419
4420 ‘Again and again,’ said Jasper, in conclusion, twirling the leaves of the
4421 book before putting it by, ‘I have relapsed into these moods, as other
4422 entries show. But I have now your assurance at my back, and shall put it
4423 in my book, and make it an antidote to my black humours.’
4424
4425 ‘Such an antidote, I hope,’ returned Mr. Crisparkle, ‘as will induce you
4426 before long to consign the black humours to the flames. I ought to be
4427 the last to find any fault with you this evening, when you have met my
4428 wishes so freely; but I must say, Jasper, that your devotion to your
4429 nephew has made you exaggerative here.’
4430
4431 ‘You are my witness,’ said Jasper, shrugging his shoulders, ‘what my
4432 state of mind honestly was, that night, before I sat down to write, and
4433 in what words I expressed it. You remember objecting to a word I used,
4434 as being too strong? It was a stronger word than any in my Diary.’
4435
4436 ‘Well, well. Try the antidote,’ rejoined Mr. Crisparkle; ‘and may it
4437 give you a brighter and better view of the case! We will discuss it no
4438 more now. I have to thank you for myself, thank you sincerely.’
4439
4440 ‘You shall find,’ said Jasper, as they shook hands, ‘that I will not do
4441 the thing you wish me to do, by halves. I will take care that Ned,
4442 giving way at all, shall give way thoroughly.’
4443
4444 On the third day after this conversation, he called on Mr. Crisparkle
4445 with the following letter:
4446
4447 ‘MY DEAR JACK,
4448
4449 ‘I am touched by your account of your interview with Mr. Crisparkle,
4450 whom I much respect and esteem. At once I openly say that I forgot
4451 myself on that occasion quite as much as Mr. Landless did, and that I
4452 wish that bygone to be a bygone, and all to be right again.
4453
4454 ‘Look here, dear old boy. Ask Mr. Landless to dinner on Christmas
4455 Eve (the better the day the better the deed), and let there be only
4456 we three, and let us shake hands all round there and then, and say no
4457 more about it.
4458
4459 ‘My dear Jack,
4460 ‘Ever your most affectionate,
4461 ‘EDWIN DROOD.
4462
4463 ‘P.S. Love to Miss Pussy at the next music-lesson.’
4464
4465 ‘You expect Mr. Neville, then?’ said Mr. Crisparkle.
4466
4467 ‘I count upon his coming,’ said Mr. Jasper.
4468
4469
4470
4471
4472 CHAPTER XI—A PICTURE AND A RING
4473
4474
4475 Behind the most ancient part of Holborn, London, where certain gabled
4476 houses some centuries of age still stand looking on the public way, as if
4477 disconsolately looking for the Old Bourne that has long run dry, is a
4478 little nook composed of two irregular quadrangles, called Staple Inn. It
4479 is one of those nooks, the turning into which out of the clashing street,
4480 imparts to the relieved pedestrian the sensation of having put cotton in
4481 his ears, and velvet soles on his boots. It is one of those nooks where
4482 a few smoky sparrows twitter in smoky trees, as though they called to one
4483 another, ‘Let us play at country,’ and where a few feet of garden-mould
4484 and a few yards of gravel enable them to do that refreshing violence to
4485 their tiny understandings. Moreover, it is one of those nooks which are
4486 legal nooks; and it contains a little Hall, with a little lantern in its
4487 roof: to what obstructive purposes devoted, and at whose expense, this
4488 history knoweth not.
4489
4490 In the days when Cloisterham took offence at the existence of a railroad
4491 afar off, as menacing that sensitive constitution, the property of us
4492 Britons: the odd fortune of which sacred institution it is to be in
4493 exactly equal degrees croaked about, trembled for, and boasted of,
4494 whatever happens to anything, anywhere in the world: in those days no
4495 neighbouring architecture of lofty proportions had arisen to overshadow
4496 Staple Inn. The westering sun bestowed bright glances on it, and the
4497 south-west wind blew into it unimpeded.
4498
4499 Neither wind nor sun, however, favoured Staple Inn one December afternoon
4500 towards six o’clock, when it was filled with fog, and candles shed murky
4501 and blurred rays through the windows of all its then-occupied sets of
4502 chambers; notably from a set of chambers in a corner house in the little
4503 inner quadrangle, presenting in black and white over its ugly portal the
4504 mysterious inscription:
4505
4506 P
4507 J T
4508 1747
4509
4510 In which set of chambers, never having troubled his head about the
4511 inscription, unless to bethink himself at odd times on glancing up at it,
4512 that haply it might mean Perhaps John Thomas, or Perhaps Joe Tyler, sat
4513 Mr. Grewgious writing by his fire.
4514
4515 Who could have told, by looking at Mr. Grewgious, whether he had ever
4516 known ambition or disappointment? He had been bred to the Bar, and had
4517 laid himself out for chamber practice; to draw deeds; ‘convey the wise it
4518 call,’ as Pistol says. But Conveyancing and he had made such a very
4519 indifferent marriage of it that they had separated by consent—if there
4520 can be said to be separation where there has never been coming together.
4521
4522 No. Coy Conveyancing would not come to Mr. Grewgious. She was wooed,
4523 not won, and they went their several ways. But an Arbitration being
4524 blown towards him by some unaccountable wind, and he gaining great credit
4525 in it as one indefatigable in seeking out right and doing right, a pretty
4526 fat Receivership was next blown into his pocket by a wind more traceable
4527 to its source. So, by chance, he had found his niche. Receiver and
4528 Agent now, to two rich estates, and deputing their legal business, in an
4529 amount worth having, to a firm of solicitors on the floor below, he had
4530 snuffed out his ambition (supposing him to have ever lighted it), and had
4531 settled down with his snuffers for the rest of his life under the dry
4532 vine and fig-tree of P. J. T., who planted in seventeen-forty-seven.
4533
4534 Many accounts and account-books, many files of correspondence, and
4535 several strong boxes, garnished Mr. Grewgious’s room. They can scarcely
4536 be represented as having lumbered it, so conscientious and precise was
4537 their orderly arrangement. The apprehension of dying suddenly, and
4538 leaving one fact or one figure with any incompleteness or obscurity
4539 attaching to it, would have stretched Mr. Grewgious stone-dead any day.
4540 The largest fidelity to a trust was the life-blood of the man. There are
4541 sorts of life-blood that course more quickly, more gaily, more
4542 attractively; but there is no better sort in circulation.
4543
4544 There was no luxury in his room. Even its comforts were limited to its
4545 being dry and warm, and having a snug though faded fireside. What may be
4546 called its private life was confined to the hearth, and all easy-chair,
4547 and an old-fashioned occasional round table that was brought out upon the
4548 rug after business hours, from a corner where it elsewise remained turned
4549 up like a shining mahogany shield. Behind it, when standing thus on the
4550 defensive, was a closet, usually containing something good to drink. An
4551 outer room was the clerk’s room; Mr. Grewgious’s sleeping-room was across
4552 the common stair; and he held some not empty cellarage at the bottom of
4553 the common stair. Three hundred days in the year, at least, he crossed
4554 over to the hotel in Furnival’s Inn for his dinner, and after dinner
4555 crossed back again, to make the most of these simplicities until it
4556 should become broad business day once more, with P. J. T., date
4557 seventeen-forty-seven.
4558
4559 As Mr. Grewgious sat and wrote by his fire that afternoon, so did the
4560 clerk of Mr. Grewgious sit and write by _his_ fire. A pale, puffy-faced,
4561 dark-haired person of thirty, with big dark eyes that wholly wanted
4562 lustre, and a dissatisfied doughy complexion, that seemed to ask to be
4563 sent to the baker’s, this attendant was a mysterious being, possessed of
4564 some strange power over Mr. Grewgious. As though he had been called into
4565 existence, like a fabulous Familiar, by a magic spell which had failed
4566 when required to dismiss him, he stuck tight to Mr. Grewgious’s stool,
4567 although Mr. Grewgious’s comfort and convenience would manifestly have
4568 been advanced by dispossessing him. A gloomy person with tangled locks,
4569 and a general air of having been reared under the shadow of that baleful
4570 tree of Java which has given shelter to more lies than the whole
4571 botanical kingdom, Mr. Grewgious, nevertheless, treated him with
4572 unaccountable consideration.
4573
4574 ‘Now, Bazzard,’ said Mr. Grewgious, on the entrance of his clerk: looking
4575 up from his papers as he arranged them for the night: ‘what is in the
4576 wind besides fog?’
4577
4578 ‘Mr. Drood,’ said Bazzard.
4579
4580 ‘What of him?’
4581
4582 ‘Has called,’ said Bazzard.
4583
4584 ‘You might have shown him in.’
4585
4586 ‘I am doing it,’ said Bazzard.
4587
4588 The visitor came in accordingly.
4589
4590 ‘Dear me!’ said Mr. Grewgious, looking round his pair of office candles.
4591 ‘I thought you had called and merely left your name and gone. How do you
4592 do, Mr. Edwin? Dear me, you’re choking!’
4593
4594 ‘It’s this fog,’ returned Edwin; ‘and it makes my eyes smart, like
4595 Cayenne pepper.’
4596
4597 ‘Is it really so bad as that? Pray undo your wrappers. It’s fortunate I
4598 have so good a fire; but Mr. Bazzard has taken care of me.’
4599
4600 ‘No I haven’t,’ said Mr. Bazzard at the door.
4601
4602 ‘Ah! then it follows that I must have taken care of myself without
4603 observing it,’ said Mr. Grewgious. ‘Pray be seated in my chair. No. I
4604 beg! Coming out of such an atmosphere, in _my_ chair.’
4605
4606 Edwin took the easy-chair in the corner; and the fog he had brought in
4607 with him, and the fog he took off with his greatcoat and neck-shawl, was
4608 speedily licked up by the eager fire.
4609
4610 ‘I look,’ said Edwin, smiling, ‘as if I had come to stop.’
4611
4612 ‘—By the by,’ cried Mr. Grewgious; ‘excuse my interrupting you; do stop.
4613 The fog may clear in an hour or two. We can have dinner in from just
4614 across Holborn. You had better take your Cayenne pepper here than
4615 outside; pray stop and dine.’
4616
4617 ‘You are very kind,’ said Edwin, glancing about him as though attracted
4618 by the notion of a new and relishing sort of gipsy-party.
4619
4620 ‘Not at all,’ said Mr. Grewgious; ‘_you_ are very kind to join issue with
4621 a bachelor in chambers, and take pot-luck. And I’ll ask,’ said Mr.
4622 Grewgious, dropping his voice, and speaking with a twinkling eye, as if
4623 inspired with a bright thought: ‘I’ll ask Bazzard. He mightn’t like it
4624 else.—Bazzard!’
4625
4626 Bazzard reappeared.
4627
4628 ‘Dine presently with Mr. Drood and me.’
4629
4630 ‘If I am ordered to dine, of course I will, sir,’ was the gloomy answer.
4631
4632 ‘Save the man!’ cried Mr. Grewgious. ‘You’re not ordered; you’re
4633 invited.’
4634
4635 ‘Thank you, sir,’ said Bazzard; ‘in that case I don’t care if I do.’
4636
4637 ‘That’s arranged. And perhaps you wouldn’t mind,’ said Mr. Grewgious,
4638 ‘stepping over to the hotel in Furnival’s, and asking them to send in
4639 materials for laying the cloth. For dinner we’ll have a tureen of the
4640 hottest and strongest soup available, and we’ll have the best made-dish
4641 that can be recommended, and we’ll have a joint (such as a haunch of
4642 mutton), and we’ll have a goose, or a turkey, or any little stuffed thing
4643 of that sort that may happen to be in the bill of fare—in short, we’ll
4644 have whatever there is on hand.’
4645
4646 These liberal directions Mr. Grewgious issued with his usual air of
4647 reading an inventory, or repeating a lesson, or doing anything else by
4648 rote. Bazzard, after drawing out the round table, withdrew to execute
4649 them.
4650
4651 ‘I was a little delicate, you see,’ said Mr. Grewgious, in a lower tone,
4652 after his clerk’s departure, ‘about employing him in the foraging or
4653 commissariat department. Because he mightn’t like it.’
4654
4655 ‘He seems to have his own way, sir,’ remarked Edwin.
4656
4657 ‘His own way?’ returned Mr. Grewgious. ‘O dear no! Poor fellow, you
4658 quite mistake him. If he had his own way, he wouldn’t be here.’
4659
4660 ‘I wonder where he would be!’ Edwin thought. But he only thought it,
4661 because Mr. Grewgious came and stood himself with his back to the other
4662 corner of the fire, and his shoulder-blades against the chimneypiece, and
4663 collected his skirts for easy conversation.
4664
4665 ‘I take it, without having the gift of prophecy, that you have done me
4666 the favour of looking in to mention that you are going down yonder—where
4667 I can tell you, you are expected—and to offer to execute any little
4668 commission from me to my charming ward, and perhaps to sharpen me up a
4669 bit in any proceedings? Eh, Mr. Edwin?’
4670
4671 ‘I called, sir, before going down, as an act of attention.’
4672
4673 ‘Of attention!’ said Mr. Grewgious. ‘Ah! of course, not of impatience?’
4674
4675 ‘Impatience, sir?’
4676
4677 Mr. Grewgious had meant to be arch—not that he in the remotest degree
4678 expressed that meaning—and had brought himself into scarcely supportable
4679 proximity with the fire, as if to burn the fullest effect of his archness
4680 into himself, as other subtle impressions are burnt into hard metals.
4681 But his archness suddenly flying before the composed face and manner of
4682 his visitor, and only the fire remaining, he started and rubbed himself.
4683
4684 ‘I have lately been down yonder,’ said Mr. Grewgious, rearranging his
4685 skirts; ‘and that was what I referred to, when I said I could tell you
4686 you are expected.’
4687
4688 ‘Indeed, sir! Yes; I knew that Pussy was looking out for me.’
4689
4690 ‘Do you keep a cat down there?’ asked Mr. Grewgious.
4691
4692 Edwin coloured a little as he explained: ‘I call Rosa Pussy.’
4693
4694 ‘O, really,’ said Mr. Grewgious, smoothing down his head; ‘that’s very
4695 affable.’
4696
4697 Edwin glanced at his face, uncertain whether or no he seriously objected
4698 to the appellation. But Edwin might as well have glanced at the face of
4699 a clock.
4700
4701 ‘A pet name, sir,’ he explained again.
4702
4703 ‘Umps,’ said Mr. Grewgious, with a nod. But with such an extraordinary
4704 compromise between an unqualified assent and a qualified dissent, that
4705 his visitor was much disconcerted.
4706
4707 ‘Did PRosa—’ Edwin began by way of recovering himself.
4708
4709 ‘PRosa?’ repeated Mr. Grewgious.
4710
4711 ‘I was going to say Pussy, and changed my mind;—did she tell you anything
4712 about the Landlesses?’
4713
4714 ‘No,’ said Mr. Grewgious. ‘What is the Landlesses? An estate? A villa?
4715 A farm?’
4716
4717 ‘A brother and sister. The sister is at the Nuns’ House, and has become
4718 a great friend of P—’
4719
4720 ‘PRosa’s,’ Mr. Grewgious struck in, with a fixed face.
4721
4722 ‘She is a strikingly handsome girl, sir, and I thought she might have
4723 been described to you, or presented to you perhaps?’
4724
4725 ‘Neither,’ said Mr. Grewgious. ‘But here is Bazzard.’
4726
4727 Bazzard returned, accompanied by two waiters—an immovable waiter, and a
4728 flying waiter; and the three brought in with them as much fog as gave a
4729 new roar to the fire. The flying waiter, who had brought everything on
4730 his shoulders, laid the cloth with amazing rapidity and dexterity; while
4731 the immovable waiter, who had brought nothing, found fault with him. The
4732 flying waiter then highly polished all the glasses he had brought, and
4733 the immovable waiter looked through them. The flying waiter then flew
4734 across Holborn for the soup, and flew back again, and then took another
4735 flight for the made-dish, and flew back again, and then took another
4736 flight for the joint and poultry, and flew back again, and between whiles
4737 took supplementary flights for a great variety of articles, as it was
4738 discovered from time to time that the immovable waiter had forgotten them
4739 all. But let the flying waiter cleave the air as he might, he was always
4740 reproached on his return by the immovable waiter for bringing fog with
4741 him, and being out of breath. At the conclusion of the repast, by which
4742 time the flying waiter was severely blown, the immovable waiter gathered
4743 up the tablecloth under his arm with a grand air, and having sternly (not
4744 to say with indignation) looked on at the flying waiter while he set the
4745 clean glasses round, directed a valedictory glance towards Mr. Grewgious,
4746 conveying: ‘Let it be clearly understood between us that the reward is
4747 mine, and that Nil is the claim of this slave,’ and pushed the flying
4748 waiter before him out of the room.
4749
4750 It was like a highly-finished miniature painting representing My Lords of
4751 the Circumlocution Department, Commandership-in-Chief of any sort,
4752 Government. It was quite an edifying little picture to be hung on the
4753 line in the National Gallery.
4754
4755 As the fog had been the proximate cause of this sumptuous repast, so the
4756 fog served for its general sauce. To hear the out-door clerks sneezing,
4757 wheezing, and beating their feet on the gravel was a zest far surpassing
4758 Doctor Kitchener’s. To bid, with a shiver, the unfortunate flying waiter
4759 shut the door before he had opened it, was a condiment of a profounder
4760 flavour than Harvey. And here let it be noticed, parenthetically, that
4761 the leg of this young man, in its application to the door, evinced the
4762 finest sense of touch: always preceding himself and tray (with something
4763 of an angling air about it), by some seconds: and always lingering after
4764 he and the tray had disappeared, like Macbeth’s leg when accompanying him
4765 off the stage with reluctance to the assassination of Duncan.
4766
4767 The host had gone below to the cellar, and had brought up bottles of
4768 ruby, straw-coloured, and golden drinks, which had ripened long ago in
4769 lands where no fogs are, and had since lain slumbering in the shade.
4770 Sparkling and tingling after so long a nap, they pushed at their corks to
4771 help the corkscrew (like prisoners helping rioters to force their gates),
4772 and danced out gaily. If P. J. T. in seventeen-forty-seven, or in any
4773 other year of his period, drank such wines—then, for a certainty, P. J.
4774 T. was Pretty Jolly Too.
4775
4776 Externally, Mr. Grewgious showed no signs of being mellowed by these
4777 glowing vintages. Instead of his drinking them, they might have been
4778 poured over him in his high-dried snuff form, and run to waste, for any
4779 lights and shades they caused to flicker over his face. Neither was his
4780 manner influenced. But, in his wooden way, he had observant eyes for
4781 Edwin; and when at the end of dinner, he motioned Edwin back to his own
4782 easy-chair in the fireside corner, and Edwin sank luxuriously into it
4783 after very brief remonstrance, Mr. Grewgious, as he turned his seat round
4784 towards the fire too, and smoothed his head and face, might have been
4785 seen looking at his visitor between his smoothing fingers.
4786
4787 ‘Bazzard!’ said Mr. Grewgious, suddenly turning to him.
4788
4789 ‘I follow you, sir,’ returned Bazzard; who had done his work of consuming
4790 meat and drink in a workmanlike manner, though mostly in speechlessness.
4791
4792 ‘I drink to you, Bazzard; Mr. Edwin, success to Mr. Bazzard!’
4793
4794 ‘Success to Mr. Bazzard!’ echoed Edwin, with a totally unfounded
4795 appearance of enthusiasm, and with the unspoken addition: ‘What in, I
4796 wonder!’
4797
4798 ‘And May!’ pursued Mr. Grewgious—‘I am not at liberty to be
4799 definite—May!—my conversational powers are so very limited that I know I
4800 shall not come well out of this—May!—it ought to be put imaginatively,
4801 but I have no imagination—May!—the thorn of anxiety is as nearly the mark
4802 as I am likely to get—May it come out at last!’
4803
4804 Mr. Bazzard, with a frowning smile at the fire, put a hand into his
4805 tangled locks, as if the thorn of anxiety were there; then into his
4806 waistcoat, as if it were there; then into his pockets, as if it were
4807 there. In all these movements he was closely followed by the eyes of
4808 Edwin, as if that young gentleman expected to see the thorn in action.
4809 It was not produced, however, and Mr. Bazzard merely said: ‘I follow you,
4810 sir, and I thank you.’
4811
4812 ‘I am going,’ said Mr. Grewgious, jingling his glass on the table with
4813 one hand, and bending aside under cover of the other, to whisper to
4814 Edwin, ‘to drink to my ward. But I put Bazzard first. He mightn’t like
4815 it else.’
4816
4817 This was said with a mysterious wink; or what would have been a wink, if,
4818 in Mr. Grewgious’s hands, it could have been quick enough. So Edwin
4819 winked responsively, without the least idea what he meant by doing so.
4820
4821 ‘And now,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘I devote a bumper to the fair and
4822 fascinating Miss Rosa. Bazzard, the fair and fascinating Miss Rosa!’
4823
4824 ‘I follow you, sir,’ said Bazzard, ‘and I pledge you!’
4825
4826 ‘And so do I!’ said Edwin.
4827
4828 ‘Lord bless me,’ cried Mr. Grewgious, breaking the blank silence which of
4829 course ensued: though why these pauses _should_ come upon us when we have
4830 performed any small social rite, not directly inducive of
4831 self-examination or mental despondency, who can tell? ‘I am a
4832 particularly Angular man, and yet I fancy (if I may use the word, not
4833 having a morsel of fancy), that I could draw a picture of a true lover’s
4834 state of mind, to-night.’
4835
4836 ‘Let us follow you, sir,’ said Bazzard, ‘and have the picture.’
4837
4838 ‘Mr. Edwin will correct it where it’s wrong,’ resumed Mr. Grewgious, ‘and
4839 will throw in a few touches from the life. I dare say it is wrong in
4840 many particulars, and wants many touches from the life, for I was born a
4841 Chip, and have neither soft sympathies nor soft experiences. Well! I
4842 hazard the guess that the true lover’s mind is completely permeated by
4843 the beloved object of his affections. I hazard the guess that her dear
4844 name is precious to him, cannot be heard or repeated without emotion, and
4845 is preserved sacred. If he has any distinguishing appellation of
4846 fondness for her, it is reserved for her, and is not for common ears. A
4847 name that it would be a privilege to call her by, being alone with her
4848 own bright self, it would be a liberty, a coldness, an insensibility,
4849 almost a breach of good faith, to flaunt elsewhere.’
4850
4851 It was wonderful to see Mr. Grewgious sitting bolt upright, with his
4852 hands on his knees, continuously chopping this discourse out of himself:
4853 much as a charity boy with a very good memory might get his catechism
4854 said: and evincing no correspondent emotion whatever, unless in a certain
4855 occasional little tingling perceptible at the end of his nose.
4856
4857 ‘My picture,’ Mr. Grewgious proceeded, ‘goes on to represent (under
4858 correction from you, Mr. Edwin), the true lover as ever impatient to be
4859 in the presence or vicinity of the beloved object of his affections; as
4860 caring very little for his case in any other society; and as constantly
4861 seeking that. If I was to say seeking that, as a bird seeks its nest, I
4862 should make an ass of myself, because that would trench upon what I
4863 understand to be poetry; and I am so far from trenching upon poetry at
4864 any time, that I never, to my knowledge, got within ten thousand miles of
4865 it. And I am besides totally unacquainted with the habits of birds,
4866 except the birds of Staple Inn, who seek their nests on ledges, and in
4867 gutter-pipes and chimneypots, not constructed for them by the beneficent
4868 hand of Nature. I beg, therefore, to be understood as foregoing the
4869 bird’s-nest. But my picture does represent the true lover as having no
4870 existence separable from that of the beloved object of his affections,
4871 and as living at once a doubled life and a halved life. And if I do not
4872 clearly express what I mean by that, it is either for the reason that
4873 having no conversational powers, I cannot express what I mean, or that
4874 having no meaning, I do not mean what I fail to express. Which, to the
4875 best of my belief, is not the case.’
4876
4877 Edwin had turned red and turned white, as certain points of this picture
4878 came into the light. He now sat looking at the fire, and bit his lip.
4879
4880 ‘The speculations of an Angular man,’ resumed Mr. Grewgious, still
4881 sitting and speaking exactly as before, ‘are probably erroneous on so
4882 globular a topic. But I figure to myself (subject, as before, to Mr.
4883 Edwin’s correction), that there can be no coolness, no lassitude, no
4884 doubt, no indifference, no half fire and half smoke state of mind, in a
4885 real lover. Pray am I at all near the mark in my picture?’
4886
4887 As abrupt in his conclusion as in his commencement and progress, he
4888 jerked this inquiry at Edwin, and stopped when one might have supposed
4889 him in the middle of his oration.
4890
4891 ‘I should say, sir,’ stammered Edwin, ‘as you refer the question to me—’
4892
4893 ‘Yes,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘I refer it to you, as an authority.’
4894
4895 ‘I should say, then, sir,’ Edwin went on, embarrassed, ‘that the picture
4896 you have drawn is generally correct; but I submit that perhaps you may be
4897 rather hard upon the unlucky lover.’
4898
4899 ‘Likely so,’ assented Mr. Grewgious, ‘likely so. I am a hard man in the
4900 grain.’
4901
4902 ‘He may not show,’ said Edwin, ‘all he feels; or he may not—’
4903
4904 There he stopped so long, to find the rest of his sentence, that Mr.
4905 Grewgious rendered his difficulty a thousand times the greater by
4906 unexpectedly striking in with:
4907
4908 ‘No to be sure; he _may_ not!’
4909
4910 After that, they all sat silent; the silence of Mr. Bazzard being
4911 occasioned by slumber.
4912
4913 ‘His responsibility is very great, though,’ said Mr. Grewgious at length,
4914 with his eyes on the fire.
4915
4916 Edwin nodded assent, with _his_ eyes on the fire.
4917
4918 ‘And let him be sure that he trifles with no one,’ said Mr. Grewgious;
4919 ‘neither with himself, nor with any other.’
4920
4921 Edwin bit his lip again, and still sat looking at the fire.
4922
4923 ‘He must not make a plaything of a treasure. Woe betide him if he does!
4924 Let him take that well to heart,’ said Mr. Grewgious.
4925
4926 Though he said these things in short sentences, much as the
4927 supposititious charity boy just now referred to might have repeated a
4928 verse or two from the Book of Proverbs, there was something dreamy (for
4929 so literal a man) in the way in which he now shook his right forefinger
4930 at the live coals in the grate, and again fell silent.
4931
4932 But not for long. As he sat upright and stiff in his chair, he suddenly
4933 rapped his knees, like the carved image of some queer Joss or other
4934 coming out of its reverie, and said: ‘We must finish this bottle, Mr.
4935 Edwin. Let me help you. I’ll help Bazzard too, though he _is_ asleep.
4936 He mightn’t like it else.’
4937
4938 He helped them both, and helped himself, and drained his glass, and stood
4939 it bottom upward on the table, as though he had just caught a bluebottle
4940 in it.
4941
4942 ‘And now, Mr. Edwin,’ he proceeded, wiping his mouth and hands upon his
4943 handkerchief: ‘to a little piece of business. You received from me, the
4944 other day, a certified copy of Miss Rosa’s father’s will. You knew its
4945 contents before, but you received it from me as a matter of business. I
4946 should have sent it to Mr. Jasper, but for Miss Rosa’s wishing it to come
4947 straight to you, in preference. You received it?’
4948
4949 ‘Quite safely, sir.’
4950
4951 ‘You should have acknowledged its receipt,’ said Mr. Grewgious; ‘business
4952 being business all the world over. However, you did not.’
4953
4954 ‘I meant to have acknowledged it when I first came in this evening, sir.’
4955
4956 ‘Not a business-like acknowledgment,’ returned Mr. Grewgious; ‘however,
4957 let that pass. Now, in that document you have observed a few words of
4958 kindly allusion to its being left to me to discharge a little trust,
4959 confided to me in conversation, at such time as I in my discretion may
4960 think best.’
4961
4962 ‘Yes, sir.’
4963
4964 ‘Mr. Edwin, it came into my mind just now, when I was looking at the
4965 fire, that I could, in my discretion, acquit myself of that trust at no
4966 better time than the present. Favour me with your attention, half a
4967 minute.’
4968
4969 He took a bunch of keys from his pocket, singled out by the candle-light
4970 the key he wanted, and then, with a candle in his hand, went to a bureau
4971 or escritoire, unlocked it, touched the spring of a little secret drawer,
4972 and took from it an ordinary ring-case made for a single ring. With this
4973 in his hand, he returned to his chair. As he held it up for the young
4974 man to see, his hand trembled.
4975
4976 ‘Mr. Edwin, this rose of diamonds and rubies delicately set in gold, was
4977 a ring belonging to Miss Rosa’s mother. It was removed from her dead
4978 hand, in my presence, with such distracted grief as I hope it may never
4979 be my lot to contemplate again. Hard man as I am, I am not hard enough
4980 for that. See how bright these stones shine!’ opening the case. ‘And
4981 yet the eyes that were so much brighter, and that so often looked upon
4982 them with a light and a proud heart, have been ashes among ashes, and
4983 dust among dust, some years! If I had any imagination (which it is
4984 needless to say I have not), I might imagine that the lasting beauty of
4985 these stones was almost cruel.’
4986
4987 He closed the case again as he spoke.
4988
4989 ‘This ring was given to the young lady who was drowned so early in her
4990 beautiful and happy career, by her husband, when they first plighted
4991 their faith to one another. It was he who removed it from her
4992 unconscious hand, and it was he who, when his death drew very near,
4993 placed it in mine. The trust in which I received it, was, that, you and
4994 Miss Rosa growing to manhood and womanhood, and your betrothal prospering
4995 and coming to maturity, I should give it to you to place upon her finger.
4996 Failing those desired results, it was to remain in my possession.’
4997
4998 Some trouble was in the young man’s face, and some indecision was in the
4999 action of his hand, as Mr. Grewgious, looking steadfastly at him, gave
5000 him the ring.
5001
5002 ‘Your placing it on her finger,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘will be the solemn
5003 seal upon your strict fidelity to the living and the dead. You are going
5004 to her, to make the last irrevocable preparations for your marriage.
5005 Take it with you.’
5006
5007 The young man took the little case, and placed it in his breast.
5008
5009 ‘If anything should be amiss, if anything should be even slightly wrong,
5010 between you; if you should have any secret consciousness that you are
5011 committing yourself to this step for no higher reason than because you
5012 have long been accustomed to look forward to it; then,’ said Mr.
5013 Grewgious, ‘I charge you once more, by the living and by the dead, to
5014 bring that ring back to me!’
5015
5016 Here Bazzard awoke himself by his own snoring; and, as is usual in such
5017 cases, sat apoplectically staring at vacancy, as defying vacancy to
5018 accuse him of having been asleep.
5019
5020 ‘Bazzard!’ said Mr. Grewgious, harder than ever.
5021
5022 ‘I follow you, sir,’ said Bazzard, ‘and I have been following you.’
5023
5024 ‘In discharge of a trust, I have handed Mr. Edwin Drood a ring of
5025 diamonds and rubies. You see?’
5026
5027 Edwin reproduced the little case, and opened it; and Bazzard looked into
5028 it.
5029
5030 ‘I follow you both, sir,’ returned Bazzard, ‘and I witness the
5031 transaction.’
5032
5033 Evidently anxious to get away and be alone, Edwin Drood now resumed his
5034 outer clothing, muttering something about time and appointments. The fog
5035 was reported no clearer (by the flying waiter, who alighted from a
5036 speculative flight in the coffee interest), but he went out into it; and
5037 Bazzard, after his manner, ‘followed’ him.
5038
5039 Mr. Grewgious, left alone, walked softly and slowly to and fro, for an
5040 hour and more. He was restless to-night, and seemed dispirited.
5041
5042 ‘I hope I have done right,’ he said. ‘The appeal to him seemed
5043 necessary. It was hard to lose the ring, and yet it must have gone from
5044 me very soon.’
5045
5046 He closed the empty little drawer with a sigh, and shut and locked the
5047 escritoire, and came back to the solitary fireside.
5048
5049 ‘Her ring,’ he went on. ‘Will it come back to me? My mind hangs about
5050 her ring very uneasily to-night. But that is explainable. I have had it
5051 so long, and I have prized it so much! I wonder—’
5052
5053 He was in a wondering mood as well as a restless; for, though he checked
5054 himself at that point, and took another walk, he resumed his wondering
5055 when he sat down again.
5056
5057 ‘I wonder (for the ten-thousandth time, and what a weak fool I, for what
5058 can it signify now!) whether he confided the charge of their orphan child
5059 to me, because he knew—Good God, how like her mother she has become!’
5060
5061 ‘I wonder whether he ever so much as suspected that some one doted on
5062 her, at a hopeless, speechless distance, when he struck in and won her.
5063 I wonder whether it ever crept into his mind who that unfortunate some
5064 one was!’
5065
5066 ‘I wonder whether I shall sleep to-night! At all events, I will shut out
5067 the world with the bedclothes, and try.’
5068
5069 Mr. Grewgious crossed the staircase to his raw and foggy bedroom, and was
5070 soon ready for bed. Dimly catching sight of his face in the misty
5071 looking-glass, he held his candle to it for a moment.
5072
5073 ‘A likely some one, _you_, to come into anybody’s thoughts in such an
5074 aspect!’ he exclaimed. ‘There! there! there! Get to bed, poor man, and
5075 cease to jabber!’
5076
5077 With that, he extinguished his light, pulled up the bedclothes around
5078 him, and with another sigh shut out the world. And yet there are such
5079 unexplored romantic nooks in the unlikeliest men, that even old tinderous
5080 and touchwoody P. J. T. Possibly Jabbered Thus, at some odd times, in or
5081 about seventeen-forty-seven.
5082
5083
5084
5085
5086 CHAPTER XII—A NIGHT WITH DURDLES
5087
5088
5089 When Mr. Sapsea has nothing better to do, towards evening, and finds the
5090 contemplation of his own profundity becoming a little monotonous in spite
5091 of the vastness of the subject, he often takes an airing in the Cathedral
5092 Close and thereabout. He likes to pass the churchyard with a swelling
5093 air of proprietorship, and to encourage in his breast a sort of
5094 benignant-landlord feeling, in that he has been bountiful towards that
5095 meritorious tenant, Mrs. Sapsea, and has publicly given her a prize. He
5096 likes to see a stray face or two looking in through the railings, and
5097 perhaps reading his inscription. Should he meet a stranger coming from
5098 the churchyard with a quick step, he is morally convinced that the
5099 stranger is ‘with a blush retiring,’ as monumentally directed.
5100
5101 Mr. Sapsea’s importance has received enhancement, for he has become Mayor
5102 of Cloisterham. Without mayors, and many of them, it cannot be disputed
5103 that the whole framework of society—Mr. Sapsea is confident that he
5104 invented that forcible figure—would fall to pieces. Mayors have been
5105 knighted for ‘going up’ with addresses: explosive machines intrepidly
5106 discharging shot and shell into the English Grammar. Mr. Sapsea may ‘go
5107 up’ with an address. Rise, Sir Thomas Sapsea! Of such is the salt of
5108 the earth.
5109
5110 Mr. Sapsea has improved the acquaintance of Mr. Jasper, since their first
5111 meeting to partake of port, epitaph, backgammon, beef, and salad. Mr.
5112 Sapsea has been received at the gatehouse with kindred hospitality; and
5113 on that occasion Mr. Jasper seated himself at the piano, and sang to him,
5114 tickling his ears—figuratively—long enough to present a considerable area
5115 for tickling. What Mr. Sapsea likes in that young man is, that he is
5116 always ready to profit by the wisdom of his elders, and that he is sound,
5117 sir, at the core. In proof of which, he sang to Mr. Sapsea that evening,
5118 no kickshaw ditties, favourites with national enemies, but gave him the
5119 genuine George the Third home-brewed; exhorting him (as ‘my brave boys’)
5120 to reduce to a smashed condition all other islands but this island, and
5121 all continents, peninsulas, isthmuses, promontories, and other
5122 geographical forms of land soever, besides sweeping the seas in all
5123 directions. In short, he rendered it pretty clear that Providence made a
5124 distinct mistake in originating so small a nation of hearts of oak, and
5125 so many other verminous peoples.
5126
5127 Mr. Sapsea, walking slowly this moist evening near the churchyard with
5128 his hands behind him, on the look-out for a blushing and retiring
5129 stranger, turns a corner, and comes instead into the goodly presence of
5130 the Dean, conversing with the Verger and Mr. Jasper. Mr. Sapsea makes
5131 his obeisance, and is instantly stricken far more ecclesiastical than any
5132 Archbishop of York or Canterbury.
5133
5134 ‘You are evidently going to write a book about us, Mr. Jasper,’ quoth the
5135 Dean; ‘to write a book about us. Well! We are very ancient, and we
5136 ought to make a good book. We are not so richly endowed in possessions
5137 as in age; but perhaps you will put _that_ in your book, among other
5138 things, and call attention to our wrongs.’
5139
5140 Mr. Tope, as in duty bound, is greatly entertained by this.
5141
5142 ‘I really have no intention at all, sir,’ replies Jasper, ‘of turning
5143 author or archæologist. It is but a whim of mine. And even for my whim,
5144 Mr. Sapsea here is more accountable than I am.’
5145
5146 ‘How so, Mr. Mayor?’ says the Dean, with a nod of good-natured
5147 recognition of his Fetch. ‘How is that, Mr. Mayor?’
5148
5149 ‘I am not aware,’ Mr. Sapsea remarks, looking about him for information,
5150 ‘to what the Very Reverend the Dean does me the honour of referring.’
5151 And then falls to studying his original in minute points of detail.
5152
5153 ‘Durdles,’ Mr. Tope hints.
5154
5155 ‘Ay!’ the Dean echoes; ‘Durdles, Durdles!’
5156
5157 ‘The truth is, sir,’ explains Jasper, ‘that my curiosity in the man was
5158 first really stimulated by Mr. Sapsea. Mr. Sapsea’s knowledge of mankind
5159 and power of drawing out whatever is recluse or odd around him, first led
5160 to my bestowing a second thought upon the man: though of course I had met
5161 him constantly about. You would not be surprised by this, Mr. Dean, if
5162 you had seen Mr. Sapsea deal with him in his own parlour, as I did.’
5163
5164 ‘O!’ cries Sapsea, picking up the ball thrown to him with ineffable
5165 complacency and pomposity; ‘yes, yes. The Very Reverend the Dean refers
5166 to that? Yes. I happened to bring Durdles and Mr. Jasper together. I
5167 regard Durdles as a Character.’
5168
5169 ‘A character, Mr. Sapsea, that with a few skilful touches you turn inside
5170 out,’ says Jasper.
5171
5172 ‘Nay, not quite that,’ returns the lumbering auctioneer. ‘I may have a
5173 little influence over him, perhaps; and a little insight into his
5174 character, perhaps. The Very Reverend the Dean will please to bear in
5175 mind that I have seen the world.’ Here Mr. Sapsea gets a little behind
5176 the Dean, to inspect his coat-buttons.
5177
5178 ‘Well!’ says the Dean, looking about him to see what has become of his
5179 copyist: ‘I hope, Mr. Mayor, you will use your study and knowledge of
5180 Durdles to the good purpose of exhorting him not to break our worthy and
5181 respected Choir-Master’s neck; we cannot afford it; his head and voice
5182 are much too valuable to us.’
5183
5184 Mr. Tope is again highly entertained, and, having fallen into respectful
5185 convulsions of laughter, subsides into a deferential murmur, importing
5186 that surely any gentleman would deem it a pleasure and an honour to have
5187 his neck broken, in return for such a compliment from such a source.
5188
5189 ‘I will take it upon myself, sir,’ observes Sapsea loftily, ‘to answer
5190 for Mr. Jasper’s neck. I will tell Durdles to be careful of it. He will
5191 mind what _I_ say. How is it at present endangered?’ he inquires,
5192 looking about him with magnificent patronage.
5193
5194 ‘Only by my making a moonlight expedition with Durdles among the tombs,
5195 vaults, towers, and ruins,’ returns Jasper. ‘You remember suggesting,
5196 when you brought us together, that, as a lover of the picturesque, it
5197 might be worth my while?’
5198
5199 ‘I remember!’ replies the auctioneer. And the solemn idiot really
5200 believes that he does remember.
5201
5202 ‘Profiting by your hint,’ pursues Jasper, ‘I have had some day-rambles
5203 with the extraordinary old fellow, and we are to make a moonlight
5204 hole-and-corner exploration to-night.’
5205
5206 ‘And here he is,’ says the Dean.
5207
5208 Durdles with his dinner-bundle in his hand, is indeed beheld slouching
5209 towards them. Slouching nearer, and perceiving the Dean, he pulls off
5210 his hat, and is slouching away with it under his arm, when Mr. Sapsea
5211 stops him.
5212
5213 ‘Mind you take care of my friend,’ is the injunction Mr. Sapsea lays upon
5214 him.
5215
5216 ‘What friend o’ yourn is dead?’ asks Durdles. ‘No orders has come in for
5217 any friend o’ yourn.’
5218
5219 ‘I mean my live friend there.’
5220
5221 ‘O! him?’ says Durdles. ‘He can take care of himself, can Mister
5222 Jarsper.’
5223
5224 ‘But do you take care of him too,’ says Sapsea.
5225
5226 Whom Durdles (there being command in his tone) surlily surveys from head
5227 to foot.
5228
5229 ‘With submission to his Reverence the Dean, if you’ll mind what concerns
5230 you, Mr. Sapsea, Durdles he’ll mind what concerns him.’
5231
5232 ‘You’re out of temper,’ says Mr. Sapsea, winking to the company to
5233 observe how smoothly he will manage him. ‘My friend concerns me, and Mr.
5234 Jasper is my friend. And you are my friend.’
5235
5236 ‘Don’t you get into a bad habit of boasting,’ retorts Durdles, with a
5237 grave cautionary nod. ‘It’ll grow upon you.’
5238
5239 [Picture: Durdles cautions Mr. Sapsea against boasting]
5240
5241 ‘You are out of temper,’ says Sapsea again; reddening, but again sinking
5242 to the company.
5243
5244 ‘I own to it,’ returns Durdles; ‘I don’t like liberties.’
5245
5246 Mr. Sapsea winks a third wink to the company, as who should say: ‘I think
5247 you will agree with me that I have settled _his_ business;’ and stalks
5248 out of the controversy.
5249
5250 Durdles then gives the Dean a good evening, and adding, as he puts his
5251 hat on, ‘You’ll find me at home, Mister Jarsper, as agreed, when you want
5252 me; I’m a-going home to clean myself,’ soon slouches out of sight. This
5253 going home to clean himself is one of the man’s incomprehensible
5254 compromises with inexorable facts; he, and his hat, and his boots, and
5255 his clothes, never showing any trace of cleaning, but being uniformly in
5256 one condition of dust and grit.
5257
5258 The lamplighter now dotting the quiet Close with specks of light, and
5259 running at a great rate up and down his little ladder with that
5260 object—his little ladder under the sacred shadow of whose inconvenience
5261 generations had grown up, and which all Cloisterham would have stood
5262 aghast at the idea of abolishing—the Dean withdraws to his dinner, Mr.
5263 Tope to his tea, and Mr. Jasper to his piano. There, with no light but
5264 that of the fire, he sits chanting choir-music in a low and beautiful
5265 voice, for two or three hours; in short, until it has been for some time
5266 dark, and the moon is about to rise.
5267
5268 Then he closes his piano softly, softly changes his coat for a
5269 pea-jacket, with a goodly wicker-cased bottle in its largest pocket, and
5270 putting on a low-crowned, flap-brimmed hat, goes softly out. Why does he
5271 move so softly to-night? No outward reason is apparent for it. Can
5272 there be any sympathetic reason crouching darkly within him?
5273
5274 Repairing to Durdles’s unfinished house, or hole in the city wall, and
5275 seeing a light within it, he softly picks his course among the
5276 gravestones, monuments, and stony lumber of the yard, already touched
5277 here and there, sidewise, by the rising moon. The two journeymen have
5278 left their two great saws sticking in their blocks of stone; and two
5279 skeleton journeymen out of the Dance of Death might be grinning in the
5280 shadow of their sheltering sentry-boxes, about to slash away at cutting
5281 out the gravestones of the next two people destined to die in
5282 Cloisterham. Likely enough, the two think little of that now, being
5283 alive, and perhaps merry. Curious, to make a guess at the two;—or say
5284 one of the two!
5285
5286 ‘Ho! Durdles!’
5287
5288 The light moves, and he appears with it at the door. He would seem to
5289 have been ‘cleaning himself’ with the aid of a bottle, jug, and tumbler;
5290 for no other cleansing instruments are visible in the bare brick room
5291 with rafters overhead and no plastered ceiling, into which he shows his
5292 visitor.
5293
5294 ‘Are you ready?’
5295
5296 ‘I am ready, Mister Jarsper. Let the old ’uns come out if they dare,
5297 when we go among their tombs. My spirit is ready for ’em.’
5298
5299 ‘Do you mean animal spirits, or ardent?’
5300
5301 ‘The one’s the t’other,’ answers Durdles, ‘and I mean ’em both.’
5302
5303 He takes a lantern from a hook, puts a match or two in his pocket
5304 wherewith to light it, should there be need; and they go out together,
5305 dinner-bundle and all.
5306
5307 Surely an unaccountable sort of expedition! That Durdles himself, who is
5308 always prowling among old graves, and ruins, like a Ghoul—that he should
5309 be stealing forth to climb, and dive, and wander without an object, is
5310 nothing extraordinary; but that the Choir-Master or any one else should
5311 hold it worth his while to be with him, and to study moonlight effects in
5312 such company is another affair. Surely an unaccountable sort of
5313 expedition, therefore!
5314
5315 ‘’Ware that there mound by the yard-gate, Mister Jarsper.’
5316
5317 ‘I see it. What is it?’
5318
5319 ‘Lime.’
5320
5321 Mr. Jasper stops, and waits for him to come up, for he lags behind.
5322 ‘What you call quick-lime?’
5323
5324 ‘Ay!’ says Durdles; ‘quick enough to eat your boots. With a little handy
5325 stirring, quick enough to eat your bones.’
5326
5327 They go on, presently passing the red windows of the Travellers’
5328 Twopenny, and emerging into the clear moonlight of the Monks’ Vineyard.
5329 This crossed, they come to Minor Canon Corner: of which the greater part
5330 lies in shadow until the moon shall rise higher in the sky.
5331
5332 The sound of a closing house-door strikes their ears, and two men come
5333 out. These are Mr. Crisparkle and Neville. Jasper, with a strange and
5334 sudden smile upon his face, lays the palm of his hand upon the breast of
5335 Durdles, stopping him where he stands.
5336
5337 At that end of Minor Canon Corner the shadow is profound in the existing
5338 state of the light: at that end, too, there is a piece of old dwarf wall,
5339 breast high, the only remaining boundary of what was once a garden, but
5340 is now the thoroughfare. Jasper and Durdles would have turned this wall
5341 in another instant; but, stopping so short, stand behind it.
5342
5343 ‘Those two are only sauntering,’ Jasper whispers; ‘they will go out into
5344 the moonlight soon. Let us keep quiet here, or they will detain us, or
5345 want to join us, or what not.’
5346
5347 Durdles nods assent, and falls to munching some fragments from his
5348 bundle. Jasper folds his arms upon the top of the wall, and, with his
5349 chin resting on them, watches. He takes no note whatever of the Minor
5350 Canon, but watches Neville, as though his eye were at the trigger of a
5351 loaded rifle, and he had covered him, and were going to fire. A sense of
5352 destructive power is so expressed in his face, that even Durdles pauses
5353 in his munching, and looks at him, with an unmunched something in his
5354 cheek.
5355
5356 Meanwhile Mr. Crisparkle and Neville walk to and fro, quietly talking
5357 together. What they say, cannot be heard consecutively; but Mr. Jasper
5358 has already distinguished his own name more than once.
5359
5360 ‘This is the first day of the week,’ Mr. Crisparkle can be distinctly
5361 heard to observe, as they turn back; ‘and the last day of the week is
5362 Christmas Eve.’
5363
5364 ‘You may be certain of me, sir.’
5365
5366 The echoes were favourable at those points, but as the two approach, the
5367 sound of their talking becomes confused again. The word ‘confidence,’
5368 shattered by the echoes, but still capable of being pieced together, is
5369 uttered by Mr. Crisparkle. As they draw still nearer, this fragment of a
5370 reply is heard: ‘Not deserved yet, but shall be, sir.’ As they turn away
5371 again, Jasper again hears his own name, in connection with the words from
5372 Mr. Crisparkle: ‘Remember that I said I answered for you confidently.’
5373 Then the sound of their talk becomes confused again; they halting for a
5374 little while, and some earnest action on the part of Neville succeeding.
5375 When they move once more, Mr. Crisparkle is seen to look up at the sky,
5376 and to point before him. They then slowly disappear; passing out into
5377 the moonlight at the opposite end of the Corner.
5378
5379 It is not until they are gone, that Mr. Jasper moves. But then he turns
5380 to Durdles, and bursts into a fit of laughter. Durdles, who still has
5381 that suspended something in his cheek, and who sees nothing to laugh at,
5382 stares at him until Mr. Jasper lays his face down on his arms to have his
5383 laugh out. Then Durdles bolts the something, as if desperately resigning
5384 himself to indigestion.
5385
5386 Among those secluded nooks there is very little stir or movement after
5387 dark. There is little enough in the high tide of the day, but there is
5388 next to none at night. Besides that the cheerfully frequented High
5389 Street lies nearly parallel to the spot (the old Cathedral rising between
5390 the two), and is the natural channel in which the Cloisterham traffic
5391 flows, a certain awful hush pervades the ancient pile, the cloisters, and
5392 the churchyard, after dark, which not many people care to encounter. Ask
5393 the first hundred citizens of Cloisterham, met at random in the streets
5394 at noon, if they believed in Ghosts, they would tell you no; but put them
5395 to choose at night between these eerie Precincts and the thoroughfare of
5396 shops, and you would find that ninety-nine declared for the longer round
5397 and the more frequented way. The cause of this is not to be found in any
5398 local superstition that attaches to the Precincts—albeit a mysterious
5399 lady, with a child in her arms and a rope dangling from her neck, has
5400 been seen flitting about there by sundry witnesses as intangible as
5401 herself—but it is to be sought in the innate shrinking of dust with the
5402 breath of life in it from dust out of which the breath of life has
5403 passed; also, in the widely diffused, and almost as widely
5404 unacknowledged, reflection: ‘If the dead do, under any circumstances,
5405 become visible to the living, these are such likely surroundings for the
5406 purpose that I, the living, will get out of them as soon as I can.’
5407 Hence, when Mr. Jasper and Durdles pause to glance around them, before
5408 descending into the crypt by a small side door, of which the latter has a
5409 key, the whole expanse of moonlight in their view is utterly deserted.
5410 One might fancy that the tide of life was stemmed by Mr. Jasper’s own
5411 gatehouse. The murmur of the tide is heard beyond; but no wave passes
5412 the archway, over which his lamp burns red behind his curtain, as if the
5413 building were a Lighthouse.
5414
5415 They enter, locking themselves in, descend the rugged steps, and are down
5416 in the Crypt. The lantern is not wanted, for the moonlight strikes in at
5417 the groined windows, bare of glass, the broken frames for which cast
5418 patterns on the ground. The heavy pillars which support the roof
5419 engender masses of black shade, but between them there are lanes of
5420 light. Up and down these lanes they walk, Durdles discoursing of the
5421 ‘old uns’ he yet counts on disinterring, and slapping a wall, in which he
5422 considers ‘a whole family on ’em’ to be stoned and earthed up, just as if
5423 he were a familiar friend of the family. The taciturnity of Durdles is
5424 for the time overcome by Mr. Jasper’s wicker bottle, which circulates
5425 freely;—in the sense, that is to say, that its contents enter freely into
5426 Mr. Durdles’s circulation, while Mr. Jasper only rinses his mouth once,
5427 and casts forth the rinsing.
5428
5429 They are to ascend the great Tower. On the steps by which they rise to
5430 the Cathedral, Durdles pauses for new store of breath. The steps are
5431 very dark, but out of the darkness they can see the lanes of light they
5432 have traversed. Durdles seats himself upon a step. Mr. Jasper seats
5433 himself upon another. The odour from the wicker bottle (which has
5434 somehow passed into Durdles’s keeping) soon intimates that the cork has
5435 been taken out; but this is not ascertainable through the sense of sight,
5436 since neither can descry the other. And yet, in talking, they turn to
5437 one another, as though their faces could commune together.
5438
5439 ‘This is good stuff, Mister Jarsper!’
5440
5441 ‘It is very good stuff, I hope.—I bought it on purpose.’
5442
5443 ‘They don’t show, you see, the old uns don’t, Mister Jarsper!’
5444
5445 ‘It would be a more confused world than it is, if they could.’
5446
5447 ‘Well, it _would_ lead towards a mixing of things,’ Durdles acquiesces:
5448 pausing on the remark, as if the idea of ghosts had not previously
5449 presented itself to him in a merely inconvenient light, domestically or
5450 chronologically. ‘But do you think there may be Ghosts of other things,
5451 though not of men and women?’
5452
5453 ‘What things? Flower-beds and watering-pots? horses and harness?’
5454
5455 ‘No. Sounds.’
5456
5457 ‘What sounds?’
5458
5459 ‘Cries.’
5460
5461 ‘What cries do you mean? Chairs to mend?’
5462
5463 ‘No. I mean screeches. Now I’ll tell you, Mr. Jarsper. Wait a bit till
5464 I put the bottle right.’ Here the cork is evidently taken out again, and
5465 replaced again. ‘There! _Now_ it’s right! This time last year, only a
5466 few days later, I happened to have been doing what was correct by the
5467 season, in the way of giving it the welcome it had a right to expect,
5468 when them town-boys set on me at their worst. At length I gave ’em the
5469 slip, and turned in here. And here I fell asleep. And what woke me?
5470 The ghost of a cry. The ghost of one terrific shriek, which shriek was
5471 followed by the ghost of the howl of a dog: a long, dismal, woeful howl,
5472 such as a dog gives when a person’s dead. That was _my_ last Christmas
5473 Eve.’
5474
5475 ‘What do you mean?’ is the very abrupt, and, one might say, fierce
5476 retort.
5477
5478 ‘I mean that I made inquiries everywhere about, and, that no living ears
5479 but mine heard either that cry or that howl. So I say they was both
5480 ghosts; though why they came to me, I’ve never made out.’
5481
5482 ‘I thought you were another kind of man,’ says Jasper, scornfully.
5483
5484 ‘So I thought myself,’ answers Durdles with his usual composure; ‘and yet
5485 I was picked out for it.’
5486
5487 Jasper had risen suddenly, when he asked him what he meant, and he now
5488 says, ‘Come; we shall freeze here; lead the way.’
5489
5490 Durdles complies, not over-steadily; opens the door at the top of the
5491 steps with the key he has already used; and so emerges on the Cathedral
5492 level, in a passage at the side of the chancel. Here, the moonlight is
5493 so very bright again that the colours of the nearest stained-glass window
5494 are thrown upon their faces. The appearance of the unconscious Durdles,
5495 holding the door open for his companion to follow, as if from the grave,
5496 is ghastly enough, with a purple hand across his face, and a yellow
5497 splash upon his brow; but he bears the close scrutiny of his companion in
5498 an insensible way, although it is prolonged while the latter fumbles
5499 among his pockets for a key confided to him that will open an iron gate,
5500 so to enable them to pass to the staircase of the great tower.
5501
5502 ‘That and the bottle are enough for you to carry,’ he says, giving it to
5503 Durdles; ‘hand your bundle to me; I am younger and longer-winded than
5504 you.’ Durdles hesitates for a moment between bundle and bottle; but
5505 gives the preference to the bottle as being by far the better company,
5506 and consigns the dry weight to his fellow-explorer.
5507
5508 Then they go up the winding staircase of the great tower, toilsomely,
5509 turning and turning, and lowering their heads to avoid the stairs above,
5510 or the rough stone pivot around which they twist. Durdles has lighted
5511 his lantern, by drawing from the cold, hard wall a spark of that
5512 mysterious fire which lurks in everything, and, guided by this speck,
5513 they clamber up among the cobwebs and the dust. Their way lies through
5514 strange places. Twice or thrice they emerge into level, low-arched
5515 galleries, whence they can look down into the moon-lit nave; and where
5516 Durdles, waving his lantern, waves the dim angels’ heads upon the corbels
5517 of the roof, seeming to watch their progress. Anon they turn into
5518 narrower and steeper staircases, and the night-air begins to blow upon
5519 them, and the chirp of some startled jackdaw or frightened rook precedes
5520 the heavy beating of wings in a confined space, and the beating down of
5521 dust and straws upon their heads. At last, leaving their light behind a
5522 stair—for it blows fresh up here—they look down on Cloisterham, fair to
5523 see in the moonlight: its ruined habitations and sanctuaries of the dead,
5524 at the tower’s base: its moss-softened red-tiled roofs and red-brick
5525 houses of the living, clustered beyond: its river winding down from the
5526 mist on the horizon, as though that were its source, and already heaving
5527 with a restless knowledge of its approach towards the sea.
5528
5529 Once again, an unaccountable expedition this! Jasper (always moving
5530 softly with no visible reason) contemplates the scene, and especially
5531 that stillest part of it which the Cathedral overshadows. But he
5532 contemplates Durdles quite as curiously, and Durdles is by times
5533 conscious of his watchful eyes.
5534
5535 Only by times, because Durdles is growing drowsy. As aëronauts lighten
5536 the load they carry, when they wish to rise, similarly Durdles has
5537 lightened the wicker bottle in coming up. Snatches of sleep surprise him
5538 on his legs, and stop him in his talk. A mild fit of calenture seizes
5539 him, in which he deems that the ground so far below, is on a level with
5540 the tower, and would as lief walk off the tower into the air as not.
5541 Such is his state when they begin to come down. And as aëronauts make
5542 themselves heavier when they wish to descend, similarly Durdles charges
5543 himself with more liquid from the wicker bottle, that he may come down
5544 the better.
5545
5546 The iron gate attained and locked—but not before Durdles has tumbled
5547 twice, and cut an eyebrow open once—they descend into the crypt again,
5548 with the intent of issuing forth as they entered. But, while returning
5549 among those lanes of light, Durdles becomes so very uncertain, both of
5550 foot and speech, that he half drops, half throws himself down, by one of
5551 the heavy pillars, scarcely less heavy than itself, and indistinctly
5552 appeals to his companion for forty winks of a second each.
5553
5554 ‘If you will have it so, or must have it so,’ replies Jasper, ‘I’ll not
5555 leave you here. Take them, while I walk to and fro.’
5556
5557 Durdles is asleep at once; and in his sleep he dreams a dream.
5558
5559 It is not much of a dream, considering the vast extent of the domains of
5560 dreamland, and their wonderful productions; it is only remarkable for
5561 being unusually restless and unusually real. He dreams of lying there,
5562 asleep, and yet counting his companion’s footsteps as he walks to and
5563 fro. He dreams that the footsteps die away into distance of time and of
5564 space, and that something touches him, and that something falls from his
5565 hand. Then something clinks and gropes about, and he dreams that he is
5566 alone for so long a time, that the lanes of light take new directions as
5567 the moon advances in her course. From succeeding unconsciousness he
5568 passes into a dream of slow uneasiness from cold; and painfully awakes to
5569 a perception of the lanes of light—really changed, much as he had
5570 dreamed—and Jasper walking among them, beating his hands and feet.
5571
5572 ‘Holloa!’ Durdles cries out, unmeaningly alarmed.
5573
5574 ‘Awake at last?’ says Jasper, coming up to him. ‘Do you know that your
5575 forties have stretched into thousands?’
5576
5577 ‘No.’
5578
5579 ‘They have though.’
5580
5581 ‘What’s the time?’
5582
5583 ‘Hark! The bells are going in the Tower!’
5584
5585 They strike four quarters, and then the great bell strikes.
5586
5587 ‘Two!’ cries Durdles, scrambling up; ‘why didn’t you try to wake me,
5588 Mister Jarsper?’
5589
5590 ‘I did. I might as well have tried to wake the dead—your own family of
5591 dead, up in the corner there.’
5592
5593 ‘Did you touch me?’
5594
5595 ‘Touch you! Yes. Shook you.’
5596
5597 As Durdles recalls that touching something in his dream, he looks down on
5598 the pavement, and sees the key of the crypt door lying close to where he
5599 himself lay.
5600
5601 ‘I dropped you, did I?’ he says, picking it up, and recalling that part
5602 of his dream. As he gathers himself up again into an upright position,
5603 or into a position as nearly upright as he ever maintains, he is again
5604 conscious of being watched by his companion.
5605
5606 ‘Well?’ says Jasper, smiling, ‘are you quite ready? Pray don’t hurry.’
5607
5608 ‘Let me get my bundle right, Mister Jarsper, and I’m with you.’ As he
5609 ties it afresh, he is once more conscious that he is very narrowly
5610 observed.
5611
5612 ‘What do you suspect me of, Mister Jarsper?’ he asks, with drunken
5613 displeasure. ‘Let them as has any suspicions of Durdles name ’em.’
5614
5615 ‘I’ve no suspicions of you, my good Mr. Durdles; but I have suspicions
5616 that my bottle was filled with something stiffer than either of us
5617 supposed. And I also have suspicions,’ Jasper adds, taking it from the
5618 pavement and turning it bottom upwards, ‘that it’s empty.’
5619
5620 Durdles condescends to laugh at this. Continuing to chuckle when his
5621 laugh is over, as though remonstrant with himself on his drinking powers,
5622 he rolls to the door and unlocks it. They both pass out, and Durdles
5623 relocks it, and pockets his key.
5624
5625 ‘A thousand thanks for a curious and interesting night,’ says Jasper,
5626 giving him his hand; ‘you can make your own way home?’
5627
5628 ‘I should think so!’ answers Durdles. ‘If you was to offer Durdles the
5629 affront to show him his way home, he wouldn’t go home.
5630
5631 Durdles wouldn’t go home till morning;
5632 And _then_ Durdles wouldn’t go home,
5633
5634 Durdles wouldn’t.’ This with the utmost defiance.
5635
5636 ‘Good-night, then.’
5637
5638 ‘Good-night, Mister Jarsper.’
5639
5640 Each is turning his own way, when a sharp whistle rends the silence, and
5641 the jargon is yelped out:
5642
5643 Widdy widdy wen!
5644 I—ket—ches—Im—out—ar—ter—ten.
5645 Widdy widdy wy!
5646 Then—E—don’t—go—then—I—shy—
5647 Widdy Widdy Wake-cock warning!’
5648
5649 Instantly afterwards, a rapid fire of stones rattles at the Cathedral
5650 wall, and the hideous small boy is beheld opposite, dancing in the
5651 moonlight.
5652
5653 ‘What! Is that baby-devil on the watch there!’ cries Jasper in a fury:
5654 so quickly roused, and so violent, that he seems an older devil himself.
5655 ‘I shall shed the blood of that impish wretch! I know I shall do it!’
5656 Regardless of the fire, though it hits him more than once, he rushes at
5657 Deputy, collars him, and tries to bring him across. But Deputy is not to
5658 be so easily brought across. With a diabolical insight into the
5659 strongest part of his position, he is no sooner taken by the throat than
5660 he curls up his legs, forces his assailant to hang him, as it were, and
5661 gurgles in his throat, and screws his body, and twists, as already
5662 undergoing the first agonies of strangulation. There is nothing for it
5663 but to drop him. He instantly gets himself together, backs over to
5664 Durdles, and cries to his assailant, gnashing the great gap in front of
5665 his mouth with rage and malice:
5666
5667 ‘I’ll blind yer, s’elp me! I’ll stone yer eyes out, s’elp me! If I
5668 don’t have yer eyesight, bellows me!’ At the same time dodging behind
5669 Durdles, and snarling at Jasper, now from this side of him, and now from
5670 that: prepared, if pounced upon, to dart away in all manner of
5671 curvilinear directions, and, if run down after all, to grovel in the
5672 dust, and cry: ‘Now, hit me when I’m down! Do it!’
5673
5674 ‘Don’t hurt the boy, Mister Jarsper,’ urges Durdles, shielding him.
5675 ‘Recollect yourself.’
5676
5677 ‘He followed us to-night, when we first came here!’
5678
5679 ‘Yer lie, I didn’t!’ replies Deputy, in his one form of polite
5680 contradiction.
5681
5682 ‘He has been prowling near us ever since!’
5683
5684 ‘Yer lie, I haven’t,’ returns Deputy. ‘I’d only jist come out for my
5685 ’elth when I see you two a-coming out of the Kin-freederel. If
5686
5687 I—ket—ches—Im—out—ar—ter—ten!’
5688
5689 (with the usual rhythm and dance, though dodging behind Durdles), ‘it
5690 ain’t _any_ fault, is it?’
5691
5692 ‘Take him home, then,’ retorts Jasper, ferociously, though with a strong
5693 check upon himself, ‘and let my eyes be rid of the sight of you!’
5694
5695 Deputy, with another sharp whistle, at once expressing his relief, and
5696 his commencement of a milder stoning of Mr. Durdles, begins stoning that
5697 respectable gentleman home, as if he were a reluctant ox. Mr. Jasper
5698 goes to his gatehouse, brooding. And thus, as everything comes to an
5699 end, the unaccountable expedition comes to an end—for the time.
5700
5701
5702
5703
5704 CHAPTER XIII—BOTH AT THEIR BEST
5705
5706
5707 Miss Twinkleton’s establishment was about to undergo a serene hush. The
5708 Christmas recess was at hand. What had once, and at no remote period,
5709 been called, even by the erudite Miss Twinkleton herself, ‘the half;’ but
5710 what was now called, as being more elegant, and more strictly collegiate,
5711 ‘the term,’ would expire to-morrow. A noticeable relaxation of
5712 discipline had for some few days pervaded the Nuns’ House. Club suppers
5713 had occurred in the bedrooms, and a dressed tongue had been carved with a
5714 pair of scissors, and handed round with the curling tongs. Portions of
5715 marmalade had likewise been distributed on a service of plates
5716 constructed of curlpaper; and cowslip wine had been quaffed from the
5717 small squat measuring glass in which little Rickitts (a junior of weakly
5718 constitution) took her steel drops daily. The housemaids had been bribed
5719 with various fragments of riband, and sundry pairs of shoes more or less
5720 down at heel, to make no mention of crumbs in the beds; the airiest
5721 costumes had been worn on these festive occasions; and the daring Miss
5722 Ferdinand had even surprised the company with a sprightly solo on the
5723 comb-and-curlpaper, until suffocated in her own pillow by two
5724 flowing-haired executioners.
5725
5726 Nor were these the only tokens of dispersal. Boxes appeared in the
5727 bedrooms (where they were capital at other times), and a surprising
5728 amount of packing took place, out of all proportion to the amount packed.
5729 Largess, in the form of odds and ends of cold cream and pomatum, and also
5730 of hairpins, was freely distributed among the attendants. On charges of
5731 inviolable secrecy, confidences were interchanged respecting golden youth
5732 of England expected to call, ‘at home,’ on the first opportunity. Miss
5733 Giggles (deficient in sentiment) did indeed profess that she, for her
5734 part, acknowledged such homage by making faces at the golden youth; but
5735 this young lady was outvoted by an immense majority.
5736
5737 On the last night before a recess, it was always expressly made a point
5738 of honour that nobody should go to sleep, and that Ghosts should be
5739 encouraged by all possible means. This compact invariably broke down,
5740 and all the young ladies went to sleep very soon, and got up very early.
5741
5742 The concluding ceremony came off at twelve o’clock on the day of
5743 departure; when Miss Twinkleton, supported by Mrs. Tisher, held a
5744 drawing-room in her own apartment (the globes already covered with brown
5745 Holland), where glasses of white-wine and plates of cut pound-cake were
5746 discovered on the table. Miss Twinkleton then said: Ladies, another
5747 revolving year had brought us round to that festive period at which the
5748 first feelings of our nature bounded in our—Miss Twinkleton was annually
5749 going to add ‘bosoms,’ but annually stopped on the brink of that
5750 expression, and substituted ‘hearts.’ Hearts; our hearts. Hem! Again a
5751 revolving year, ladies, had brought us to a pause in our studies—let us
5752 hope our greatly advanced studies—and, like the mariner in his bark, the
5753 warrior in his tent, the captive in his dungeon, and the traveller in his
5754 various conveyances, we yearned for home. Did we say, on such an
5755 occasion, in the opening words of Mr. Addison’s impressive tragedy:
5756
5757 ‘The dawn is overcast, the morning lowers,
5758 And heavily in clouds brings on the day,
5759 The great, th’ important day—?’
5760
5761 Not so. From horizon to zenith all was _couleur de rose_, for all was
5762 redolent of our relations and friends. Might _we_ find _them_ prospering
5763 as _we_ expected; might _they_ find _us_ prospering as _they_ expected!
5764 Ladies, we would now, with our love to one another, wish one another
5765 good-bye, and happiness, until we met again. And when the time should
5766 come for our resumption of those pursuits which (here a general
5767 depression set in all round), pursuits which, pursuits which;—then let us
5768 ever remember what was said by the Spartan General, in words too trite
5769 for repetition, at the battle it were superfluous to specify.
5770
5771 The handmaidens of the establishment, in their best caps, then handed the
5772 trays, and the young ladies sipped and crumbled, and the bespoken coaches
5773 began to choke the street. Then leave-taking was not long about; and
5774 Miss Twinkleton, in saluting each young lady’s cheek, confided to her an
5775 exceedingly neat letter, addressed to her next friend at law, ‘with Miss
5776 Twinkleton’s best compliments’ in the corner. This missive she handed
5777 with an air as if it had not the least connexion with the bill, but were
5778 something in the nature of a delicate and joyful surprise.
5779
5780 So many times had Rosa seen such dispersals, and so very little did she
5781 know of any other Home, that she was contented to remain where she was,
5782 and was even better contented than ever before, having her latest friend
5783 with her. And yet her latest friendship had a blank place in it of which
5784 she could not fail to be sensible. Helena Landless, having been a party
5785 to her brother’s revelation about Rosa, and having entered into that
5786 compact of silence with Mr. Crisparkle, shrank from any allusion to Edwin
5787 Drood’s name. Why she so avoided it, was mysterious to Rosa, but she
5788 perfectly perceived the fact. But for the fact, she might have relieved
5789 her own little perplexed heart of some of its doubts and hesitations, by
5790 taking Helena into her confidence. As it was, she had no such vent: she
5791 could only ponder on her own difficulties, and wonder more and more why
5792 this avoidance of Edwin’s name should last, now that she knew—for so much
5793 Helena had told her—that a good understanding was to be reëstablished
5794 between the two young men, when Edwin came down.
5795
5796 It would have made a pretty picture, so many pretty girls kissing Rosa in
5797 the cold porch of the Nuns’ House, and that sunny little creature peeping
5798 out of it (unconscious of sly faces carved on spout and gable peeping at
5799 her), and waving farewells to the departing coaches, as if she
5800 represented the spirit of rosy youth abiding in the place to keep it
5801 bright and warm in its desertion. The hoarse High Street became musical
5802 with the cry, in various silvery voices, ‘Good-bye, Rosebud darling!’ and
5803 the effigy of Mr. Sapsea’s father over the opposite doorway seemed to say
5804 to mankind: ‘Gentlemen, favour me with your attention to this charming
5805 little last lot left behind, and bid with a spirit worthy of the
5806 occasion!’ Then the staid street, so unwontedly sparkling, youthful, and
5807 fresh for a few rippling moments, ran dry, and Cloisterham was itself
5808 again.
5809
5810 [Picture: “Good-bye, Rosebud darling”]
5811
5812 If Rosebud in her bower now waited Edwin Drood’s coming with an uneasy
5813 heart, Edwin for his part was uneasy too. With far less force of purpose
5814 in his composition than the childish beauty, crowned by acclamation fairy
5815 queen of Miss Twinkleton’s establishment, he had a conscience, and Mr.
5816 Grewgious had pricked it. That gentleman’s steady convictions of what
5817 was right and what was wrong in such a case as his, were neither to be
5818 frowned aside nor laughed aside. They would not be moved. But for the
5819 dinner in Staple Inn, and but for the ring he carried in the breast
5820 pocket of his coat, he would have drifted into their wedding-day without
5821 another pause for real thought, loosely trusting that all would go well,
5822 left alone. But that serious putting him on his truth to the living and
5823 the dead had brought him to a check. He must either give the ring to
5824 Rosa, or he must take it back. Once put into this narrowed way of
5825 action, it was curious that he began to consider Rosa’s claims upon him
5826 more unselfishly than he had ever considered them before, and began to be
5827 less sure of himself than he had ever been in all his easy-going days.
5828
5829 ‘I will be guided by what she says, and by how we get on,’ was his
5830 decision, walking from the gatehouse to the Nuns’ House. ‘Whatever comes
5831 of it, I will bear his words in mind, and try to be true to the living
5832 and the dead.’
5833
5834 Rosa was dressed for walking. She expected him. It was a bright, frosty
5835 day, and Miss Twinkleton had already graciously sanctioned fresh air.
5836 Thus they got out together before it became necessary for either Miss
5837 Twinkleton, or the deputy high-priest Mrs. Tisher, to lay even so much as
5838 one of those usual offerings on the shrine of Propriety.
5839
5840 ‘My dear Eddy,’ said Rosa, when they had turned out of the High Street,
5841 and had got among the quiet walks in the neighbourhood of the Cathedral
5842 and the river: ‘I want to say something very serious to you. I have been
5843 thinking about it for a long, long time.’
5844
5845 ‘I want to be serious with you too, Rosa dear. I mean to be serious and
5846 earnest.’
5847
5848 ‘Thank you, Eddy. And you will not think me unkind because I begin, will
5849 you? You will not think I speak for myself only, because I speak first?
5850 That would not be generous, would it? And I know you are generous!’
5851
5852 He said, ‘I hope I am not ungenerous to you, Rosa.’ He called her Pussy
5853 no more. Never again.
5854
5855 ‘And there is no fear,’ pursued Rosa, ‘of our quarrelling, is there?
5856 Because, Eddy,’ clasping her hand on his arm, ‘we have so much reason to
5857 be very lenient to each other!’
5858
5859 ‘We will be, Rosa.’
5860
5861 ‘That’s a dear good boy! Eddy, let us be courageous. Let us change to
5862 brother and sister from this day forth.’
5863
5864 ‘Never be husband and wife?’
5865
5866 ‘Never!’
5867
5868 Neither spoke again for a little while. But after that pause he said,
5869 with some effort:
5870
5871 ‘Of course I know that this has been in both our minds, Rosa, and of
5872 course I am in honour bound to confess freely that it does not originate
5873 with you.’
5874
5875 ‘No, nor with you, dear,’ she returned, with pathetic earnestness. ‘That
5876 sprung up between us. You are not truly happy in our engagement; I am
5877 not truly happy in it. O, I am so sorry, so sorry!’ And there she broke
5878 into tears.
5879
5880 ‘I am deeply sorry too, Rosa. Deeply sorry for you.’
5881
5882 ‘And I for you, poor boy! And I for you!’
5883
5884 This pure young feeling, this gentle and forbearing feeling of each
5885 towards the other, brought with it its reward in a softening light that
5886 seemed to shine on their position. The relations between them did not
5887 look wilful, or capricious, or a failure, in such a light; they became
5888 elevated into something more self-denying, honourable, affectionate, and
5889 true.
5890
5891 ‘If we knew yesterday,’ said Rosa, as she dried her eyes, ‘and we did
5892 know yesterday, and on many, many yesterdays, that we were far from right
5893 together in those relations which were not of our own choosing, what
5894 better could we do to-day than change them? It is natural that we should
5895 be sorry, and you see how sorry we both are; but how much better to be
5896 sorry now than then!’
5897
5898 ‘When, Rosa?’
5899
5900 ‘When it would be too late. And then we should be angry, besides.’
5901
5902 Another silence fell upon them.
5903
5904 ‘And you know,’ said Rosa innocently, ‘you couldn’t like me then; and you
5905 can always like me now, for I shall not be a drag upon you, or a worry to
5906 you. And I can always like you now, and your sister will not tease or
5907 trifle with you. I often did when I was not your sister, and I beg your
5908 pardon for it.’
5909
5910 ‘Don’t let us come to that, Rosa; or I shall want more pardoning than I
5911 like to think of.’
5912
5913 ‘No, indeed, Eddy; you are too hard, my generous boy, upon yourself. Let
5914 us sit down, brother, on these ruins, and let me tell you how it was with
5915 us. I think I know, for I have considered about it very much since you
5916 were here last time. You liked me, didn’t you? You thought I was a nice
5917 little thing?’
5918
5919 ‘Everybody thinks that, Rosa.’
5920
5921 ‘Do they?’ She knitted her brow musingly for a moment, and then flashed
5922 out with the bright little induction: ‘Well, but say they do. Surely it
5923 was not enough that you should think of me only as other people did; now,
5924 was it?’
5925
5926 The point was not to be got over. It was not enough.
5927
5928 ‘And that is just what I mean; that is just how it was with us,’ said
5929 Rosa. ‘You liked me very well, and you had grown used to me, and had
5930 grown used to the idea of our being married. You accepted the situation
5931 as an inevitable kind of thing, didn’t you? It was to be, you thought,
5932 and why discuss or dispute it?’
5933
5934 It was new and strange to him to have himself presented to himself so
5935 clearly, in a glass of her holding up. He had always patronised her, in
5936 his superiority to her share of woman’s wit. Was that but another
5937 instance of something radically amiss in the terms on which they had been
5938 gliding towards a life-long bondage?
5939
5940 ‘All this that I say of you is true of me as well, Eddy. Unless it was,
5941 I might not be bold enough to say it. Only, the difference between us
5942 was, that by little and little there crept into my mind a habit of
5943 thinking about it, instead of dismissing it. My life is not so busy as
5944 yours, you see, and I have not so many things to think of. So I thought
5945 about it very much, and I cried about it very much too (though that was
5946 not your fault, poor boy); when all at once my guardian came down, to
5947 prepare for my leaving the Nuns’ House. I tried to hint to him that I
5948 was not quite settled in my mind, but I hesitated and failed, and he
5949 didn’t understand me. But he is a good, good man. And he put before me
5950 so kindly, and yet so strongly, how seriously we ought to consider, in
5951 our circumstances, that I resolved to speak to you the next moment we
5952 were alone and grave. And if I seemed to come to it easily just now,
5953 because I came to it all at once, don’t think it was so really, Eddy, for
5954 O, it was very, very hard, and O, I am very, very sorry!’
5955
5956 Her full heart broke into tears again. He put his arm about her waist,
5957 and they walked by the river-side together.
5958
5959 ‘Your guardian has spoken to me too, Rosa dear. I saw him before I left
5960 London.’ His right hand was in his breast, seeking the ring; but he
5961 checked it, as he thought: ‘If I am to take it back, why should I tell
5962 her of it?’
5963
5964 ‘And that made you more serious about it, didn’t it, Eddy? And if I had
5965 not spoken to you, as I have, you would have spoken to me? I hope you
5966 can tell me so? I don’t like it to be _all_ my doing, though it _is_ so
5967 much better for us.’
5968
5969 ‘Yes, I should have spoken; I should have put everything before you; I
5970 came intending to do it. But I never could have spoken to you as you
5971 have spoken to me, Rosa.’
5972
5973 ‘Don’t say you mean so coldly or unkindly, Eddy, please, if you can help
5974 it.’
5975
5976 ‘I mean so sensibly and delicately, so wisely and affectionately.’
5977
5978 ‘That’s my dear brother!’ She kissed his hand in a little rapture. ‘The
5979 dear girls will be dreadfully disappointed,’ added Rosa, laughing, with
5980 the dewdrops glistening in her bright eyes. ‘They have looked forward to
5981 it so, poor pets!’
5982
5983 ‘Ah! but I fear it will be a worse disappointment to Jack,’ said Edwin
5984 Drood, with a start. ‘I never thought of Jack!’
5985
5986 Her swift and intent look at him as he said the words could no more be
5987 recalled than a flash of lightning can. But it appeared as though she
5988 would have instantly recalled it, if she could; for she looked down,
5989 confused, and breathed quickly.
5990
5991 ‘You don’t doubt its being a blow to Jack, Rosa?’
5992
5993 She merely replied, and that evasively and hurriedly: Why should she?
5994 She had not thought about it. He seemed, to her, to have so little to do
5995 with it.
5996
5997 ‘My dear child! can you suppose that any one so wrapped up in
5998 another—Mrs. Tope’s expression: not mine—as Jack is in me, could fail to
5999 be struck all of a heap by such a sudden and complete change in my life?
6000 I say sudden, because it will be sudden to _him_, you know.’
6001
6002 She nodded twice or thrice, and her lips parted as if she would have
6003 assented. But she uttered no sound, and her breathing was no slower.
6004
6005 ‘How shall I tell Jack?’ said Edwin, ruminating. If he had been less
6006 occupied with the thought, he must have seen her singular emotion. ‘I
6007 never thought of Jack. It must be broken to him, before the town-crier
6008 knows it. I dine with the dear fellow to-morrow and next day—Christmas
6009 Eve and Christmas Day—but it would never do to spoil his feast-days. He
6010 always worries about me, and moddley-coddleys in the merest trifles. The
6011 news is sure to overset him. How on earth shall this be broken to Jack?’
6012
6013 ‘He must be told, I suppose?’ said Rosa.
6014
6015 ‘My dear Rosa! who ought to be in our confidence, if not Jack?’
6016
6017 ‘My guardian promised to come down, if I should write and ask him. I am
6018 going to do so. Would you like to leave it to him?’
6019
6020 ‘A bright idea!’ cried Edwin. ‘The other trustee. Nothing more natural.
6021 He comes down, he goes to Jack, he relates what we have agreed upon, and
6022 he states our case better than we could. He has already spoken feelingly
6023 to you, he has already spoken feelingly to me, and he’ll put the whole
6024 thing feelingly to Jack. That’s it! I am not a coward, Rosa, but to
6025 tell you a secret, I am a little afraid of Jack.’
6026
6027 ‘No, no! you are not afraid of him!’ cried Rosa, turning white, and
6028 clasping her hands.
6029
6030 ‘Why, sister Rosa, sister Rosa, what do you see from the turret?’ said
6031 Edwin, rallying her. ‘My dear girl!’
6032
6033 ‘You frightened me.’
6034
6035 ‘Most unintentionally, but I am as sorry as if I had meant to do it.
6036 Could you possibly suppose for a moment, from any loose way of speaking
6037 of mine, that I was literally afraid of the dear fond fellow? What I
6038 mean is, that he is subject to a kind of paroxysm, or fit—I saw him in it
6039 once—and I don’t know but that so great a surprise, coming upon him
6040 direct from me whom he is so wrapped up in, might bring it on perhaps.
6041 Which—and this is the secret I was going to tell you—is another reason
6042 for your guardian’s making the communication. He is so steady, precise,
6043 and exact, that he will talk Jack’s thoughts into shape, in no time:
6044 whereas with me Jack is always impulsive and hurried, and, I may say,
6045 almost womanish.’
6046
6047 Rosa seemed convinced. Perhaps from her own very different point of view
6048 of ‘Jack,’ she felt comforted and protected by the interposition of Mr.
6049 Grewgious between herself and him.
6050
6051 And now, Edwin Drood’s right hand closed again upon the ring in its
6052 little case, and again was checked by the consideration: ‘It is certain,
6053 now, that I am to give it back to him; then why should I tell her of it?’
6054 That pretty sympathetic nature which could be so sorry for him in the
6055 blight of their childish hopes of happiness together, and could so
6056 quietly find itself alone in a new world to weave fresh wreaths of such
6057 flowers as it might prove to bear, the old world’s flowers being
6058 withered, would be grieved by those sorrowful jewels; and to what
6059 purpose? Why should it be? They were but a sign of broken joys and
6060 baseless projects; in their very beauty they were (as the unlikeliest of
6061 men had said) almost a cruel satire on the loves, hopes, plans, of
6062 humanity, which are able to forecast nothing, and are so much brittle
6063 dust. Let them be. He would restore them to her guardian when he came
6064 down; he in his turn would restore them to the cabinet from which he had
6065 unwillingly taken them; and there, like old letters or old vows, or other
6066 records of old aspirations come to nothing, they would be disregarded,
6067 until, being valuable, they were sold into circulation again, to repeat
6068 their former round.
6069
6070 Let them be. Let them lie unspoken of, in his breast. However
6071 distinctly or indistinctly he entertained these thoughts, he arrived at
6072 the conclusion, Let them be. Among the mighty store of wonderful chains
6073 that are for ever forging, day and night, in the vast iron-works of time
6074 and circumstance, there was one chain forged in the moment of that small
6075 conclusion, riveted to the foundations of heaven and earth, and gifted
6076 with invincible force to hold and drag.
6077
6078 They walked on by the river. They began to speak of their separate
6079 plans. He would quicken his departure from England, and she would remain
6080 where she was, at least as long as Helena remained. The poor dear girls
6081 should have their disappointment broken to them gently, and, as the first
6082 preliminary, Miss Twinkleton should be confided in by Rosa, even in
6083 advance of the reappearance of Mr. Grewgious. It should be made clear in
6084 all quarters that she and Edwin were the best of friends. There had
6085 never been so serene an understanding between them since they were first
6086 affianced. And yet there was one reservation on each side; on hers, that
6087 she intended through her guardian to withdraw herself immediately from
6088 the tuition of her music-master; on his, that he did already entertain
6089 some wandering speculations whether it might ever come to pass that he
6090 would know more of Miss Landless.
6091
6092 The bright, frosty day declined as they walked and spoke together. The
6093 sun dipped in the river far behind them, and the old city lay red before
6094 them, as their walk drew to a close. The moaning water cast its seaweed
6095 duskily at their feet, when they turned to leave its margin; and the
6096 rooks hovered above them with hoarse cries, darker splashes in the
6097 darkening air.
6098
6099 ‘I will prepare Jack for my flitting soon,’ said Edwin, in a low voice,
6100 ‘and I will but see your guardian when he comes, and then go before they
6101 speak together. It will be better done without my being by. Don’t you
6102 think so?’
6103
6104 ‘Yes.’
6105
6106 ‘We know we have done right, Rosa?’
6107
6108 ‘Yes.’
6109
6110 ‘We know we are better so, even now?’
6111
6112 ‘And shall be far, far better so by-and-by.’
6113
6114 Still there was that lingering tenderness in their hearts towards the old
6115 positions they were relinquishing, that they prolonged their parting.
6116 When they came among the elm-trees by the Cathedral, where they had last
6117 sat together, they stopped as by consent, and Rosa raised her face to
6118 his, as she had never raised it in the old days;—for they were old
6119 already.
6120
6121 ‘God bless you, dear! Good-bye!’
6122
6123 ‘God bless you, dear! Good-bye!’
6124
6125 They kissed each other fervently.
6126
6127 ‘Now, please take me home, Eddy, and let me be by myself.’
6128
6129 ‘Don’t look round, Rosa,’ he cautioned her, as he drew her arm through
6130 his, and led her away. ‘Didn’t you see Jack?’
6131
6132 ‘No! Where?’
6133
6134 ‘Under the trees. He saw us, as we took leave of each other. Poor
6135 fellow! he little thinks we have parted. This will be a blow to him, I
6136 am much afraid!’
6137
6138 She hurried on, without resting, and hurried on until they had passed
6139 under the gatehouse into the street; once there, she asked:
6140
6141 ‘Has he followed us? You can look without seeming to. Is he behind?’
6142
6143 ‘No. Yes, he is! He has just passed out under the gateway. The dear,
6144 sympathetic old fellow likes to keep us in sight. I am afraid he will be
6145 bitterly disappointed!’
6146
6147 She pulled hurriedly at the handle of the hoarse old bell, and the gate
6148 soon opened. Before going in, she gave him one last, wide, wondering
6149 look, as if she would have asked him with imploring emphasis: ‘O! don’t
6150 you understand?’ And out of that look he vanished from her view.
6151
6152
6153
6154
6155 CHAPTER XIV—WHEN SHALL THESE THREE MEET AGAIN?
6156
6157
6158 Christmas Eve in Cloisterham. A few strange faces in the streets; a few
6159 other faces, half strange and half familiar, once the faces of
6160 Cloisterham children, now the faces of men and women who come back from
6161 the outer world at long intervals to find the city wonderfully shrunken
6162 in size, as if it had not washed by any means well in the meanwhile. To
6163 these, the striking of the Cathedral clock, and the cawing of the rooks
6164 from the Cathedral tower, are like voices of their nursery time. To such
6165 as these, it has happened in their dying hours afar off, that they have
6166 imagined their chamber-floor to be strewn with the autumnal leaves fallen
6167 from the elm-trees in the Close: so have the rustling sounds and fresh
6168 scents of their earliest impressions revived when the circle of their
6169 lives was very nearly traced, and the beginning and the end were drawing
6170 close together.
6171
6172 Seasonable tokens are about. Red berries shine here and there in the
6173 lattices of Minor Canon Corner; Mr. and Mrs. Tope are daintily sticking
6174 sprigs of holly into the carvings and sconces of the Cathedral stalls, as
6175 if they were sticking them into the coat-button-holes of the Dean and
6176 Chapter. Lavish profusion is in the shops: particularly in the articles
6177 of currants, raisins, spices, candied peel, and moist sugar. An unusual
6178 air of gallantry and dissipation is abroad; evinced in an immense bunch
6179 of mistletoe hanging in the greengrocer’s shop doorway, and a poor little
6180 Twelfth Cake, culminating in the figure of a Harlequin—such a very poor
6181 little Twelfth Cake, that one would rather called it a Twenty-fourth Cake
6182 or a Forty-eighth Cake—to be raffled for at the pastrycook’s, terms one
6183 shilling per member. Public amusements are not wanting. The Wax-Work
6184 which made so deep an impression on the reflective mind of the Emperor of
6185 China is to be seen by particular desire during Christmas Week only, on
6186 the premises of the bankrupt livery-stable-keeper up the lane; and a new
6187 grand comic Christmas pantomime is to be produced at the Theatre: the
6188 latter heralded by the portrait of Signor Jacksonini the clown, saying
6189 ‘How do you do to-morrow?’ quite as large as life, and almost as
6190 miserably. In short, Cloisterham is up and doing: though from this
6191 description the High School and Miss Twinkleton’s are to be excluded.
6192 From the former establishment the scholars have gone home, every one of
6193 them in love with one of Miss Twinkleton’s young ladies (who knows
6194 nothing about it); and only the handmaidens flutter occasionally in the
6195 windows of the latter. It is noticed, by the bye, that these damsels
6196 become, within the limits of decorum, more skittish when thus intrusted
6197 with the concrete representation of their sex, than when dividing the
6198 representation with Miss Twinkleton’s young ladies.
6199
6200 Three are to meet at the gatehouse to-night. How does each one of the
6201 three get through the day?
6202
6203 * * * * *
6204
6205 Neville Landless, though absolved from his books for the time by Mr.
6206 Crisparkle—whose fresh nature is by no means insensible to the charms of
6207 a holiday—reads and writes in his quiet room, with a concentrated air,
6208 until it is two hours past noon. He then sets himself to clearing his
6209 table, to arranging his books, and to tearing up and burning his stray
6210 papers. He makes a clean sweep of all untidy accumulations, puts all his
6211 drawers in order, and leaves no note or scrap of paper undestroyed, save
6212 such memoranda as bear directly on his studies. This done, he turns to
6213 his wardrobe, selects a few articles of ordinary wear—among them, change
6214 of stout shoes and socks for walking—and packs these in a knapsack. This
6215 knapsack is new, and he bought it in the High Street yesterday. He also
6216 purchased, at the same time and at the same place, a heavy walking-stick;
6217 strong in the handle for the grip of the hand, and iron-shod. He tries
6218 this, swings it, poises it, and lays it by, with the knapsack, on a
6219 window-seat. By this time his arrangements are complete.
6220
6221 He dresses for going out, and is in the act of going—indeed has left his
6222 room, and has met the Minor Canon on the staircase, coming out of his
6223 bedroom upon the same story—when he turns back again for his
6224 walking-stick, thinking he will carry it now. Mr. Crisparkle, who has
6225 paused on the staircase, sees it in his hand on his immediately
6226 reappearing, takes it from him, and asks him with a smile how he chooses
6227 a stick?
6228
6229 ‘Really I don’t know that I understand the subject,’ he answers. ‘I
6230 chose it for its weight.’
6231
6232 ‘Much too heavy, Neville; _much_ too heavy.’
6233
6234 ‘To rest upon in a long walk, sir?’
6235
6236 ‘Rest upon?’ repeats Mr. Crisparkle, throwing himself into pedestrian
6237 form. ‘You don’t rest upon it; you merely balance with it.’
6238
6239 ‘I shall know better, with practice, sir. I have not lived in a walking
6240 country, you know.’
6241
6242 ‘True,’ says Mr. Crisparkle. ‘Get into a little training, and we will
6243 have a few score miles together. I should leave you nowhere now. Do you
6244 come back before dinner?’
6245
6246 ‘I think not, as we dine early.’
6247
6248 Mr. Crisparkle gives him a bright nod and a cheerful good-bye; expressing
6249 (not without intention) absolute confidence and ease.
6250
6251 Neville repairs to the Nuns’ House, and requests that Miss Landless may
6252 be informed that her brother is there, by appointment. He waits at the
6253 gate, not even crossing the threshold; for he is on his parole not to put
6254 himself in Rosa’s way.
6255
6256 His sister is at least as mindful of the obligation they have taken on
6257 themselves as he can be, and loses not a moment in joining him. They
6258 meet affectionately, avoid lingering there, and walk towards the upper
6259 inland country.
6260
6261 ‘I am not going to tread upon forbidden ground, Helena,’ says Neville,
6262 when they have walked some distance and are turning; ‘you will understand
6263 in another moment that I cannot help referring to—what shall I say?—my
6264 infatuation.’
6265
6266 ‘Had you not better avoid it, Neville? You know that I can hear
6267 nothing.’
6268
6269 ‘You can hear, my dear, what Mr. Crisparkle has heard, and heard with
6270 approval.’
6271
6272 ‘Yes; I can hear so much.’
6273
6274 ‘Well, it is this. I am not only unsettled and unhappy myself, but I am
6275 conscious of unsettling and interfering with other people. How do I know
6276 that, but for my unfortunate presence, you, and—and—the rest of that
6277 former party, our engaging guardian excepted, might be dining cheerfully
6278 in Minor Canon Corner to-morrow? Indeed it probably would be so. I can
6279 see too well that I am not high in the old lady’s opinion, and it is easy
6280 to understand what an irksome clog I must be upon the hospitalities of
6281 her orderly house—especially at this time of year—when I must be kept
6282 asunder from this person, and there is such a reason for my not being
6283 brought into contact with that person, and an unfavourable reputation has
6284 preceded me with such another person; and so on. I have put this very
6285 gently to Mr. Crisparkle, for you know his self-denying ways; but still I
6286 have put it. What I have laid much greater stress upon at the same time
6287 is, that I am engaged in a miserable struggle with myself, and that a
6288 little change and absence may enable me to come through it the better.
6289 So, the weather being bright and hard, I am going on a walking
6290 expedition, and intend taking myself out of everybody’s way (my own
6291 included, I hope) to-morrow morning.’
6292
6293 ‘When to come back?’
6294
6295 ‘In a fortnight.’
6296
6297 ‘And going quite alone?’
6298
6299 ‘I am much better without company, even if there were any one but you to
6300 bear me company, my dear Helena.’
6301
6302 ‘Mr. Crisparkle entirely agrees, you say?’
6303
6304 ‘Entirely. I am not sure but that at first he was inclined to think it
6305 rather a moody scheme, and one that might do a brooding mind harm. But
6306 we took a moonlight walk last Monday night, to talk it over at leisure,
6307 and I represented the case to him as it really is. I showed him that I
6308 do want to conquer myself, and that, this evening well got over, it is
6309 surely better that I should be away from here just now, than here. I
6310 could hardly help meeting certain people walking together here, and that
6311 could do no good, and is certainly not the way to forget. A fortnight
6312 hence, that chance will probably be over, for the time; and when it again
6313 arises for the last time, why, I can again go away. Farther, I really do
6314 feel hopeful of bracing exercise and wholesome fatigue. You know that
6315 Mr. Crisparkle allows such things their full weight in the preservation
6316 of his own sound mind in his own sound body, and that his just spirit is
6317 not likely to maintain one set of natural laws for himself and another
6318 for me. He yielded to my view of the matter, when convinced that I was
6319 honestly in earnest; and so, with his full consent, I start to-morrow
6320 morning. Early enough to be not only out of the streets, but out of
6321 hearing of the bells, when the good people go to church.’
6322
6323 Helena thinks it over, and thinks well of it. Mr. Crisparkle doing so,
6324 she would do so; but she does originally, out of her own mind, think well
6325 of it, as a healthy project, denoting a sincere endeavour and an active
6326 attempt at self-correction. She is inclined to pity him, poor fellow,
6327 for going away solitary on the great Christmas festival; but she feels it
6328 much more to the purpose to encourage him. And she does encourage him.
6329
6330 He will write to her?
6331
6332 He will write to her every alternate day, and tell her all his
6333 adventures.
6334
6335 Does he send clothes on in advance of him?
6336
6337 ‘My dear Helena, no. Travel like a pilgrim, with wallet and staff. My
6338 wallet—or my knapsack—is packed, and ready for strapping on; and here is
6339 my staff!’
6340
6341 He hands it to her; she makes the same remark as Mr. Crisparkle, that it
6342 is very heavy; and gives it back to him, asking what wood it is?
6343 Iron-wood.
6344
6345 Up to this point he has been extremely cheerful. Perhaps, the having to
6346 carry his case with her, and therefore to present it in its brightest
6347 aspect, has roused his spirits. Perhaps, the having done so with
6348 success, is followed by a revulsion. As the day closes in, and the
6349 city-lights begin to spring up before them, he grows depressed.
6350
6351 ‘I wish I were not going to this dinner, Helena.’
6352
6353 ‘Dear Neville, is it worth while to care much about it? Think how soon
6354 it will be over.’
6355
6356 ‘How soon it will be over!’ he repeats gloomily. ‘Yes. But I don’t like
6357 it.’
6358
6359 There may be a moment’s awkwardness, she cheeringly represents to him,
6360 but it can only last a moment. He is quite sure of himself.
6361
6362 ‘I wish I felt as sure of everything else, as I feel of myself,’ he
6363 answers her.
6364
6365 ‘How strangely you speak, dear! What do you mean?’
6366
6367 ‘Helena, I don’t know. I only know that I don’t like it. What a strange
6368 dead weight there is in the air!’
6369
6370 She calls his attention to those copperous clouds beyond the river, and
6371 says that the wind is rising. He scarcely speaks again, until he takes
6372 leave of her, at the gate of the Nuns’ House. She does not immediately
6373 enter, when they have parted, but remains looking after him along the
6374 street. Twice he passes the gatehouse, reluctant to enter. At length,
6375 the Cathedral clock chiming one quarter, with a rapid turn he hurries in.
6376
6377 And so _he_ goes up the postern stair.
6378
6379 * * * * *
6380
6381 Edwin Drood passes a solitary day. Something of deeper moment than he
6382 had thought, has gone out of his life; and in the silence of his own
6383 chamber he wept for it last night. Though the image of Miss Landless
6384 still hovers in the background of his mind, the pretty little
6385 affectionate creature, so much firmer and wiser than he had supposed,
6386 occupies its stronghold. It is with some misgiving of his own
6387 unworthiness that he thinks of her, and of what they might have been to
6388 one another, if he had been more in earnest some time ago; if he had set
6389 a higher value on her; if, instead of accepting his lot in life as an
6390 inheritance of course, he had studied the right way to its appreciation
6391 and enhancement. And still, for all this, and though there is a sharp
6392 heartache in all this, the vanity and caprice of youth sustain that
6393 handsome figure of Miss Landless in the background of his mind.
6394
6395 That was a curious look of Rosa’s when they parted at the gate. Did it
6396 mean that she saw below the surface of his thoughts, and down into their
6397 twilight depths? Scarcely that, for it was a look of astonished and keen
6398 inquiry. He decides that he cannot understand it, though it was
6399 remarkably expressive.
6400
6401 As he only waits for Mr. Grewgious now, and will depart immediately after
6402 having seen him, he takes a sauntering leave of the ancient city and its
6403 neighbourhood. He recalls the time when Rosa and he walked here or
6404 there, mere children, full of the dignity of being engaged. Poor
6405 children! he thinks, with a pitying sadness.
6406
6407 Finding that his watch has stopped, he turns into the jeweller’s shop, to
6408 have it wound and set. The jeweller is knowing on the subject of a
6409 bracelet, which he begs leave to submit, in a general and quite aimless
6410 way. It would suit (he considers) a young bride, to perfection;
6411 especially if of a rather diminutive style of beauty. Finding the
6412 bracelet but coldly looked at, the jeweller invites attention to a tray
6413 of rings for gentlemen; here is a style of ring, now, he remarks—a very
6414 chaste signet—which gentlemen are much given to purchasing, when changing
6415 their condition. A ring of a very responsible appearance. With the date
6416 of their wedding-day engraved inside, several gentlemen have preferred it
6417 to any other kind of memento.
6418
6419 The rings are as coldly viewed as the bracelet. Edwin tells the tempter
6420 that he wears no jewellery but his watch and chain, which were his
6421 father’s; and his shirt-pin.
6422
6423 ‘That I was aware of,’ is the jeweller’s reply, ‘for Mr. Jasper dropped
6424 in for a watch-glass the other day, and, in fact, I showed these articles
6425 to him, remarking that if he _should_ wish to make a present to a
6426 gentleman relative, on any particular occasion—But he said with a smile
6427 that he had an inventory in his mind of all the jewellery his gentleman
6428 relative ever wore; namely, his watch and chain, and his shirt-pin.’
6429 Still (the jeweller considers) that might not apply to all times, though
6430 applying to the present time. ‘Twenty minutes past two, Mr. Drood, I set
6431 your watch at. Let me recommend you not to let it run down, sir.’
6432
6433 Edwin takes his watch, puts it on, and goes out, thinking: ‘Dear old
6434 Jack! If I were to make an extra crease in my neckcloth, he would think
6435 it worth noticing!’
6436
6437 He strolls about and about, to pass the time until the dinner-hour. It
6438 somehow happens that Cloisterham seems reproachful to him to-day; has
6439 fault to find with him, as if he had not used it well; but is far more
6440 pensive with him than angry. His wonted carelessness is replaced by a
6441 wistful looking at, and dwelling upon, all the old landmarks. He will
6442 soon be far away, and may never see them again, he thinks. Poor youth!
6443 Poor youth!
6444
6445 As dusk draws on, he paces the Monks’ Vineyard. He has walked to and
6446 fro, full half an hour by the Cathedral chimes, and it has closed in
6447 dark, before he becomes quite aware of a woman crouching on the ground
6448 near a wicket gate in a corner. The gate commands a cross bye-path,
6449 little used in the gloaming; and the figure must have been there all the
6450 time, though he has but gradually and lately made it out.
6451
6452 He strikes into that path, and walks up to the wicket. By the light of a
6453 lamp near it, he sees that the woman is of a haggard appearance, and that
6454 her weazen chin is resting on her hands, and that her eyes are
6455 staring—with an unwinking, blind sort of steadfastness—before her.
6456
6457 Always kindly, but moved to be unusually kind this evening, and having
6458 bestowed kind words on most of the children and aged people he has met,
6459 he at once bends down, and speaks to this woman.
6460
6461 ‘Are you ill?’
6462
6463 ‘No, deary,’ she answers, without looking at him, and with no departure
6464 from her strange blind stare.
6465
6466 ‘Are you blind?’
6467
6468 ‘No, deary.’
6469
6470 ‘Are you lost, homeless, faint? What is the matter, that you stay here
6471 in the cold so long, without moving?’
6472
6473 By slow and stiff efforts, she appears to contract her vision until it
6474 can rest upon him; and then a curious film passes over her, and she
6475 begins to shake.
6476
6477 He straightens himself, recoils a step, and looks down at her in a dread
6478 amazement; for he seems to know her.
6479
6480 ‘Good Heaven!’ he thinks, next moment. ‘Like Jack that night!’
6481
6482 As he looks down at her, she looks up at him, and whimpers: ‘My lungs is
6483 weakly; my lungs is dreffle bad. Poor me, poor me, my cough is rattling
6484 dry!’ and coughs in confirmation horribly.
6485
6486 ‘Where do you come from?’
6487
6488 ‘Come from London, deary.’ (Her cough still rending her.)
6489
6490 ‘Where are you going to?’
6491
6492 ‘Back to London, deary. I came here, looking for a needle in a haystack,
6493 and I ain’t found it. Look’ee, deary; give me three-and-sixpence, and
6494 don’t you be afeard for me. I’ll get back to London then, and trouble no
6495 one. I’m in a business.—Ah, me! It’s slack, it’s slack, and times is
6496 very bad!—but I can make a shift to live by it.’
6497
6498 ‘Do you eat opium?’
6499
6500 ‘Smokes it,’ she replies with difficulty, still racked by her cough.
6501 ‘Give me three-and-sixpence, and I’ll lay it out well, and get back. If
6502 you don’t give me three-and-sixpence, don’t give me a brass farden. And
6503 if you do give me three-and-sixpence, deary, I’ll tell you something.’
6504
6505 He counts the money from his pocket, and puts it in her hand. She
6506 instantly clutches it tight, and rises to her feet with a croaking laugh
6507 of satisfaction.
6508
6509 ‘Bless ye! Hark’ee, dear genl’mn. What’s your Chris’en name?’
6510
6511 ‘Edwin.’
6512
6513 ‘Edwin, Edwin, Edwin,’ she repeats, trailing off into a drowsy repetition
6514 of the word; and then asks suddenly: ‘Is the short of that name Eddy?’
6515
6516 ‘It is sometimes called so,’ he replies, with the colour starting to his
6517 face.
6518
6519 ‘Don’t sweethearts call it so?’ she asks, pondering.
6520
6521 ‘How should I know?’
6522
6523 ‘Haven’t you a sweetheart, upon your soul?’
6524
6525 ‘None.’
6526
6527 She is moving away, with another ‘Bless ye, and thank’ee, deary!’ when he
6528 adds: ‘You were to tell me something; you may as well do so.’
6529
6530 ‘So I was, so I was. Well, then. Whisper. You be thankful that your
6531 name ain’t Ned.’
6532
6533 He looks at her quite steadily, as he asks: ‘Why?’
6534
6535 ‘Because it’s a bad name to have just now.’
6536
6537 ‘How a bad name?’
6538
6539 ‘A threatened name. A dangerous name.’
6540
6541 ‘The proverb says that threatened men live long,’ he tells her, lightly.
6542
6543 ‘Then Ned—so threatened is he, wherever he may be while I am a-talking to
6544 you, deary—should live to all eternity!’ replies the woman.
6545
6546 She has leaned forward to say it in his ear, with her forefinger shaking
6547 before his eyes, and now huddles herself together, and with another
6548 ‘Bless ye, and thank’ee!’ goes away in the direction of the Travellers’
6549 Lodging House.
6550
6551 This is not an inspiriting close to a dull day. Alone, in a sequestered
6552 place, surrounded by vestiges of old time and decay, it rather has a
6553 tendency to call a shudder into being. He makes for the better-lighted
6554 streets, and resolves as he walks on to say nothing of this to-night, but
6555 to mention it to Jack (who alone calls him Ned), as an odd coincidence,
6556 to-morrow; of course only as a coincidence, and not as anything better
6557 worth remembering.
6558
6559 Still, it holds to him, as many things much better worth remembering
6560 never did. He has another mile or so, to linger out before the
6561 dinner-hour; and, when he walks over the bridge and by the river, the
6562 woman’s words are in the rising wind, in the angry sky, in the troubled
6563 water, in the flickering lights. There is some solemn echo of them even
6564 in the Cathedral chime, which strikes a sudden surprise to his heart as
6565 he turns in under the archway of the gatehouse.
6566
6567 And so _he_ goes up the postern stair.
6568
6569 * * * * *
6570
6571 John Jasper passes a more agreeable and cheerful day than either of his
6572 guests. Having no music-lessons to give in the holiday season, his time
6573 is his own, but for the Cathedral services. He is early among the
6574 shopkeepers, ordering little table luxuries that his nephew likes. His
6575 nephew will not be with him long, he tells his provision-dealers, and so
6576 must be petted and made much of. While out on his hospitable
6577 preparations, he looks in on Mr. Sapsea; and mentions that dear Ned, and
6578 that inflammable young spark of Mr. Crisparkle’s, are to dine at the
6579 gatehouse to-day, and make up their difference. Mr. Sapsea is by no
6580 means friendly towards the inflammable young spark. He says that his
6581 complexion is ‘Un-English.’ And when Mr. Sapsea has once declared
6582 anything to be Un-English, he considers that thing everlastingly sunk in
6583 the bottomless pit.
6584
6585 John Jasper is truly sorry to hear Mr. Sapsea speak thus, for he knows
6586 right well that Mr. Sapsea never speaks without a meaning, and that he
6587 has a subtle trick of being right. Mr. Sapsea (by a very remarkable
6588 coincidence) is of exactly that opinion.
6589
6590 Mr. Jasper is in beautiful voice this day. In the pathetic supplication
6591 to have his heart inclined to keep this law, he quite astonishes his
6592 fellows by his melodious power. He has never sung difficult music with
6593 such skill and harmony, as in this day’s Anthem. His nervous temperament
6594 is occasionally prone to take difficult music a little too quickly;
6595 to-day, his time is perfect.
6596
6597 These results are probably attained through a grand composure of the
6598 spirits. The mere mechanism of his throat is a little tender, for he
6599 wears, both with his singing-robe and with his ordinary dress, a large
6600 black scarf of strong close-woven silk, slung loosely round his neck.
6601 But his composure is so noticeable, that Mr. Crisparkle speaks of it as
6602 they come out from Vespers.
6603
6604 ‘I must thank you, Jasper, for the pleasure with which I have heard you
6605 to-day. Beautiful! Delightful! You could not have so outdone yourself,
6606 I hope, without being wonderfully well.’
6607
6608 ‘I _am_ wonderfully well.’
6609
6610 ‘Nothing unequal,’ says the Minor Canon, with a smooth motion of his
6611 hand: ‘nothing unsteady, nothing forced, nothing avoided; all thoroughly
6612 done in a masterly manner, with perfect self-command.’
6613
6614 ‘Thank you. I hope so, if it is not too much to say.’
6615
6616 ‘One would think, Jasper, you had been trying a new medicine for that
6617 occasional indisposition of yours.’
6618
6619 ‘No, really? That’s well observed; for I have.’
6620
6621 ‘Then stick to it, my good fellow,’ says Mr. Crisparkle, clapping him on
6622 the shoulder with friendly encouragement, ‘stick to it.’
6623
6624 ‘I will.’
6625
6626 ‘I congratulate you,’ Mr. Crisparkle pursues, as they come out of the
6627 Cathedral, ‘on all accounts.’
6628
6629 ‘Thank you again. I will walk round to the Corner with you, if you don’t
6630 object; I have plenty of time before my company come; and I want to say a
6631 word to you, which I think you will not be displeased to hear.’
6632
6633 ‘What is it?’
6634
6635 ‘Well. We were speaking, the other evening, of my black humours.’
6636
6637 Mr. Crisparkle’s face falls, and he shakes his head deploringly.
6638
6639 ‘I said, you know, that I should make you an antidote to those black
6640 humours; and you said you hoped I would consign them to the flames.’
6641
6642 ‘And I still hope so, Jasper.’
6643
6644 ‘With the best reason in the world! I mean to burn this year’s Diary at
6645 the year’s end.’
6646
6647 ‘Because you—?’ Mr. Crisparkle brightens greatly as he thus begins.
6648
6649 ‘You anticipate me. Because I feel that I have been out of sorts,
6650 gloomy, bilious, brain-oppressed, whatever it may be. You said I had
6651 been exaggerative. So I have.’
6652
6653 Mr. Crisparkle’s brightened face brightens still more.
6654
6655 ‘I couldn’t see it then, because I _was_ out of sorts; but I am in a
6656 healthier state now, and I acknowledge it with genuine pleasure. I made
6657 a great deal of a very little; that’s the fact.’
6658
6659 ‘It does me good,’ cries Mr. Crisparkle, ‘to hear you say it!’
6660
6661 ‘A man leading a monotonous life,’ Jasper proceeds, ‘and getting his
6662 nerves, or his stomach, out of order, dwells upon an idea until it loses
6663 its proportions. That was my case with the idea in question. So I shall
6664 burn the evidence of my case, when the book is full, and begin the next
6665 volume with a clearer vision.’
6666
6667 ‘This is better,’ says Mr. Crisparkle, stopping at the steps of his own
6668 door to shake hands, ‘than I could have hoped.’
6669
6670 ‘Why, naturally,’ returns Jasper. ‘You had but little reason to hope
6671 that I should become more like yourself. You are always training
6672 yourself to be, mind and body, as clear as crystal, and you always are,
6673 and never change; whereas I am a muddy, solitary, moping weed. However,
6674 I have got over that mope. Shall I wait, while you ask if Mr. Neville
6675 has left for my place? If not, he and I may walk round together.’
6676
6677 ‘I think,’ says Mr. Crisparkle, opening the entrance-door with his key,
6678 ‘that he left some time ago; at least I know he left, and I think he has
6679 not come back. But I’ll inquire. You won’t come in?’
6680
6681 ‘My company wait,’ said Jasper, with a smile.
6682
6683 The Minor Canon disappears, and in a few moments returns. As he thought,
6684 Mr. Neville has not come back; indeed, as he remembers now, Mr. Neville
6685 said he would probably go straight to the gatehouse.
6686
6687 ‘Bad manners in a host!’ says Jasper. ‘My company will be there before
6688 me! What will you bet that I don’t find my company embracing?’
6689
6690 ‘I will bet—or I would, if ever I did bet,’ returns Mr. Crisparkle, ‘that
6691 your company will have a gay entertainer this evening.’
6692
6693 Jasper nods, and laughs good-night!
6694
6695 He retraces his steps to the Cathedral door, and turns down past it to
6696 the gatehouse. He sings, in a low voice and with delicate expression, as
6697 he walks along. It still seems as if a false note were not within his
6698 power to-night, and as if nothing could hurry or retard him. Arriving
6699 thus under the arched entrance of his dwelling, he pauses for an instant
6700 in the shelter to pull off that great black scarf, and bang it in a loop
6701 upon his arm. For that brief time, his face is knitted and stern. But
6702 it immediately clears, as he resumes his singing, and his way.
6703
6704 And so _he_ goes up the postern stair.
6705
6706 * * * * *
6707
6708 The red light burns steadily all the evening in the lighthouse on the
6709 margin of the tide of busy life. Softened sounds and hum of traffic pass
6710 it and flow on irregularly into the lonely Precincts; but very little
6711 else goes by, save violent rushes of wind. It comes on to blow a
6712 boisterous gale.
6713
6714 The Precincts are never particularly well lighted; but the strong blasts
6715 of wind blowing out many of the lamps (in some instances shattering the
6716 frames too, and bringing the glass rattling to the ground), they are
6717 unusually dark to-night. The darkness is augmented and confused, by
6718 flying dust from the earth, dry twigs from the trees, and great ragged
6719 fragments from the rooks’ nests up in the tower. The trees themselves so
6720 toss and creak, as this tangible part of the darkness madly whirls about,
6721 that they seem in peril of being torn out of the earth: while ever and
6722 again a crack, and a rushing fall, denote that some large branch has
6723 yielded to the storm.
6724
6725 Not such power of wind has blown for many a winter night. Chimneys
6726 topple in the streets, and people hold to posts and corners, and to one
6727 another, to keep themselves upon their feet. The violent rushes abate
6728 not, but increase in frequency and fury until at midnight, when the
6729 streets are empty, the storm goes thundering along them, rattling at all
6730 the latches, and tearing at all the shutters, as if warning the people to
6731 get up and fly with it, rather than have the roofs brought down upon
6732 their brains.
6733
6734 Still, the red light burns steadily. Nothing is steady but the red
6735 light.
6736
6737 All through the night the wind blows, and abates not. But early in the
6738 morning, when there is barely enough light in the east to dim the stars,
6739 it begins to lull. From that time, with occasional wild charges, like a
6740 wounded monster dying, it drops and sinks; and at full daylight it is
6741 dead.
6742
6743 It is then seen that the hands of the Cathedral clock are torn off; that
6744 lead from the roof has been stripped away, rolled up, and blown into the
6745 Close; and that some stones have been displaced upon the summit of the
6746 great tower. Christmas morning though it be, it is necessary to send up
6747 workmen, to ascertain the extent of the damage done. These, led by
6748 Durdles, go aloft; while Mr. Tope and a crowd of early idlers gather down
6749 in Minor Canon Corner, shading their eyes and watching for their
6750 appearance up there.
6751
6752 This cluster is suddenly broken and put aside by the hands of Mr. Jasper;
6753 all the gazing eyes are brought down to the earth by his loudly inquiring
6754 of Mr. Crisparkle, at an open window:
6755
6756 ‘Where is my nephew?’
6757
6758 ‘He has not been here. Is he not with you?’
6759
6760 ‘No. He went down to the river last night, with Mr. Neville, to look at
6761 the storm, and has not been back. Call Mr. Neville!’
6762
6763 ‘He left this morning, early.’
6764
6765 ‘Left this morning early? Let me in! let me in!’
6766
6767 There is no more looking up at the tower, now. All the assembled eyes
6768 are turned on Mr. Jasper, white, half-dressed, panting, and clinging to
6769 the rail before the Minor Canon’s house.
6770
6771
6772
6773
6774 CHAPTER XV—IMPEACHED
6775
6776
6777 Neville Landless had started so early and walked at so good a pace, that
6778 when the church-bells began to ring in Cloisterham for morning service,
6779 he was eight miles away. As he wanted his breakfast by that time, having
6780 set forth on a crust of bread, he stopped at the next roadside tavern to
6781 refresh.
6782
6783 Visitors in want of breakfast—unless they were horses or cattle, for
6784 which class of guests there was preparation enough in the way of
6785 water-trough and hay—were so unusual at the sign of The Tilted Wagon,
6786 that it took a long time to get the wagon into the track of tea and toast
6787 and bacon. Neville in the interval, sitting in a sanded parlour,
6788 wondering in how long a time after he had gone, the sneezy fire of damp
6789 fagots would begin to make somebody else warm.
6790
6791 Indeed, The Tilted Wagon, as a cool establishment on the top of a hill,
6792 where the ground before the door was puddled with damp hoofs and trodden
6793 straw; where a scolding landlady slapped a moist baby (with one red sock
6794 on and one wanting), in the bar; where the cheese was cast aground upon a
6795 shelf, in company with a mouldy tablecloth and a green-handled knife, in
6796 a sort of cast-iron canoe; where the pale-faced bread shed tears of crumb
6797 over its shipwreck in another canoe; where the family linen, half washed
6798 and half dried, led a public life of lying about; where everything to
6799 drink was drunk out of mugs, and everything else was suggestive of a
6800 rhyme to mugs; The Tilted Wagon, all these things considered, hardly kept
6801 its painted promise of providing good entertainment for Man and Beast.
6802 However, Man, in the present case, was not critical, but took what
6803 entertainment he could get, and went on again after a longer rest than he
6804 needed.
6805
6806 He stopped at some quarter of a mile from the house, hesitating whether
6807 to pursue the road, or to follow a cart track between two high hedgerows,
6808 which led across the slope of a breezy heath, and evidently struck into
6809 the road again by-and-by. He decided in favour of this latter track, and
6810 pursued it with some toil; the rise being steep, and the way worn into
6811 deep ruts.
6812
6813 He was labouring along, when he became aware of some other pedestrians
6814 behind him. As they were coming up at a faster pace than his, he stood
6815 aside, against one of the high banks, to let them pass. But their manner
6816 was very curious. Only four of them passed. Other four slackened speed,
6817 and loitered as intending to follow him when he should go on. The
6818 remainder of the party (half-a-dozen perhaps) turned, and went back at a
6819 great rate.
6820
6821 He looked at the four behind him, and he looked at the four before him.
6822 They all returned his look. He resumed his way. The four in advance
6823 went on, constantly looking back; the four in the rear came closing up.
6824
6825 When they all ranged out from the narrow track upon the open slope of the
6826 heath, and this order was maintained, let him diverge as he would to
6827 either side, there was no longer room to doubt that he was beset by these
6828 fellows. He stopped, as a last test; and they all stopped.
6829
6830 ‘Why do you attend upon me in this way?’ he asked the whole body. ‘Are
6831 you a pack of thieves?’
6832
6833 ‘Don’t answer him,’ said one of the number; he did not see which.
6834 ‘Better be quiet.’
6835
6836 ‘Better be quiet?’ repeated Neville. ‘Who said so?’
6837
6838 Nobody replied.
6839
6840 ‘It’s good advice, whichever of you skulkers gave it,’ he went on
6841 angrily. ‘I will not submit to be penned in between four men there, and
6842 four men there. I wish to pass, and I mean to pass, those four in
6843 front.’
6844
6845 They were all standing still; himself included.
6846
6847 ‘If eight men, or four men, or two men, set upon one,’ he proceeded,
6848 growing more enraged, ‘the one has no chance but to set his mark upon
6849 some of them. And, by the Lord, I’ll do it, if I am interrupted any
6850 farther!’
6851
6852 Shouldering his heavy stick, and quickening his pace, he shot on to pass
6853 the four ahead. The largest and strongest man of the number changed
6854 swiftly to the side on which he came up, and dexterously closed with him
6855 and went down with him; but not before the heavy stick had descended
6856 smartly.
6857
6858 ‘Let him be!’ said this man in a suppressed voice, as they struggled
6859 together on the grass. ‘Fair play! His is the build of a girl to mine,
6860 and he’s got a weight strapped to his back besides. Let him alone. I’ll
6861 manage him.’
6862
6863 After a little rolling about, in a close scuffle which caused the faces
6864 of both to be besmeared with blood, the man took his knee from Neville’s
6865 chest, and rose, saying: ‘There! Now take him arm-in-arm, any two of
6866 you!’
6867
6868 It was immediately done.
6869
6870 ‘As to our being a pack of thieves, Mr. Landless,’ said the man, as he
6871 spat out some blood, and wiped more from his face; ‘you know better than
6872 that at midday. We wouldn’t have touched you if you hadn’t forced us.
6873 We’re going to take you round to the high road, anyhow, and you’ll find
6874 help enough against thieves there, if you want it.—Wipe his face,
6875 somebody; see how it’s a-trickling down him!’
6876
6877 When his face was cleansed, Neville recognised in the speaker, Joe,
6878 driver of the Cloisterham omnibus, whom he had seen but once, and that on
6879 the day of his arrival.
6880
6881 ‘And what I recommend you for the present, is, don’t talk, Mr. Landless.
6882 You’ll find a friend waiting for you, at the high road—gone ahead by the
6883 other way when we split into two parties—and you had much better say
6884 nothing till you come up with him. Bring that stick along, somebody
6885 else, and let’s be moving!’
6886
6887 Utterly bewildered, Neville stared around him and said not a word.
6888 Walking between his two conductors, who held his arms in theirs, he went
6889 on, as in a dream, until they came again into the high road, and into the
6890 midst of a little group of people. The men who had turned back were
6891 among the group; and its central figures were Mr. Jasper and Mr.
6892 Crisparkle. Neville’s conductors took him up to the Minor Canon, and
6893 there released him, as an act of deference to that gentleman.
6894
6895 ‘What is all this, sir? What is the matter? I feel as if I had lost my
6896 senses!’ cried Neville, the group closing in around him.
6897
6898 ‘Where is my nephew?’ asked Mr. Jasper, wildly.
6899
6900 ‘Where is your nephew?’ repeated Neville, ‘Why do you ask me?’
6901
6902 ‘I ask you,’ retorted Jasper, ‘because you were the last person in his
6903 company, and he is not to be found.’
6904
6905 ‘Not to be found!’ cried Neville, aghast.
6906
6907 ‘Stay, stay,’ said Mr. Crisparkle. ‘Permit me, Jasper. Mr. Neville, you
6908 are confounded; collect your thoughts; it is of great importance that you
6909 should collect your thoughts; attend to me.’
6910
6911 ‘I will try, sir, but I seem mad.’
6912
6913 ‘You left Mr. Jasper last night with Edwin Drood?’
6914
6915 ‘Yes.’
6916
6917 ‘At what hour?’
6918
6919 ‘Was it at twelve o’clock?’ asked Neville, with his hand to his confused
6920 head, and appealing to Jasper.
6921
6922 ‘Quite right,’ said Mr. Crisparkle; ‘the hour Mr. Jasper has already
6923 named to me. You went down to the river together?’
6924
6925 ‘Undoubtedly. To see the action of the wind there.’
6926
6927 ‘What followed? How long did you stay there?’
6928
6929 ‘About ten minutes; I should say not more. We then walked together to
6930 your house, and he took leave of me at the door.’
6931
6932 ‘Did he say that he was going down to the river again?’
6933
6934 ‘No. He said that he was going straight back.’
6935
6936 The bystanders looked at one another, and at Mr. Crisparkle. To whom Mr.
6937 Jasper, who had been intensely watching Neville, said, in a low,
6938 distinct, suspicious voice: ‘What are those stains upon his dress?’
6939
6940 All eyes were turned towards the blood upon his clothes.
6941
6942 ‘And here are the same stains upon this stick!’ said Jasper, taking it
6943 from the hand of the man who held it. ‘I know the stick to be his, and
6944 he carried it last night. What does this mean?’
6945
6946 ‘In the name of God, say what it means, Neville!’ urged Mr. Crisparkle.
6947
6948 ‘That man and I,’ said Neville, pointing out his late adversary, ‘had a
6949 struggle for the stick just now, and you may see the same marks on him,
6950 sir. What was I to suppose, when I found myself molested by eight
6951 people? Could I dream of the true reason when they would give me none at
6952 all?’
6953
6954 They admitted that they had thought it discreet to be silent, and that
6955 the struggle had taken place. And yet the very men who had seen it
6956 looked darkly at the smears which the bright cold air had already dried.
6957
6958 ‘We must return, Neville,’ said Mr. Crisparkle; ‘of course you will be
6959 glad to come back to clear yourself?’
6960
6961 ‘Of course, sir.’
6962
6963 ‘Mr. Landless will walk at my side,’ the Minor Canon continued, looking
6964 around him. ‘Come, Neville!’
6965
6966 They set forth on the walk back; and the others, with one exception,
6967 straggled after them at various distances. Jasper walked on the other
6968 side of Neville, and never quitted that position. He was silent, while
6969 Mr. Crisparkle more than once repeated his former questions, and while
6970 Neville repeated his former answers; also, while they both hazarded some
6971 explanatory conjectures. He was obstinately silent, because Mr.
6972 Crisparkle’s manner directly appealed to him to take some part in the
6973 discussion, and no appeal would move his fixed face. When they drew near
6974 to the city, and it was suggested by the Minor Canon that they might do
6975 well in calling on the Mayor at once, he assented with a stern nod; but
6976 he spake no word until they stood in Mr. Sapsea’s parlour.
6977
6978 Mr. Sapsea being informed by Mr. Crisparkle of the circumstances under
6979 which they desired to make a voluntary statement before him, Mr. Jasper
6980 broke silence by declaring that he placed his whole reliance, humanly
6981 speaking, on Mr. Sapsea’s penetration. There was no conceivable reason
6982 why his nephew should have suddenly absconded, unless Mr. Sapsea could
6983 suggest one, and then he would defer. There was no intelligible
6984 likelihood of his having returned to the river, and been accidentally
6985 drowned in the dark, unless it should appear likely to Mr. Sapsea, and
6986 then again he would defer. He washed his hands as clean as he could of
6987 all horrible suspicions, unless it should appear to Mr. Sapsea that some
6988 such were inseparable from his last companion before his disappearance
6989 (not on good terms with previously), and then, once more, he would defer.
6990 His own state of mind, he being distracted with doubts, and labouring
6991 under dismal apprehensions, was not to be safely trusted; but Mr.
6992 Sapsea’s was.
6993
6994 Mr. Sapsea expressed his opinion that the case had a dark look; in short
6995 (and here his eyes rested full on Neville’s countenance), an Un-English
6996 complexion. Having made this grand point, he wandered into a denser haze
6997 and maze of nonsense than even a mayor might have been expected to
6998 disport himself in, and came out of it with the brilliant discovery that
6999 to take the life of a fellow-creature was to take something that didn’t
7000 belong to you. He wavered whether or no he should at once issue his
7001 warrant for the committal of Neville Landless to jail, under
7002 circumstances of grave suspicion; and he might have gone so far as to do
7003 it but for the indignant protest of the Minor Canon: who undertook for
7004 the young man’s remaining in his own house, and being produced by his own
7005 hands, whenever demanded. Mr. Jasper then understood Mr. Sapsea to
7006 suggest that the river should be dragged, that its banks should be
7007 rigidly examined, that particulars of the disappearance should be sent to
7008 all outlying places and to London, and that placards and advertisements
7009 should be widely circulated imploring Edwin Drood, if for any unknown
7010 reason he had withdrawn himself from his uncle’s home and society, to
7011 take pity on that loving kinsman’s sore bereavement and distress, and
7012 somehow inform him that he was yet alive. Mr. Sapsea was perfectly
7013 understood, for this was exactly his meaning (though he had said nothing
7014 about it); and measures were taken towards all these ends immediately.
7015
7016 It would be difficult to determine which was the more oppressed with
7017 horror and amazement: Neville Landless, or John Jasper. But that
7018 Jasper’s position forced him to be active, while Neville’s forced him to
7019 be passive, there would have been nothing to choose between them. Each
7020 was bowed down and broken.
7021
7022 With the earliest light of the next morning, men were at work upon the
7023 river, and other men—most of whom volunteered for the service—were
7024 examining the banks. All the livelong day the search went on; upon the
7025 river, with barge and pole, and drag and net; upon the muddy and rushy
7026 shore, with jack-boots, hatchet, spade, rope, dogs, and all imaginable
7027 appliances. Even at night, the river was specked with lanterns, and
7028 lurid with fires; far-off creeks, into which the tide washed as it
7029 changed, had their knots of watchers, listening to the lapping of the
7030 stream, and looking out for any burden it might bear; remote shingly
7031 causeways near the sea, and lonely points off which there was a race of
7032 water, had their unwonted flaring cressets and rough-coated figures when
7033 the next day dawned; but no trace of Edwin Drood revisited the light of
7034 the sun.
7035
7036 All that day, again, the search went on. Now, in barge and boat; and now
7037 ashore among the osiers, or tramping amidst mud and stakes and jagged
7038 stones in low-lying places, where solitary watermarks and signals of
7039 strange shapes showed like spectres, John Jasper worked and toiled. But
7040 to no purpose; for still no trace of Edwin Drood revisited the light of
7041 the sun.
7042
7043 Setting his watches for that night again, so that vigilant eyes should be
7044 kept on every change of tide, he went home exhausted. Unkempt and
7045 disordered, bedaubed with mud that had dried upon him, and with much of
7046 his clothing torn to rags, he had but just dropped into his easy-chair,
7047 when Mr. Grewgious stood before him.
7048
7049 ‘This is strange news,’ said Mr. Grewgious.
7050
7051 ‘Strange and fearful news.’
7052
7053 Jasper had merely lifted up his heavy eyes to say it, and now dropped
7054 them again as he drooped, worn out, over one side of his easy-chair.
7055
7056 Mr. Grewgious smoothed his head and face, and stood looking at the fire.
7057
7058 ‘How is your ward?’ asked Jasper, after a time, in a faint, fatigued
7059 voice.
7060
7061 ‘Poor little thing! You may imagine her condition.’
7062
7063 ‘Have you seen his sister?’ inquired Jasper, as before.
7064
7065 ‘Whose?’
7066
7067 The curtness of the counter-question, and the cool, slow manner in which,
7068 as he put it, Mr. Grewgious moved his eyes from the fire to his
7069 companion’s face, might at any other time have been exasperating. In his
7070 depression and exhaustion, Jasper merely opened his eyes to say: ‘The
7071 suspected young man’s.’
7072
7073 ‘Do you suspect him?’ asked Mr. Grewgious.
7074
7075 ‘I don’t know what to think. I cannot make up my mind.’
7076
7077 ‘Nor I,’ said Mr. Grewgious. ‘But as you spoke of him as the suspected
7078 young man, I thought you _had_ made up your mind.—I have just left Miss
7079 Landless.’
7080
7081 [Picture: Mr. Grewgious has his suspicions]
7082
7083 ‘What is her state?’
7084
7085 ‘Defiance of all suspicion, and unbounded faith in her brother.’
7086
7087 ‘Poor thing!’
7088
7089 ‘However,’ pursued Mr. Grewgious, ‘it is not of her that I came to speak.
7090 It is of my ward. I have a communication to make that will surprise you.
7091 At least, it has surprised me.’
7092
7093 Jasper, with a groaning sigh, turned wearily in his chair.
7094
7095 ‘Shall I put it off till to-morrow?’ said Mr. Grewgious. ‘Mind, I warn
7096 you, that I think it will surprise you!’
7097
7098 More attention and concentration came into John Jasper’s eyes as they
7099 caught sight of Mr. Grewgious smoothing his head again, and again looking
7100 at the fire; but now, with a compressed and determined mouth.
7101
7102 ‘What is it?’ demanded Jasper, becoming upright in his chair.
7103
7104 ‘To be sure,’ said Mr. Grewgious, provokingly slowly and internally, as
7105 he kept his eyes on the fire: ‘I might have known it sooner; she gave me
7106 the opening; but I am such an exceedingly Angular man, that it never
7107 occurred to me; I took all for granted.’
7108
7109 ‘What is it?’ demanded Jasper once more.
7110
7111 Mr. Grewgious, alternately opening and shutting the palms of his hands as
7112 he warmed them at the fire, and looking fixedly at him sideways, and
7113 never changing either his action or his look in all that followed, went
7114 on to reply.
7115
7116 ‘This young couple, the lost youth and Miss Rosa, my ward, though so long
7117 betrothed, and so long recognising their betrothal, and so near being
7118 married—’
7119
7120 Mr. Grewgious saw a staring white face, and two quivering white lips, in
7121 the easy-chair, and saw two muddy hands gripping its sides. But for the
7122 hands, he might have thought he had never seen the face.
7123
7124 ‘—This young couple came gradually to the discovery (made on both sides
7125 pretty equally, I think), that they would be happier and better, both in
7126 their present and their future lives, as affectionate friends, or say
7127 rather as brother and sister, than as husband and wife.’
7128
7129 Mr. Grewgious saw a lead-coloured face in the easy-chair, and on its
7130 surface dreadful starting drops or bubbles, as if of steel.
7131
7132 ‘This young couple formed at length the healthy resolution of
7133 interchanging their discoveries, openly, sensibly, and tenderly. They
7134 met for that purpose. After some innocent and generous talk, they agreed
7135 to dissolve their existing, and their intended, relations, for ever and
7136 ever.’
7137
7138 Mr. Grewgious saw a ghastly figure rise, open-mouthed, from the
7139 easy-chair, and lift its outspread hands towards its head.
7140
7141 ‘One of this young couple, and that one your nephew, fearful, however,
7142 that in the tenderness of your affection for him you would be bitterly
7143 disappointed by so wide a departure from his projected life, forbore to
7144 tell you the secret, for a few days, and left it to be disclosed by me,
7145 when I should come down to speak to you, and he would be gone. I speak
7146 to you, and he is gone.’
7147
7148 Mr. Grewgious saw the ghastly figure throw back its head, clutch its hair
7149 with its hands, and turn with a writhing action from him.
7150
7151 ‘I have now said all I have to say: except that this young couple parted,
7152 firmly, though not without tears and sorrow, on the evening when you last
7153 saw them together.’
7154
7155 Mr. Grewgious heard a terrible shriek, and saw no ghastly figure, sitting
7156 or standing; saw nothing but a heap of torn and miry clothes upon the
7157 floor.
7158
7159 Not changing his action even then, he opened and shut the palms of his
7160 hands as he warmed them, and looked down at it.
7161
7162
7163
7164
7165 CHAPTER XVI—DEVOTED
7166
7167
7168 When John Jasper recovered from his fit or swoon, he found himself being
7169 tended by Mr. and Mrs. Tope, whom his visitor had summoned for the
7170 purpose. His visitor, wooden of aspect, sat stiffly in a chair, with his
7171 hands upon his knees, watching his recovery.
7172
7173 ‘There! You’ve come to nicely now, sir,’ said the tearful Mrs. Tope;
7174 ‘you were thoroughly worn out, and no wonder!’
7175
7176 ‘A man,’ said Mr. Grewgious, with his usual air of repeating a lesson,
7177 ‘cannot have his rest broken, and his mind cruelly tormented, and his
7178 body overtaxed by fatigue, without being thoroughly worn out.’
7179
7180 ‘I fear I have alarmed you?’ Jasper apologised faintly, when he was
7181 helped into his easy-chair.
7182
7183 ‘Not at all, I thank you,’ answered Mr. Grewgious.
7184
7185 ‘You are too considerate.’
7186
7187 ‘Not at all, I thank you,’ answered Mr. Grewgious again.
7188
7189 ‘You must take some wine, sir,’ said Mrs. Tope, ‘and the jelly that I had
7190 ready for you, and that you wouldn’t put your lips to at noon, though I
7191 warned you what would come of it, you know, and you not breakfasted; and
7192 you must have a wing of the roast fowl that has been put back twenty
7193 times if it’s been put back once. It shall all be on table in five
7194 minutes, and this good gentleman belike will stop and see you take it.’
7195
7196 This good gentleman replied with a snort, which might mean yes, or no, or
7197 anything or nothing, and which Mrs. Tope would have found highly
7198 mystifying, but that her attention was divided by the service of the
7199 table.
7200
7201 ‘You will take something with me?’ said Jasper, as the cloth was laid.
7202
7203 ‘I couldn’t get a morsel down my throat, I thank you,’ answered Mr.
7204 Grewgious.
7205
7206 Jasper both ate and drank almost voraciously. Combined with the hurry in
7207 his mode of doing it, was an evident indifference to the taste of what he
7208 took, suggesting that he ate and drank to fortify himself against any
7209 other failure of the spirits, far more than to gratify his palate. Mr.
7210 Grewgious in the meantime sat upright, with no expression in his face,
7211 and a hard kind of imperturbably polite protest all over him: as though
7212 he would have said, in reply to some invitation to discourse; ‘I couldn’t
7213 originate the faintest approach to an observation on any subject
7214 whatever, I thank you.’
7215
7216 ‘Do you know,’ said Jasper, when he had pushed away his plate and glass,
7217 and had sat meditating for a few minutes: ‘do you know that I find some
7218 crumbs of comfort in the communication with which you have so much amazed
7219 me?’
7220
7221 ‘_Do_ you?’ returned Mr. Grewgious, pretty plainly adding the unspoken
7222 clause: ‘I don’t, I thank you!’
7223
7224 ‘After recovering from the shock of a piece of news of my dear boy, so
7225 entirely unexpected, and so destructive of all the castles I had built
7226 for him; and after having had time to think of it; yes.’
7227
7228 ‘I shall be glad to pick up your crumbs,’ said Mr. Grewgious, dryly.
7229
7230 ‘Is there not, or is there—if I deceive myself, tell me so, and shorten
7231 my pain—is there not, or is there, hope that, finding himself in this new
7232 position, and becoming sensitively alive to the awkward burden of
7233 explanation, in this quarter, and that, and the other, with which it
7234 would load him, he avoided the awkwardness, and took to flight?’
7235
7236 ‘Such a thing might be,’ said Mr. Grewgious, pondering.
7237
7238 ‘Such a thing has been. I have read of cases in which people, rather
7239 than face a seven days’ wonder, and have to account for themselves to the
7240 idle and impertinent, have taken themselves away, and been long unheard
7241 of.’
7242
7243 ‘I believe such things have happened,’ said Mr. Grewgious, pondering
7244 still.
7245
7246 ‘When I had, and could have, no suspicion,’ pursued Jasper, eagerly
7247 following the new track, ‘that the dear lost boy had withheld anything
7248 from me—most of all, such a leading matter as this—what gleam of light
7249 was there for me in the whole black sky? When I supposed that his
7250 intended wife was here, and his marriage close at hand, how could I
7251 entertain the possibility of his voluntarily leaving this place, in a
7252 manner that would be so unaccountable, capricious, and cruel? But now
7253 that I know what you have told me, is there no little chink through which
7254 day pierces? Supposing him to have disappeared of his own act, is not
7255 his disappearance more accountable and less cruel? The fact of his
7256 having just parted from your ward, is in itself a sort of reason for his
7257 going away. It does not make his mysterious departure the less cruel to
7258 me, it is true; but it relieves it of cruelty to her.’
7259
7260 Mr. Grewgious could not but assent to this.
7261
7262 ‘And even as to me,’ continued Jasper, still pursuing the new track, with
7263 ardour, and, as he did so, brightening with hope: ‘he knew that you were
7264 coming to me; he knew that you were intrusted to tell me what you have
7265 told me; if your doing so has awakened a new train of thought in my
7266 perplexed mind, it reasonably follows that, from the same premises, he
7267 might have foreseen the inferences that I should draw. Grant that he did
7268 foresee them; and even the cruelty to me—and who am I!—John Jasper, Music
7269 Master, vanishes!’—
7270
7271 Once more, Mr. Grewgious could not but assent to this.
7272
7273 ‘I have had my distrusts, and terrible distrusts they have been,’ said
7274 Jasper; ‘but your disclosure, overpowering as it was at first—showing me
7275 that my own dear boy had had a great disappointing reservation from me,
7276 who so fondly loved him, kindles hope within me. You do not extinguish
7277 it when I state it, but admit it to be a reasonable hope. I begin to
7278 believe it possible:’ here he clasped his hands: ‘that he may have
7279 disappeared from among us of his own accord, and that he may yet be alive
7280 and well.’
7281
7282 Mr. Crisparkle came in at the moment. To whom Mr. Jasper repeated:
7283
7284 ‘I begin to believe it possible that he may have disappeared of his own
7285 accord, and may yet be alive and well.’
7286
7287 Mr. Crisparkle taking a seat, and inquiring: ‘Why so?’ Mr. Jasper
7288 repeated the arguments he had just set forth. If they had been less
7289 plausible than they were, the good Minor Canon’s mind would have been in
7290 a state of preparation to receive them, as exculpatory of his unfortunate
7291 pupil. But he, too, did really attach great importance to the lost young
7292 man’s having been, so immediately before his disappearance, placed in a
7293 new and embarrassing relation towards every one acquainted with his
7294 projects and affairs; and the fact seemed to him to present the question
7295 in a new light.
7296
7297 ‘I stated to Mr. Sapsea, when we waited on him,’ said Jasper: as he
7298 really had done: ‘that there was no quarrel or difference between the two
7299 young men at their last meeting. We all know that their first meeting
7300 was unfortunately very far from amicable; but all went smoothly and
7301 quietly when they were last together at my house. My dear boy was not in
7302 his usual spirits; he was depressed—I noticed that—and I am bound
7303 henceforth to dwell upon the circumstance the more, now that I know there
7304 was a special reason for his being depressed: a reason, moreover, which
7305 may possibly have induced him to absent himself.’
7306
7307 ‘I pray to Heaven it may turn out so!’ exclaimed Mr. Crisparkle.
7308
7309 ‘_I_ pray to Heaven it may turn out so!’ repeated Jasper. ‘You know—and
7310 Mr. Grewgious should now know likewise—that I took a great prepossession
7311 against Mr. Neville Landless, arising out of his furious conduct on that
7312 first occasion. You know that I came to you, extremely apprehensive, on
7313 my dear boy’s behalf, of his mad violence. You know that I even entered
7314 in my Diary, and showed the entry to you, that I had dark forebodings
7315 against him. Mr. Grewgious ought to be possessed of the whole case. He
7316 shall not, through any suppression of mine, be informed of a part of it,
7317 and kept in ignorance of another part of it. I wish him to be good
7318 enough to understand that the communication he has made to me has
7319 hopefully influenced my mind, in spite of its having been, before this
7320 mysterious occurrence took place, profoundly impressed against young
7321 Landless.’
7322
7323 This fairness troubled the Minor Canon much. He felt that he was not as
7324 open in his own dealing. He charged against himself reproachfully that
7325 he had suppressed, so far, the two points of a second strong outbreak of
7326 temper against Edwin Drood on the part of Neville, and of the passion of
7327 jealousy having, to his own certain knowledge, flamed up in Neville’s
7328 breast against him. He was convinced of Neville’s innocence of any part
7329 in the ugly disappearance; and yet so many little circumstances combined
7330 so wofully against him, that he dreaded to add two more to their
7331 cumulative weight. He was among the truest of men; but he had been
7332 balancing in his mind, much to its distress, whether his volunteering to
7333 tell these two fragments of truth, at this time, would not be tantamount
7334 to a piecing together of falsehood in the place of truth.
7335
7336 However, here was a model before him. He hesitated no longer.
7337 Addressing Mr. Grewgious, as one placed in authority by the revelation he
7338 had brought to bear on the mystery (and surpassingly Angular Mr.
7339 Grewgious became when he found himself in that unexpected position), Mr.
7340 Crisparkle bore his testimony to Mr. Jasper’s strict sense of justice,
7341 and, expressing his absolute confidence in the complete clearance of his
7342 pupil from the least taint of suspicion, sooner or later, avowed that his
7343 confidence in that young gentleman had been formed, in spite of his
7344 confidential knowledge that his temper was of the hottest and fiercest,
7345 and that it was directly incensed against Mr. Jasper’s nephew, by the
7346 circumstance of his romantically supposing himself to be enamoured of the
7347 same young lady. The sanguine reaction manifest in Mr. Jasper was proof
7348 even against this unlooked-for declaration. It turned him paler; but he
7349 repeated that he would cling to the hope he had derived from Mr.
7350 Grewgious; and that if no trace of his dear boy were found, leading to
7351 the dreadful inference that he had been made away with, he would cherish
7352 unto the last stretch of possibility the idea, that he might have
7353 absconded of his own wild will.
7354
7355 Now, it fell out that Mr. Crisparkle, going away from this conference
7356 still very uneasy in his mind, and very much troubled on behalf of the
7357 young man whom he held as a kind of prisoner in his own house, took a
7358 memorable night walk.
7359
7360 He walked to Cloisterham Weir.
7361
7362 He often did so, and consequently there was nothing remarkable in his
7363 footsteps tending that way. But the preoccupation of his mind so
7364 hindered him from planning any walk, or taking heed of the objects he
7365 passed, that his first consciousness of being near the Weir, was derived
7366 from the sound of the falling water close at hand.
7367
7368 ‘How did I come here!’ was his first thought, as he stopped.
7369
7370 ‘Why did I come here!’ was his second.
7371
7372 Then, he stood intently listening to the water. A familiar passage in
7373 his reading, about airy tongues that syllable men’s names, rose so
7374 unbidden to his ear, that he put it from him with his hand, as if it were
7375 tangible.
7376
7377 It was starlight. The Weir was full two miles above the spot to which
7378 the young men had repaired to watch the storm. No search had been made
7379 up here, for the tide had been running strongly down, at that time of the
7380 night of Christmas Eve, and the likeliest places for the discovery of a
7381 body, if a fatal accident had happened under such circumstances, all
7382 lay—both when the tide ebbed, and when it flowed again—between that spot
7383 and the sea. The water came over the Weir, with its usual sound on a
7384 cold starlight night, and little could be seen of it; yet Mr. Crisparkle
7385 had a strange idea that something unusual hung about the place.
7386
7387 He reasoned with himself: What was it? Where was it? Put it to the
7388 proof. Which sense did it address?
7389
7390 No sense reported anything unusual there. He listened again, and his
7391 sense of hearing again checked the water coming over the Weir, with its
7392 usual sound on a cold starlight night.
7393
7394 Knowing very well that the mystery with which his mind was occupied,
7395 might of itself give the place this haunted air, he strained those hawk’s
7396 eyes of his for the correction of his sight. He got closer to the Weir,
7397 and peered at its well-known posts and timbers. Nothing in the least
7398 unusual was remotely shadowed forth. But he resolved that he would come
7399 back early in the morning.
7400
7401 The Weir ran through his broken sleep, all night, and he was back again
7402 at sunrise. It was a bright frosty morning. The whole composition
7403 before him, when he stood where he had stood last night, was clearly
7404 discernible in its minutest details. He had surveyed it closely for some
7405 minutes, and was about to withdraw his eyes, when they were attracted
7406 keenly to one spot.
7407
7408 He turned his back upon the Weir, and looked far away at the sky, and at
7409 the earth, and then looked again at that one spot. It caught his sight
7410 again immediately, and he concentrated his vision upon it. He could not
7411 lose it now, though it was but such a speck in the landscape. It
7412 fascinated his sight. His hands began plucking off his coat. For it
7413 struck him that at that spot—a corner of the Weir—something glistened,
7414 which did not move and come over with the glistening water-drops, but
7415 remained stationary.
7416
7417 He assured himself of this, he threw off his clothes, he plunged into the
7418 icy water, and swam for the spot. Climbing the timbers, he took from
7419 them, caught among their interstices by its chain, a gold watch, bearing
7420 engraved upon its back E. D.
7421
7422 He brought the watch to the bank, swam to the Weir again, climbed it, and
7423 dived off. He knew every hole and corner of all the depths, and dived
7424 and dived and dived, until he could bear the cold no more. His notion
7425 was, that he would find the body; he only found a shirt-pin sticking in
7426 some mud and ooze.
7427
7428 With these discoveries he returned to Cloisterham, and, taking Neville
7429 Landless with him, went straight to the Mayor. Mr. Jasper was sent for,
7430 the watch and shirt-pin were identified, Neville was detained, and the
7431 wildest frenzy and fatuity of evil report rose against him. He was of
7432 that vindictive and violent nature, that but for his poor sister, who
7433 alone had influence over him, and out of whose sight he was never to be
7434 trusted, he would be in the daily commission of murder. Before coming to
7435 England he had caused to be whipped to death sundry ‘Natives’—nomadic
7436 persons, encamping now in Asia, now in Africa, now in the West Indies,
7437 and now at the North Pole—vaguely supposed in Cloisterham to be always
7438 black, always of great virtue, always calling themselves Me, and
7439 everybody else Massa or Missie (according to sex), and always reading
7440 tracts of the obscurest meaning, in broken English, but always accurately
7441 understanding them in the purest mother tongue. He had nearly brought
7442 Mrs. Crisparkle’s grey hairs with sorrow to the grave. (Those original
7443 expressions were Mr. Sapsea’s.) He had repeatedly said he would have Mr.
7444 Crisparkle’s life. He had repeatedly said he would have everybody’s
7445 life, and become in effect the last man. He had been brought down to
7446 Cloisterham, from London, by an eminent Philanthropist, and why? Because
7447 that Philanthropist had expressly declared: ‘I owe it to my
7448 fellow-creatures that he should be, in the words of BENTHAM, where he is
7449 the cause of the greatest danger to the smallest number.’
7450
7451 These dropping shots from the blunderbusses of blunderheadedness might
7452 not have hit him in a vital place. But he had to stand against a trained
7453 and well-directed fire of arms of precision too. He had notoriously
7454 threatened the lost young man, and had, according to the showing of his
7455 own faithful friend and tutor who strove so hard for him, a cause of
7456 bitter animosity (created by himself, and stated by himself), against
7457 that ill-starred fellow. He had armed himself with an offensive weapon
7458 for the fatal night, and he had gone off early in the morning, after
7459 making preparations for departure. He had been found with traces of
7460 blood on him; truly, they might have been wholly caused as he
7461 represented, but they might not, also. On a search-warrant being issued
7462 for the examination of his room, clothes, and so forth, it was discovered
7463 that he had destroyed all his papers, and rearranged all his possessions,
7464 on the very afternoon of the disappearance. The watch found at the Weir
7465 was challenged by the jeweller as one he had wound and set for Edwin
7466 Drood, at twenty minutes past two on that same afternoon; and it had run
7467 down, before being cast into the water; and it was the jeweller’s
7468 positive opinion that it had never been re-wound. This would justify the
7469 hypothesis that the watch was taken from him not long after he left Mr.
7470 Jasper’s house at midnight, in company with the last person seen with
7471 him, and that it had been thrown away after being retained some hours.
7472 Why thrown away? If he had been murdered, and so artfully disfigured, or
7473 concealed, or both, as that the murderer hoped identification to be
7474 impossible, except from something that he wore, assuredly the murderer
7475 would seek to remove from the body the most lasting, the best known, and
7476 the most easily recognisable, things upon it. Those things would be the
7477 watch and shirt-pin. As to his opportunities of casting them into the
7478 river; if he were the object of these suspicions, they were easy. For,
7479 he had been seen by many persons, wandering about on that side of the
7480 city—indeed on all sides of it—in a miserable and seemingly
7481 half-distracted manner. As to the choice of the spot, obviously such
7482 criminating evidence had better take its chance of being found anywhere,
7483 rather than upon himself, or in his possession. Concerning the
7484 reconciliatory nature of the appointed meeting between the two young men,
7485 very little could be made of that in young Landless’s favour; for it
7486 distinctly appeared that the meeting originated, not with him, but with
7487 Mr. Crisparkle, and that it had been urged on by Mr. Crisparkle; and who
7488 could say how unwillingly, or in what ill-conditioned mood, his enforced
7489 pupil had gone to it? The more his case was looked into, the weaker it
7490 became in every point. Even the broad suggestion that the lost young man
7491 had absconded, was rendered additionally improbable on the showing of the
7492 young lady from whom he had so lately parted; for; what did she say, with
7493 great earnestness and sorrow, when interrogated? That he had, expressly
7494 and enthusiastically, planned with her, that he would await the arrival
7495 of her guardian, Mr. Grewgious. And yet, be it observed, he disappeared
7496 before that gentleman appeared.
7497
7498 On the suspicions thus urged and supported, Neville was detained, and
7499 re-detained, and the search was pressed on every hand, and Jasper
7500 laboured night and day. But nothing more was found. No discovery being
7501 made, which proved the lost man to be dead, it at length became necessary
7502 to release the person suspected of having made away with him. Neville
7503 was set at large. Then, a consequence ensued which Mr. Crisparkle had
7504 too well foreseen. Neville must leave the place, for the place shunned
7505 him and cast him out. Even had it not been so, the dear old china
7506 shepherdess would have worried herself to death with fears for her son,
7507 and with general trepidation occasioned by their having such an inmate.
7508 Even had that not been so, the authority to which the Minor Canon
7509 deferred officially, would have settled the point.
7510
7511 ‘Mr. Crisparkle,’ quoth the Dean, ‘human justice may err, but it must act
7512 according to its lights. The days of taking sanctuary are past. This
7513 young man must not take sanctuary with us.’
7514
7515 ‘You mean that he must leave my house, sir?’
7516
7517 ‘Mr. Crisparkle,’ returned the prudent Dean, ‘I claim no authority in
7518 your house. I merely confer with you, on the painful necessity you find
7519 yourself under, of depriving this young man of the great advantages of
7520 your counsel and instruction.’
7521
7522 ‘It is very lamentable, sir,’ Mr. Crisparkle represented.
7523
7524 ‘Very much so,’ the Dean assented.
7525
7526 ‘And if it be a necessity—’ Mr. Crisparkle faltered.
7527
7528 ‘As you unfortunately find it to be,’ returned the Dean.
7529
7530 Mr. Crisparkle bowed submissively: ‘It is hard to prejudge his case, sir,
7531 but I am sensible that—’
7532
7533 ‘Just so. Perfectly. As you say, Mr. Crisparkle,’ interposed the Dean,
7534 nodding his head smoothly, ‘there is nothing else to be done. No doubt,
7535 no doubt. There is no alternative, as your good sense has discovered.’
7536
7537 ‘I am entirely satisfied of his perfect innocence, sir, nevertheless.’
7538
7539 ‘We-e-ell!’ said the Dean, in a more confidential tone, and slightly
7540 glancing around him, ‘I would not say so, generally. Not generally.
7541 Enough of suspicion attaches to him to—no, I think I would not say so,
7542 generally.’
7543
7544 Mr. Crisparkle bowed again.
7545
7546 ‘It does not become us, perhaps,’ pursued the Dean, ‘to be partisans.
7547 Not partisans. We clergy keep our hearts warm and our heads cool, and we
7548 hold a judicious middle course.’
7549
7550 ‘I hope you do not object, sir, to my having stated in public,
7551 emphatically, that he will reappear here, whenever any new suspicion may
7552 be awakened, or any new circumstance may come to light in this
7553 extraordinary matter?’
7554
7555 ‘Not at all,’ returned the Dean. ‘And yet, do you know, I don’t think,’
7556 with a very nice and neat emphasis on those two words: ‘I _don’t think_ I
7557 would state it emphatically. State it? Ye-e-es! But emphatically?
7558 No-o-o. I _think_ not. In point of fact, Mr. Crisparkle, keeping our
7559 hearts warm and our heads cool, we clergy need do nothing emphatically.’
7560
7561 So Minor Canon Row knew Neville Landless no more; and he went
7562 whithersoever he would, or could, with a blight upon his name and fame.
7563
7564 It was not until then that John Jasper silently resumed his place in the
7565 choir. Haggard and red-eyed, his hopes plainly had deserted him, his
7566 sanguine mood was gone, and all his worst misgivings had come back. A
7567 day or two afterwards, while unrobing, he took his Diary from a pocket of
7568 his coat, turned the leaves, and with an impressive look, and without one
7569 spoken word, handed this entry to Mr. Crisparkle to read:
7570
7571 ‘My dear boy is murdered. The discovery of the watch and shirt-pin
7572 convinces me that he was murdered that night, and that his jewellery was
7573 taken from him to prevent identification by its means. All the delusive
7574 hopes I had founded on his separation from his betrothed wife, I give to
7575 the winds. They perish before this fatal discovery. I now swear, and
7576 record the oath on this page, That I nevermore will discuss this mystery
7577 with any human creature until I hold the clue to it in my hand. That I
7578 never will relax in my secrecy or in my search. That I will fasten the
7579 crime of the murder of my dear dead boy upon the murderer. And, That I
7580 devote myself to his destruction.’
7581
7582
7583
7584
7585 CHAPTER XVII—PHILANTHROPY, PROFESSIONAL AND UNPROFESSIONAL
7586
7587
7588 Full half a year had come and gone, and Mr. Crisparkle sat in a
7589 waiting-room in the London chief offices of the Haven of Philanthropy,
7590 until he could have audience of Mr. Honeythunder.
7591
7592 In his college days of athletic exercises, Mr. Crisparkle had known
7593 professors of the Noble Art of fisticuffs, and had attended two or three
7594 of their gloved gatherings. He had now an opportunity of observing that
7595 as to the phrenological formation of the backs of their heads, the
7596 Professing Philanthropists were uncommonly like the Pugilists. In the
7597 development of all those organs which constitute, or attend, a propensity
7598 to ‘pitch into’ your fellow-creatures, the Philanthropists were
7599 remarkably favoured. There were several Professors passing in and out,
7600 with exactly the aggressive air upon them of being ready for a turn-up
7601 with any Novice who might happen to be on hand, that Mr. Crisparkle well
7602 remembered in the circles of the Fancy. Preparations were in progress
7603 for a moral little Mill somewhere on the rural circuit, and other
7604 Professors were backing this or that Heavy-Weight as good for such or
7605 such speech-making hits, so very much after the manner of the sporting
7606 publicans, that the intended Resolutions might have been Rounds. In an
7607 official manager of these displays much celebrated for his platform
7608 tactics, Mr. Crisparkle recognised (in a suit of black) the counterpart
7609 of a deceased benefactor of his species, an eminent public character,
7610 once known to fame as Frosty-faced Fogo, who in days of yore
7611 superintended the formation of the magic circle with the ropes and
7612 stakes. There were only three conditions of resemblance wanting between
7613 these Professors and those. Firstly, the Philanthropists were in very
7614 bad training: much too fleshy, and presenting, both in face and figure, a
7615 superabundance of what is known to Pugilistic Experts as Suet Pudding.
7616 Secondly, the Philanthropists had not the good temper of the Pugilists,
7617 and used worse language. Thirdly, their fighting code stood in great
7618 need of revision, as empowering them not only to bore their man to the
7619 ropes, but to bore him to the confines of distraction; also to hit him
7620 when he was down, hit him anywhere and anyhow, kick him, stamp upon him,
7621 gouge him, and maul him behind his back without mercy. In these last
7622 particulars the Professors of the Noble Art were much nobler than the
7623 Professors of Philanthropy.
7624
7625 Mr. Crisparkle was so completely lost in musing on these similarities and
7626 dissimilarities, at the same time watching the crowd which came and went
7627 by, always, as it seemed, on errands of antagonistically snatching
7628 something from somebody, and never giving anything to anybody, that his
7629 name was called before he heard it. On his at length responding, he was
7630 shown by a miserably shabby and underpaid stipendiary Philanthropist (who
7631 could hardly have done worse if he had taken service with a declared
7632 enemy of the human race) to Mr. Honeythunder’s room.
7633
7634 ‘Sir,’ said Mr. Honeythunder, in his tremendous voice, like a
7635 schoolmaster issuing orders to a boy of whom he had a bad opinion, ‘sit
7636 down.’
7637
7638 Mr. Crisparkle seated himself.
7639
7640 Mr. Honeythunder having signed the remaining few score of a few thousand
7641 circulars, calling upon a corresponding number of families without means
7642 to come forward, stump up instantly, and be Philanthropists, or go to the
7643 Devil, another shabby stipendiary Philanthropist (highly disinterested,
7644 if in earnest) gathered these into a basket and walked off with them.
7645
7646 ‘Now, Mr. Crisparkle,’ said Mr. Honeythunder, turning his chair half
7647 round towards him when they were alone, and squaring his arms with his
7648 hands on his knees, and his brows knitted, as if he added, I am going to
7649 make short work of _you_: ‘Now, Mr. Crisparkle, we entertain different
7650 views, you and I, sir, of the sanctity of human life.’
7651
7652 ‘Do we?’ returned the Minor Canon.
7653
7654 ‘We do, sir?’
7655
7656 ‘Might I ask you,’ said the Minor Canon: ‘what are your views on that
7657 subject?’
7658
7659 ‘That human life is a thing to be held sacred, sir.’
7660
7661 ‘Might I ask you,’ pursued the Minor Canon as before: ‘what you suppose
7662 to be my views on that subject?’
7663
7664 ‘By George, sir!’ returned the Philanthropist, squaring his arms still
7665 more, as he frowned on Mr. Crisparkle: ‘they are best known to yourself.’
7666
7667 ‘Readily admitted. But you began by saying that we took different views,
7668 you know. Therefore (or you could not say so) you must have set up some
7669 views as mine. Pray, what views _have_ you set up as mine?’
7670
7671 ‘Here is a man—and a young man,’ said Mr. Honeythunder, as if that made
7672 the matter infinitely worse, and he could have easily borne the loss of
7673 an old one, ‘swept off the face of the earth by a deed of violence. What
7674 do you call that?’
7675
7676 ‘Murder,’ said the Minor Canon.
7677
7678 ‘What do you call the doer of that deed, sir?
7679
7680 ‘A murderer,’ said the Minor Canon.
7681
7682 ‘I am glad to hear you admit so much, sir,’ retorted Mr. Honeythunder, in
7683 his most offensive manner; ‘and I candidly tell you that I didn’t expect
7684 it.’ Here he lowered heavily at Mr. Crisparkle again.
7685
7686 ‘Be so good as to explain what you mean by those very unjustifiable
7687 expressions.’
7688
7689 ‘I don’t sit here, sir,’ returned the Philanthropist, raising his voice
7690 to a roar, ‘to be browbeaten.’
7691
7692 ‘As the only other person present, no one can possibly know that better
7693 than I do,’ returned the Minor Canon very quietly. ‘But I interrupt your
7694 explanation.’
7695
7696 ‘Murder!’ proceeded Mr. Honeythunder, in a kind of boisterous reverie,
7697 with his platform folding of his arms, and his platform nod of abhorrent
7698 reflection after each short sentiment of a word. ‘Bloodshed! Abel!
7699 Cain! I hold no terms with Cain. I repudiate with a shudder the red
7700 hand when it is offered me.’
7701
7702 Instead of instantly leaping into his chair and cheering himself hoarse,
7703 as the Brotherhood in public meeting assembled would infallibly have done
7704 on this cue, Mr. Crisparkle merely reversed the quiet crossing of his
7705 legs, and said mildly: ‘Don’t let me interrupt your explanation—when you
7706 begin it.’
7707
7708 ‘The Commandments say, no murder. NO murder, sir!’ proceeded Mr.
7709 Honeythunder, platformally pausing as if he took Mr. Crisparkle to task
7710 for having distinctly asserted that they said: You may do a little
7711 murder, and then leave off.
7712
7713 ‘And they also say, you shall bear no false witness,’ observed Mr.
7714 Crisparkle.
7715
7716 ‘Enough!’ bellowed Mr. Honeythunder, with a solemnity and severity that
7717 would have brought the house down at a meeting, ‘E-e-nough! My late
7718 wards being now of age, and I being released from a trust which I cannot
7719 contemplate without a thrill of horror, there are the accounts which you
7720 have undertaken to accept on their behalf, and there is a statement of
7721 the balance which you have undertaken to receive, and which you cannot
7722 receive too soon. And let me tell you, sir, I wish that, as a man and a
7723 Minor Canon, you were better employed,’ with a nod. ‘Better employed,’
7724 with another nod. ‘Bet-ter em-ployed!’ with another and the three nods
7725 added up.
7726
7727 Mr. Crisparkle rose; a little heated in the face, but with perfect
7728 command of himself.
7729
7730 ‘Mr. Honeythunder,’ he said, taking up the papers referred to: ‘my being
7731 better or worse employed than I am at present is a matter of taste and
7732 opinion. You might think me better employed in enrolling myself a member
7733 of your Society.’
7734
7735 ‘Ay, indeed, sir!’ retorted Mr. Honeythunder, shaking his head in a
7736 threatening manner. ‘It would have been better for you if you had done
7737 that long ago!’
7738
7739 ‘I think otherwise.’
7740
7741 ‘Or,’ said Mr. Honeythunder, shaking his head again, ‘I might think one
7742 of your profession better employed in devoting himself to the discovery
7743 and punishment of guilt than in leaving that duty to be undertaken by a
7744 layman.’
7745
7746 ‘I may regard my profession from a point of view which teaches me that
7747 its first duty is towards those who are in necessity and tribulation, who
7748 are desolate and oppressed,’ said Mr. Crisparkle. ‘However, as I have
7749 quite clearly satisfied myself that it is no part of my profession to
7750 make professions, I say no more of that. But I owe it to Mr. Neville,
7751 and to Mr. Neville’s sister (and in a much lower degree to myself), to
7752 say to you that I _know_ I was in the full possession and understanding
7753 of Mr. Neville’s mind and heart at the time of this occurrence; and that,
7754 without in the least colouring or concealing what was to be deplored in
7755 him and required to be corrected, I feel certain that his tale is true.
7756 Feeling that certainty, I befriend him. As long as that certainty shall
7757 last, I will befriend him. And if any consideration could shake me in
7758 this resolve, I should be so ashamed of myself for my meanness, that no
7759 man’s good opinion—no, nor no woman’s—so gained, could compensate me for
7760 the loss of my own.’
7761
7762 Good fellow! manly fellow! And he was so modest, too. There was no more
7763 self-assertion in the Minor Canon than in the schoolboy who had stood in
7764 the breezy playing-fields keeping a wicket. He was simply and staunchly
7765 true to his duty alike in the large case and in the small. So all true
7766 souls ever are. So every true soul ever was, ever is, and ever will be.
7767 There is nothing little to the really great in spirit.
7768
7769 ‘Then who do you make out did the deed?’ asked Mr. Honeythunder, turning
7770 on him abruptly.
7771
7772 ‘Heaven forbid,’ said Mr. Crisparkle, ‘that in my desire to clear one man
7773 I should lightly criminate another! I accuse no one.’
7774
7775 ‘Tcha!’ ejaculated Mr. Honeythunder with great disgust; for this was by
7776 no means the principle on which the Philanthropic Brotherhood usually
7777 proceeded. ‘And, sir, you are not a disinterested witness, we must bear
7778 in mind.’
7779
7780 ‘How am I an interested one?’ inquired Mr. Crisparkle, smiling
7781 innocently, at a loss to imagine.
7782
7783 ‘There was a certain stipend, sir, paid to you for your pupil, which may
7784 have warped your judgment a bit,’ said Mr. Honeythunder, coarsely.
7785
7786 ‘Perhaps I expect to retain it still?’ Mr. Crisparkle returned,
7787 enlightened; ‘do you mean that too?’
7788
7789 ‘Well, sir,’ returned the professional Philanthropist, getting up and
7790 thrusting his hands down into his trousers-pockets, ‘I don’t go about
7791 measuring people for caps. If people find I have any about me that fit
7792 ’em, they can put ’em on and wear ’em, if they like. That’s their look
7793 out: not mine.’
7794
7795 Mr. Crisparkle eyed him with a just indignation, and took him to task
7796 thus:
7797
7798 ‘Mr. Honeythunder, I hoped when I came in here that I might be under no
7799 necessity of commenting on the introduction of platform manners or
7800 platform manœuvres among the decent forbearances of private life. But
7801 you have given me such a specimen of both, that I should be a fit subject
7802 for both if I remained silent respecting them. They are detestable.’
7803
7804 ‘They don’t suit _you_, I dare say, sir.’
7805
7806 ‘They are,’ repeated Mr. Crisparkle, without noticing the interruption,
7807 ‘detestable. They violate equally the justice that should belong to
7808 Christians, and the restraints that should belong to gentlemen. You
7809 assume a great crime to have been committed by one whom I, acquainted
7810 with the attendant circumstances, and having numerous reasons on my side,
7811 devoutly believe to be innocent of it. Because I differ from you on that
7812 vital point, what is your platform resource? Instantly to turn upon me,
7813 charging that I have no sense of the enormity of the crime itself, but am
7814 its aider and abettor! So, another time—taking me as representing your
7815 opponent in other cases—you set up a platform credulity; a moved and
7816 seconded and carried-unanimously profession of faith in some ridiculous
7817 delusion or mischievous imposition. I decline to believe it, and you
7818 fall back upon your platform resource of proclaiming that I believe
7819 nothing; that because I will not bow down to a false God of your making,
7820 I deny the true God! Another time you make the platform discovery that
7821 War is a calamity, and you propose to abolish it by a string of twisted
7822 resolutions tossed into the air like the tail of a kite. I do not admit
7823 the discovery to be yours in the least, and I have not a grain of faith
7824 in your remedy. Again, your platform resource of representing me as
7825 revelling in the horrors of a battle-field like a fiend incarnate!
7826 Another time, in another of your undiscriminating platform rushes, you
7827 would punish the sober for the drunken. I claim consideration for the
7828 comfort, convenience, and refreshment of the sober; and you presently
7829 make platform proclamation that I have a depraved desire to turn Heaven’s
7830 creatures into swine and wild beasts! In all such cases your movers, and
7831 your seconders, and your supporters—your regular Professors of all
7832 degrees, run amuck like so many mad Malays; habitually attributing the
7833 lowest and basest motives with the utmost recklessness (let me call your
7834 attention to a recent instance in yourself for which you should blush),
7835 and quoting figures which you know to be as wilfully onesided as a
7836 statement of any complicated account that should be all Creditor side and
7837 no Debtor, or all Debtor side and no Creditor. Therefore it is, Mr.
7838 Honeythunder, that I consider the platform a sufficiently bad example and
7839 a sufficiently bad school, even in public life; but hold that, carried
7840 into private life, it becomes an unendurable nuisance.’
7841
7842 ‘These are strong words, sir!’ exclaimed the Philanthropist.
7843
7844 ‘I hope so,’ said Mr. Crisparkle. ‘Good morning.’
7845
7846 He walked out of the Haven at a great rate, but soon fell into his
7847 regular brisk pace, and soon had a smile upon his face as he went along,
7848 wondering what the china shepherdess would have said if she had seen him
7849 pounding Mr. Honeythunder in the late little lively affair. For Mr.
7850 Crisparkle had just enough of harmless vanity to hope that he had hit
7851 hard, and to glow with the belief that he had trimmed the Philanthropic
7852 Jacket pretty handsomely.
7853
7854 He took himself to Staple Inn, but not to P. J. T. and Mr. Grewgious.
7855 Full many a creaking stair he climbed before he reached some attic rooms
7856 in a corner, turned the latch of their unbolted door, and stood beside
7857 the table of Neville Landless.
7858
7859 An air of retreat and solitude hung about the rooms and about their
7860 inhabitant. He was much worn, and so were they. Their sloping ceilings,
7861 cumbrous rusty locks and grates, and heavy wooden bins and beams, slowly
7862 mouldering withal, had a prisonous look, and he had the haggard face of a
7863 prisoner. Yet the sunlight shone in at the ugly garret-window, which had
7864 a penthouse to itself thrust out among the tiles; and on the cracked and
7865 smoke-blackened parapet beyond, some of the deluded sparrows of the place
7866 rheumatically hopped, like little feathered cripples who had left their
7867 crutches in their nests; and there was a play of living leaves at hand
7868 that changed the air, and made an imperfect sort of music in it that
7869 would have been melody in the country.
7870
7871 The rooms were sparely furnished, but with good store of books.
7872 Everything expressed the abode of a poor student. That Mr. Crisparkle
7873 had been either chooser, lender, or donor of the books, or that he
7874 combined the three characters, might have been easily seen in the
7875 friendly beam of his eyes upon them as he entered.
7876
7877 ‘How goes it, Neville?’
7878
7879 ‘I am in good heart, Mr. Crisparkle, and working away.’
7880
7881 ‘I wish your eyes were not quite so large and not quite so bright,’ said
7882 the Minor Canon, slowly releasing the hand he had taken in his.
7883
7884 ‘They brighten at the sight of you,’ returned Neville. ‘If you were to
7885 fall away from me, they would soon be dull enough.’
7886
7887 ‘Rally, rally!’ urged the other, in a stimulating tone. ‘Fight for it,
7888 Neville!’
7889
7890 ‘If I were dying, I feel as if a word from you would rally me; if my
7891 pulse had stopped, I feel as if your touch would make it beat again,’
7892 said Neville. ‘But I _have_ rallied, and am doing famously.’
7893
7894 Mr. Crisparkle turned him with his face a little more towards the light.
7895
7896 ‘I want to see a ruddier touch here, Neville,’ he said, indicating his
7897 own healthy cheek by way of pattern. ‘I want more sun to shine upon
7898 you.’
7899
7900 Neville drooped suddenly, as he replied in a lowered voice: ‘I am not
7901 hardy enough for that, yet. I may become so, but I cannot bear it yet.
7902 If you had gone through those Cloisterham streets as I did; if you had
7903 seen, as I did, those averted eyes, and the better sort of people
7904 silently giving me too much room to pass, that I might not touch them or
7905 come near them, you wouldn’t think it quite unreasonable that I cannot go
7906 about in the daylight.’
7907
7908 ‘My poor fellow!’ said the Minor Canon, in a tone so purely sympathetic
7909 that the young man caught his hand, ‘I never said it was unreasonable;
7910 never thought so. But I should like you to do it.’
7911
7912 ‘And that would give me the strongest motive to do it. But I cannot yet.
7913 I cannot persuade myself that the eyes of even the stream of strangers I
7914 pass in this vast city look at me without suspicion. I feel marked and
7915 tainted, even when I go out—as I do only—at night. But the darkness
7916 covers me then, and I take courage from it.’
7917
7918 Mr. Crisparkle laid a hand upon his shoulder, and stood looking down at
7919 him.
7920
7921 ‘If I could have changed my name,’ said Neville, ‘I would have done so.
7922 But as you wisely pointed out to me, I can’t do that, for it would look
7923 like guilt. If I could have gone to some distant place, I might have
7924 found relief in that, but the thing is not to be thought of, for the same
7925 reason. Hiding and escaping would be the construction in either case.
7926 It seems a little hard to be so tied to a stake, and innocent; but I
7927 don’t complain.’
7928
7929 ‘And you must expect no miracle to help you, Neville,’ said Mr.
7930 Crisparkle, compassionately.
7931
7932 ‘No, sir, I know that. The ordinary fulness of time and circumstances is
7933 all I have to trust to.’
7934
7935 ‘It will right you at last, Neville.’
7936
7937 ‘So I believe, and I hope I may live to know it.’
7938
7939 But perceiving that the despondent mood into which he was falling cast a
7940 shadow on the Minor Canon, and (it may be) feeling that the broad hand
7941 upon his shoulder was not then quite as steady as its own natural
7942 strength had rendered it when it first touched him just now, he
7943 brightened and said:
7944
7945 ‘Excellent circumstances for study, anyhow! and you know, Mr. Crisparkle,
7946 what need I have of study in all ways. Not to mention that you have
7947 advised me to study for the difficult profession of the law, specially,
7948 and that of course I am guiding myself by the advice of such a friend and
7949 helper. Such a good friend and helper!’
7950
7951 He took the fortifying hand from his shoulder, and kissed it. Mr.
7952 Crisparkle beamed at the books, but not so brightly as when he had
7953 entered.
7954
7955 ‘I gather from your silence on the subject that my late guardian is
7956 adverse, Mr. Crisparkle?’
7957
7958 The Minor Canon answered: ‘Your late guardian is a—a most unreasonable
7959 person, and it signifies nothing to any reasonable person whether he is
7960 _ad_verse, _per_verse, or the _re_verse.’
7961
7962 ‘Well for me that I have enough with economy to live upon,’ sighed
7963 Neville, half wearily and half cheerily, ‘while I wait to be learned, and
7964 wait to be righted! Else I might have proved the proverb, that while the
7965 grass grows, the steed starves!’
7966
7967 He opened some books as he said it, and was soon immersed in their
7968 interleaved and annotated passages; while Mr. Crisparkle sat beside him,
7969 expounding, correcting, and advising. The Minor Canon’s Cathedral duties
7970 made these visits of his difficult to accomplish, and only to be
7971 compassed at intervals of many weeks. But they were as serviceable as
7972 they were precious to Neville Landless.
7973
7974 When they had got through such studies as they had in hand, they stood
7975 leaning on the window-sill, and looking down upon the patch of garden.
7976 ‘Next week,’ said Mr. Crisparkle, ‘you will cease to be alone, and will
7977 have a devoted companion.’
7978
7979 ‘And yet,’ returned Neville, ‘this seems an uncongenial place to bring my
7980 sister to.’
7981
7982 ‘I don’t think so,’ said the Minor Canon. ‘There is duty to be done
7983 here; and there are womanly feeling, sense, and courage wanted here.’
7984
7985 ‘I meant,’ explained Neville, ‘that the surroundings are so dull and
7986 unwomanly, and that Helena can have no suitable friend or society here.’
7987
7988 ‘You have only to remember,’ said Mr. Crisparkle, ‘that you are here
7989 yourself, and that she has to draw you into the sunlight.’
7990
7991 They were silent for a little while, and then Mr. Crisparkle began anew.
7992
7993 ‘When we first spoke together, Neville, you told me that your sister had
7994 risen out of the disadvantages of your past lives as superior to you as
7995 the tower of Cloisterham Cathedral is higher than the chimneys of Minor
7996 Canon Corner. Do you remember that?’
7997
7998 ‘Right well!’
7999
8000 ‘I was inclined to think it at the time an enthusiastic flight. No
8001 matter what I think it now. What I would emphasise is, that under the
8002 head of Pride your sister is a great and opportune example to you.’
8003
8004 ‘Under _all_ heads that are included in the composition of a fine
8005 character, she is.’
8006
8007 ‘Say so; but take this one. Your sister has learnt how to govern what is
8008 proud in her nature. She can dominate it even when it is wounded through
8009 her sympathy with you. No doubt she has suffered deeply in those same
8010 streets where you suffered deeply. No doubt her life is darkened by the
8011 cloud that darkens yours. But bending her pride into a grand composure
8012 that is not haughty or aggressive, but is a sustained confidence in you
8013 and in the truth, she has won her way through those streets until she
8014 passes along them as high in the general respect as any one who treads
8015 them. Every day and hour of her life since Edwin Drood’s disappearance,
8016 she has faced malignity and folly—for you—as only a brave nature well
8017 directed can. So it will be with her to the end. Another and weaker
8018 kind of pride might sink broken-hearted, but never such a pride as hers:
8019 which knows no shrinking, and can get no mastery over her.’
8020
8021 The pale cheek beside him flushed under the comparison, and the hint
8022 implied in it.
8023
8024 ‘I will do all I can to imitate her,’ said Neville.
8025
8026 ‘Do so, and be a truly brave man, as she is a truly brave woman,’
8027 answered Mr. Crisparkle stoutly. ‘It is growing dark. Will you go my
8028 way with me, when it is quite dark? Mind! it is not I who wait for
8029 darkness.’
8030
8031 Neville replied, that he would accompany him directly. But Mr.
8032 Crisparkle said he had a moment’s call to make on Mr. Grewgious as an act
8033 of courtesy, and would run across to that gentleman’s chambers, and
8034 rejoin Neville on his own doorstep, if he would come down there to meet
8035 him.
8036
8037 Mr. Grewgious, bolt upright as usual, sat taking his wine in the dusk at
8038 his open window; his wineglass and decanter on the round table at his
8039 elbow; himself and his legs on the window-seat; only one hinge in his
8040 whole body, like a bootjack.
8041
8042 ‘How do you do, reverend sir?’ said Mr. Grewgious, with abundant offers
8043 of hospitality, which were as cordially declined as made. ‘And how is
8044 your charge getting on over the way in the set that I had the pleasure of
8045 recommending to you as vacant and eligible?’
8046
8047 Mr. Crisparkle replied suitably.
8048
8049 ‘I am glad you approve of them,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘because I entertain
8050 a sort of fancy for having him under my eye.’
8051
8052 As Mr. Grewgious had to turn his eye up considerably before he could see
8053 the chambers, the phrase was to be taken figuratively and not literally.
8054
8055 ‘And how did you leave Mr. Jasper, reverend sir?’ said Mr. Grewgious.
8056
8057 Mr. Crisparkle had left him pretty well.
8058
8059 ‘And where did you leave Mr. Jasper, reverend sir?’ Mr. Crisparkle had
8060 left him at Cloisterham.
8061
8062 ‘And when did you leave Mr. Jasper, reverend sir?’ That morning.
8063
8064 ‘Umps!’ said Mr. Grewgious. ‘He didn’t say he was coming, perhaps?’
8065
8066 ‘Coming where?’
8067
8068 ‘Anywhere, for instance?’ said Mr. Grewgious.
8069
8070 ‘No.’
8071
8072 ‘Because here he is,’ said Mr. Grewgious, who had asked all these
8073 questions, with his preoccupied glance directed out at window. ‘And he
8074 don’t look agreeable, does he?’
8075
8076 Mr. Crisparkle was craning towards the window, when Mr. Grewgious added:
8077
8078 ‘If you will kindly step round here behind me, in the gloom of the room,
8079 and will cast your eye at the second-floor landing window in yonder
8080 house, I think you will hardly fail to see a slinking individual in whom
8081 I recognise our local friend.’
8082
8083 ‘You are right!’ cried Mr. Crisparkle.
8084
8085 ‘Umps!’ said Mr. Grewgious. Then he added, turning his face so abruptly
8086 that his head nearly came into collision with Mr. Crisparkle’s: ‘what
8087 should you say that our local friend was up to?’
8088
8089 The last passage he had been shown in the Diary returned on Mr.
8090 Crisparkle’s mind with the force of a strong recoil, and he asked Mr.
8091 Grewgious if he thought it possible that Neville was to be harassed by
8092 the keeping of a watch upon him?
8093
8094 ‘A watch?’ repeated Mr. Grewgious musingly. ‘Ay!’
8095
8096 ‘Which would not only of itself haunt and torture his life,’ said Mr.
8097 Crisparkle warmly, ‘but would expose him to the torment of a perpetually
8098 reviving suspicion, whatever he might do, or wherever he might go.’
8099
8100 ‘Ay!’ said Mr. Grewgious musingly still. ‘Do I see him waiting for you?’
8101
8102 ‘No doubt you do.’
8103
8104 ‘Then _would_ you have the goodness to excuse my getting up to see you
8105 out, and to go out to join him, and to go the way that you were going,
8106 and to take no notice of our local friend?’ said Mr. Grewgious. ‘I
8107 entertain a sort of fancy for having _him_ under my eye to-night, do you
8108 know?’
8109
8110 Mr. Crisparkle, with a significant need complied; and rejoining Neville,
8111 went away with him. They dined together, and parted at the yet
8112 unfinished and undeveloped railway station: Mr. Crisparkle to get home;
8113 Neville to walk the streets, cross the bridges, make a wide round of the
8114 city in the friendly darkness, and tire himself out.
8115
8116 It was midnight when he returned from his solitary expedition and climbed
8117 his staircase. The night was hot, and the windows of the staircase were
8118 all wide open. Coming to the top, it gave him a passing chill of
8119 surprise (there being no rooms but his up there) to find a stranger
8120 sitting on the window-sill, more after the manner of a venturesome
8121 glazier than an amateur ordinarily careful of his neck; in fact, so much
8122 more outside the window than inside, as to suggest the thought that he
8123 must have come up by the water-spout instead of the stairs.
8124
8125 The stranger said nothing until Neville put his key in his door; then,
8126 seeming to make sure of his identity from the action, he spoke:
8127
8128 ‘I beg your pardon,’ he said, coming from the window with a frank and
8129 smiling air, and a prepossessing address; ‘the beans.’
8130
8131 Neville was quite at a loss.
8132
8133 ‘Runners,’ said the visitor. ‘Scarlet. Next door at the back.’
8134
8135 ‘O,’ returned Neville. ‘And the mignonette and wall-flower?’
8136
8137 ‘The same,’ said the visitor.
8138
8139 ‘Pray walk in.’
8140
8141 ‘Thank you.’
8142
8143 Neville lighted his candles, and the visitor sat down. A handsome
8144 gentleman, with a young face, but with an older figure in its robustness
8145 and its breadth of shoulder; say a man of eight-and-twenty, or at the
8146 utmost thirty; so extremely sunburnt that the contrast between his brown
8147 visage and the white forehead shaded out of doors by his hat, and the
8148 glimpses of white throat below the neckerchief, would have been almost
8149 ludicrous but for his broad temples, bright blue eyes, clustering brown
8150 hair, and laughing teeth.
8151
8152 ‘I have noticed,’ said he; ‘—my name is Tartar.’
8153
8154 Neville inclined his head.
8155
8156 ‘I have noticed (excuse me) that you shut yourself up a good deal, and
8157 that you seem to like my garden aloft here. If you would like a little
8158 more of it, I could throw out a few lines and stays between my windows
8159 and yours, which the runners would take to directly. And I have some
8160 boxes, both of mignonette and wall-flower, that I could shove on along
8161 the gutter (with a boathook I have by me) to your windows, and draw back
8162 again when they wanted watering or gardening, and shove on again when
8163 they were ship-shape; so that they would cause you no trouble. I
8164 couldn’t take this liberty without asking your permission, so I venture
8165 to ask it. Tartar, corresponding set, next door.’
8166
8167 ‘You are very kind.’
8168
8169 ‘Not at all. I ought to apologise for looking in so late. But having
8170 noticed (excuse me) that you generally walk out at night, I thought I
8171 should inconvenience you least by awaiting your return. I am always
8172 afraid of inconveniencing busy men, being an idle man.’
8173
8174 ‘I should not have thought so, from your appearance.’
8175
8176 ‘No? I take it as a compliment. In fact, I was bred in the Royal Navy,
8177 and was First Lieutenant when I quitted it. But, an uncle disappointed
8178 in the service leaving me his property on condition that I left the Navy,
8179 I accepted the fortune, and resigned my commission.’
8180
8181 ‘Lately, I presume?’
8182
8183 ‘Well, I had had twelve or fifteen years of knocking about first. I came
8184 here some nine months before you; I had had one crop before you came. I
8185 chose this place, because, having served last in a little corvette, I
8186 knew I should feel more at home where I had a constant opportunity of
8187 knocking my head against the ceiling. Besides, it would never do for a
8188 man who had been aboard ship from his boyhood to turn luxurious all at
8189 once. Besides, again; having been accustomed to a very short allowance
8190 of land all my life, I thought I’d feel my way to the command of a landed
8191 estate, by beginning in boxes.’
8192
8193 Whimsically as this was said, there was a touch of merry earnestness in
8194 it that made it doubly whimsical.
8195
8196 ‘However,’ said the Lieutenant, ‘I have talked quite enough about myself.
8197 It is not my way, I hope; it has merely been to present myself to you
8198 naturally. If you will allow me to take the liberty I have described, it
8199 will be a charity, for it will give me something more to do. And you are
8200 not to suppose that it will entail any interruption or intrusion on you,
8201 for that is far from my intention.’
8202
8203 Neville replied that he was greatly obliged, and that he thankfully
8204 accepted the kind proposal.
8205
8206 ‘I am very glad to take your windows in tow,’ said the Lieutenant. ‘From
8207 what I have seen of you when I have been gardening at mine, and you have
8208 been looking on, I have thought you (excuse me) rather too studious and
8209 delicate. May I ask, is your health at all affected?’
8210
8211 ‘I have undergone some mental distress,’ said Neville, confused, ‘which
8212 has stood me in the stead of illness.’
8213
8214 ‘Pardon me,’ said Mr. Tartar.
8215
8216 With the greatest delicacy he shifted his ground to the windows again,
8217 and asked if he could look at one of them. On Neville’s opening it, he
8218 immediately sprang out, as if he were going aloft with a whole watch in
8219 an emergency, and were setting a bright example.
8220
8221 ‘For Heaven’s sake,’ cried Neville, ‘don’t do that! Where are you going
8222 Mr. Tartar? You’ll be dashed to pieces!’
8223
8224 ‘All well!’ said the Lieutenant, coolly looking about him on the
8225 housetop. ‘All taut and trim here. Those lines and stays shall be
8226 rigged before you turn out in the morning. May I take this short cut
8227 home, and say good-night?’
8228
8229 ‘Mr. Tartar!’ urged Neville. ‘Pray! It makes me giddy to see you!’
8230
8231 But Mr. Tartar, with a wave of his hand and the deftness of a cat, had
8232 already dipped through his scuttle of scarlet runners without breaking a
8233 leaf, and ‘gone below.’
8234
8235 Mr. Grewgious, his bedroom window-blind held aside with his hand,
8236 happened at the moment to have Neville’s chambers under his eye for the
8237 last time that night. Fortunately his eye was on the front of the house
8238 and not the back, or this remarkable appearance and disappearance might
8239 have broken his rest as a phenomenon. But Mr. Grewgious seeing nothing
8240 there, not even a light in the windows, his gaze wandered from the
8241 windows to the stars, as if he would have read in them something that was
8242 hidden from him. Many of us would, if we could; but none of us so much
8243 as know our letters in the stars yet—or seem likely to do it, in this
8244 state of existence—and few languages can be read until their alphabets
8245 are mastered.
8246
8247
8248
8249
8250 CHAPTER XVIII—A SETTLER IN CLOISTERHAM
8251
8252
8253 At about this time a stranger appeared in Cloisterham; a white-haired
8254 personage, with black eyebrows. Being buttoned up in a tightish blue
8255 surtout, with a buff waistcoat and gray trousers, he had something of a
8256 military air, but he announced himself at the Crozier (the orthodox
8257 hotel, where he put up with a portmanteau) as an idle dog who lived upon
8258 his means; and he farther announced that he had a mind to take a lodging
8259 in the picturesque old city for a month or two, with a view of settling
8260 down there altogether. Both announcements were made in the coffee-room
8261 of the Crozier, to all whom it might or might not concern, by the
8262 stranger as he stood with his back to the empty fireplace, waiting for
8263 his fried sole, veal cutlet, and pint of sherry. And the waiter
8264 (business being chronically slack at the Crozier) represented all whom it
8265 might or might not concern, and absorbed the whole of the information.
8266
8267 This gentleman’s white head was unusually large, and his shock of white
8268 hair was unusually thick and ample. ‘I suppose, waiter,’ he said,
8269 shaking his shock of hair, as a Newfoundland dog might shake his before
8270 sitting down to dinner, ‘that a fair lodging for a single buffer might be
8271 found in these parts, eh?’
8272
8273 The waiter had no doubt of it.
8274
8275 ‘Something old,’ said the gentleman. ‘Take my hat down for a moment from
8276 that peg, will you? No, I don’t want it; look into it. What do you see
8277 written there?’
8278
8279 The waiter read: ‘Datchery.’
8280
8281 ‘Now you know my name,’ said the gentleman; ‘Dick Datchery. Hang it up
8282 again. I was saying something old is what I should prefer, something odd
8283 and out of the way; something venerable, architectural, and
8284 inconvenient.’
8285
8286 ‘We have a good choice of inconvenient lodgings in the town, sir, I
8287 think,’ replied the waiter, with modest confidence in its resources that
8288 way; ‘indeed, I have no doubt that we could suit you that far, however
8289 particular you might be. But a architectural lodging!’ That seemed to
8290 trouble the waiter’s head, and he shook it.
8291
8292 ‘Anything Cathedraly, now,’ Mr. Datchery suggested.
8293
8294 ‘Mr. Tope,’ said the waiter, brightening, as he rubbed his chin with his
8295 hand, ‘would be the likeliest party to inform in that line.’
8296
8297 ‘Who is Mr. Tope?’ inquired Dick Datchery.
8298
8299 The waiter explained that he was the Verger, and that Mrs. Tope had
8300 indeed once upon a time let lodgings herself or offered to let them; but
8301 that as nobody had ever taken them, Mrs. Tope’s window-bill, long a
8302 Cloisterham Institution, had disappeared; probably had tumbled down one
8303 day, and never been put up again.
8304
8305 ‘I’ll call on Mrs. Tope,’ said Mr. Datchery, ‘after dinner.’
8306
8307 So when he had done his dinner, he was duly directed to the spot, and
8308 sallied out for it. But the Crozier being an hotel of a most retiring
8309 disposition, and the waiter’s directions being fatally precise, he soon
8310 became bewildered, and went boggling about and about the Cathedral Tower,
8311 whenever he could catch a glimpse of it, with a general impression on his
8312 mind that Mrs. Tope’s was somewhere very near it, and that, like the
8313 children in the game of hot boiled beans and very good butter, he was
8314 warm in his search when he saw the Tower, and cold when he didn’t see it.
8315
8316 He was getting very cold indeed when he came upon a fragment of
8317 burial-ground in which an unhappy sheep was grazing. Unhappy, because a
8318 hideous small boy was stoning it through the railings, and had already
8319 lamed it in one leg, and was much excited by the benevolent sportsmanlike
8320 purpose of breaking its other three legs, and bringing it down.
8321
8322 ‘’It ’im agin!’ cried the boy, as the poor creature leaped; ‘and made a
8323 dint in his wool.’
8324
8325 ‘Let him be!’ said Mr. Datchery. ‘Don’t you see you have lamed him?’
8326
8327 ‘Yer lie,’ returned the sportsman. ‘’E went and lamed isself. I see ’im
8328 do it, and I giv’ ’im a shy as a Widdy-warning to ’im not to go
8329 a-bruisin’ ’is master’s mutton any more.’
8330
8331 ‘Come here.’
8332
8333 ‘I won’t; I’ll come when yer can ketch me.’
8334
8335 ‘Stay there then, and show me which is Mr. Tope’s.’
8336
8337 ‘Ow can I stay here and show you which is Topeseses, when Topeseses is
8338 t’other side the Kinfreederal, and over the crossings, and round ever so
8339 many comers? Stoo-pid! Ya-a-ah!’
8340
8341 ‘Show me where it is, and I’ll give you something.’
8342
8343 ‘Come on, then.’
8344
8345 This brisk dialogue concluded, the boy led the way, and by-and-by stopped
8346 at some distance from an arched passage, pointing.
8347
8348 ‘Lookie yonder. You see that there winder and door?’
8349
8350 ‘That’s Tope’s?’
8351
8352 ‘Yer lie; it ain’t. That’s Jarsper’s.’
8353
8354 ‘Indeed?’ said Mr. Datchery, with a second look of some interest.
8355
8356 ‘Yes, and I ain’t a-goin’ no nearer ’IM, I tell yer.’
8357
8358 ‘Why not?’
8359
8360 ‘’Cos I ain’t a-goin’ to be lifted off my legs and ’ave my braces bust
8361 and be choked; not if I knows it, and not by ‘Im. Wait till I set a
8362 jolly good flint a-flyin’ at the back o’ ’is jolly old ’ed some day! Now
8363 look t’other side the harch; not the side where Jarsper’s door is;
8364 t’other side.’
8365
8366 ‘I see.’
8367
8368 ‘A little way in, o’ that side, there’s a low door, down two steps.
8369 That’s Topeseses with ’is name on a hoval plate.’
8370
8371 ‘Good. See here,’ said Mr. Datchery, producing a shilling. ‘You owe me
8372 half of this.’
8373
8374 ‘Yer lie! I don’t owe yer nothing; I never seen yer.’
8375
8376 ‘I tell you you owe me half of this, because I have no sixpence in my
8377 pocket. So the next time you meet me you shall do something else for me,
8378 to pay me.’
8379
8380 ‘All right, give us ’old.’
8381
8382 ‘What is your name, and where do you live?’
8383
8384 ‘Deputy. Travellers’ Twopenny, ’cross the green.’
8385
8386 The boy instantly darted off with the shilling, lest Mr. Datchery should
8387 repent, but stopped at a safe distance, on the happy chance of his being
8388 uneasy in his mind about it, to goad him with a demon dance expressive of
8389 its irrevocability.
8390
8391 Mr. Datchery, taking off his hat to give that shock of white hair of his
8392 another shake, seemed quite resigned, and betook himself whither he had
8393 been directed.
8394
8395 Mr. Tope’s official dwelling, communicating by an upper stair with Mr.
8396 Jasper’s (hence Mrs. Tope’s attendance on that gentleman), was of very
8397 modest proportions, and partook of the character of a cool dungeon. Its
8398 ancient walls were massive, and its rooms rather seemed to have been dug
8399 out of them, than to have been designed beforehand with any reference to
8400 them. The main door opened at once on a chamber of no describable shape,
8401 with a groined roof, which in its turn opened on another chamber of no
8402 describable shape, with another groined roof: their windows small, and in
8403 the thickness of the walls. These two chambers, close as to their
8404 atmosphere, and swarthy as to their illumination by natural light, were
8405 the apartments which Mrs. Tope had so long offered to an unappreciative
8406 city. Mr. Datchery, however, was more appreciative. He found that if he
8407 sat with the main door open he would enjoy the passing society of all
8408 comers to and fro by the gateway, and would have light enough. He found
8409 that if Mr. and Mrs. Tope, living overhead, used for their own egress and
8410 ingress a little side stair that came plump into the Precincts by a door
8411 opening outward, to the surprise and inconvenience of a limited public of
8412 pedestrians in a narrow way, he would be alone, as in a separate
8413 residence. He found the rent moderate, and everything as quaintly
8414 inconvenient as he could desire. He agreed, therefore, to take the
8415 lodging then and there, and money down, possession to be had next
8416 evening, on condition that reference was permitted him to Mr. Jasper as
8417 occupying the gatehouse, of which on the other side of the gateway, the
8418 Verger’s hole-in-the-wall was an appanage or subsidiary part.
8419
8420 The poor dear gentleman was very solitary and very sad, Mrs. Tope said,
8421 but she had no doubt he would ‘speak for her.’ Perhaps Mr. Datchery had
8422 heard something of what had occurred there last winter?
8423
8424 Mr. Datchery had as confused a knowledge of the event in question, on
8425 trying to recall it, as he well could have. He begged Mrs. Tope’s pardon
8426 when she found it incumbent on her to correct him in every detail of his
8427 summary of the facts, but pleaded that he was merely a single buffer
8428 getting through life upon his means as idly as he could, and that so many
8429 people were so constantly making away with so many other people, as to
8430 render it difficult for a buffer of an easy temper to preserve the
8431 circumstances of the several cases unmixed in his mind.
8432
8433 Mr. Jasper proving willing to speak for Mrs. Tope, Mr. Datchery, who had
8434 sent up his card, was invited to ascend the postern staircase. The Mayor
8435 was there, Mr. Tope said; but he was not to be regarded in the light of
8436 company, as he and Mr. Jasper were great friends.
8437
8438 ‘I beg pardon,’ said Mr. Datchery, making a leg with his hat under his
8439 arm, as he addressed himself equally to both gentlemen; ‘a selfish
8440 precaution on my part, and not personally interesting to anybody but
8441 myself. But as a buffer living on his means, and having an idea of doing
8442 it in this lovely place in peace and quiet, for remaining span of life, I
8443 beg to ask if the Tope family are quite respectable?’
8444
8445 Mr. Jasper could answer for that without the slightest hesitation.
8446
8447 ‘That is enough, sir,’ said Mr. Datchery.
8448
8449 ‘My friend the Mayor,’ added Mr. Jasper, presenting Mr. Datchery with a
8450 courtly motion of his hand towards that potentate; ‘whose recommendation
8451 is actually much more important to a stranger than that of an obscure
8452 person like myself, will testify in their behalf, I am sure.’
8453
8454 ‘The Worshipful the Mayor,’ said Mr. Datchery, with a low bow, ‘places me
8455 under an infinite obligation.’
8456
8457 ‘Very good people, sir, Mr. and Mrs. Tope,’ said Mr. Sapsea, with
8458 condescension. ‘Very good opinions. Very well behaved. Very
8459 respectful. Much approved by the Dean and Chapter.’
8460
8461 ‘The Worshipful the Mayor gives them a character,’ said Mr. Datchery, ‘of
8462 which they may indeed be proud. I would ask His Honour (if I might be
8463 permitted) whether there are not many objects of great interest in the
8464 city which is under his beneficent sway?’
8465
8466 ‘We are, sir,’ returned Mr. Sapsea, ‘an ancient city, and an
8467 ecclesiastical city. We are a constitutional city, as it becomes such a
8468 city to be, and we uphold and maintain our glorious privileges.’
8469
8470 ‘His Honour,’ said Mr. Datchery, bowing, ‘inspires me with a desire to
8471 know more of the city, and confirms me in my inclination to end my days
8472 in the city.’
8473
8474 ‘Retired from the Army, sir?’ suggested Mr. Sapsea.
8475
8476 ‘His Honour the Mayor does me too much credit,’ returned Mr. Datchery.
8477
8478 ‘Navy, sir?’ suggested Mr. Sapsea.
8479
8480 ‘Again,’ repeated Mr. Datchery, ‘His Honour the Mayor does me too much
8481 credit.’
8482
8483 ‘Diplomacy is a fine profession,’ said Mr. Sapsea, as a general remark.
8484
8485 ‘There, I confess, His Honour the Mayor is too many for me,’ said Mr.
8486 Datchery, with an ingenious smile and bow; ‘even a diplomatic bird must
8487 fall to such a gun.’
8488
8489 Now this was very soothing. Here was a gentleman of a great, not to say
8490 a grand, address, accustomed to rank and dignity, really setting a fine
8491 example how to behave to a Mayor. There was something in that
8492 third-person style of being spoken to, that Mr. Sapsea found particularly
8493 recognisant of his merits and position.
8494
8495 ‘But I crave pardon,’ said Mr. Datchery. ‘His Honour the Mayor will bear
8496 with me, if for a moment I have been deluded into occupying his time, and
8497 have forgotten the humble claims upon my own, of my hotel, the Crozier.’
8498
8499 ‘Not at all, sir,’ said Mr. Sapsea. ‘I am returning home, and if you
8500 would like to take the exterior of our Cathedral in your way, I shall be
8501 glad to point it out.’
8502
8503 ‘His Honour the Mayor,’ said Mr. Datchery, ‘is more than kind and
8504 gracious.’
8505
8506 As Mr. Datchery, when he had made his acknowledgments to Mr. Jasper,
8507 could not be induced to go out of the room before the Worshipful, the
8508 Worshipful led the way down-stairs; Mr. Datchery following with his hat
8509 under his arm, and his shock of white hair streaming in the evening
8510 breeze.
8511
8512 ‘Might I ask His Honour,’ said Mr. Datchery, ‘whether that gentleman we
8513 have just left is the gentleman of whom I have heard in the neighbourhood
8514 as being much afflicted by the loss of a nephew, and concentrating his
8515 life on avenging the loss?’
8516
8517 ‘That is the gentleman. John Jasper, sir.’
8518
8519 ‘Would His Honour allow me to inquire whether there are strong suspicions
8520 of any one?’
8521
8522 ‘More than suspicions, sir,’ returned Mr. Sapsea; ‘all but certainties.’
8523
8524 ‘Only think now!’ cried Mr. Datchery.
8525
8526 ‘But proof, sir, proof must be built up stone by stone,’ said the Mayor.
8527 ‘As I say, the end crowns the work. It is not enough that justice should
8528 be morally certain; she must be immorally certain—legally, that is.’
8529
8530 ‘His Honour,’ said Mr. Datchery, ‘reminds me of the nature of the law.
8531 Immoral. How true!’
8532
8533 ‘As I say, sir,’ pompously went on the Mayor, ‘the arm of the law is a
8534 strong arm, and a long arm. That is the may I put it. A strong arm and
8535 a long arm.’
8536
8537 ‘How forcible!—And yet, again, how true!’ murmured Mr. Datchery.
8538
8539 ‘And without betraying, what I call the secrets of the prison-house,’
8540 said Mr. Sapsea; ‘the secrets of the prison-house is the term I used on
8541 the bench.’
8542
8543 ‘And what other term than His Honour’s would express it?’ said Mr.
8544 Datchery.
8545
8546 ‘Without, I say, betraying them, I predict to you, knowing the iron will
8547 of the gentleman we have just left (I take the bold step of calling it
8548 iron, on account of its strength), that in this case the long arm will
8549 reach, and the strong arm will strike.—This is our Cathedral, sir. The
8550 best judges are pleased to admire it, and the best among our townsmen own
8551 to being a little vain of it.’
8552
8553 All this time Mr. Datchery had walked with his hat under his arm, and his
8554 white hair streaming. He had an odd momentary appearance upon him of
8555 having forgotten his hat, when Mr. Sapsea now touched it; and he clapped
8556 his hand up to his head as if with some vague expectation of finding
8557 another hat upon it.
8558
8559 ‘Pray be covered, sir,’ entreated Mr. Sapsea; magnificently plying: ‘I
8560 shall not mind it, I assure you.’
8561
8562 ‘His Honour is very good, but I do it for coolness,’ said Mr. Datchery.
8563
8564 Then Mr. Datchery admired the Cathedral, and Mr. Sapsea pointed it out as
8565 if he himself had invented and built it: there were a few details indeed
8566 of which he did not approve, but those he glossed over, as if the workmen
8567 had made mistakes in his absence. The Cathedral disposed of, he led the
8568 way by the churchyard, and stopped to extol the beauty of the evening—by
8569 chance—in the immediate vicinity of Mrs. Sapsea’s epitaph.
8570
8571 ‘And by the by,’ said Mr. Sapsea, appearing to descend from an elevation
8572 to remember it all of a sudden; like Apollo shooting down from Olympus to
8573 pick up his forgotten lyre; ‘_that_ is one of our small lions. The
8574 partiality of our people has made it so, and strangers have been seen
8575 taking a copy of it now and then. I am not a judge of it myself, for it
8576 is a little work of my own. But it was troublesome to turn, sir; I may
8577 say, difficult to turn with elegance.’
8578
8579 Mr. Datchery became so ecstatic over Mr. Sapsea’s composition, that, in
8580 spite of his intention to end his days in Cloisterham, and therefore his
8581 probably having in reserve many opportunities of copying it, he would
8582 have transcribed it into his pocket-book on the spot, but for the
8583 slouching towards them of its material producer and perpetuator, Durdles,
8584 whom Mr. Sapsea hailed, not sorry to show him a bright example of
8585 behaviour to superiors.
8586
8587 ‘Ah, Durdles! This is the mason, sir; one of our Cloisterham worthies;
8588 everybody here knows Durdles. Mr. Datchery, Durdles a gentleman who is
8589 going to settle here.’
8590
8591 ‘I wouldn’t do it if I was him,’ growled Durdles. ‘We’re a heavy lot.’
8592
8593 ‘You surely don’t speak for yourself, Mr. Durdles,’ returned Mr.
8594 Datchery, ‘any more than for His Honour.’
8595
8596 ‘Who’s His Honour?’ demanded Durdles.
8597
8598 ‘His Honour the Mayor.’
8599
8600 ‘I never was brought afore him,’ said Durdles, with anything but the look
8601 of a loyal subject of the mayoralty, ‘and it’ll be time enough for me to
8602 Honour him when I am. Until which, and when, and where,
8603
8604 “Mister Sapsea is his name,
8605 England is his nation,
8606 Cloisterham’s his dwelling-place,
8607 Aukshneer’s his occupation.”’
8608
8609 Here, Deputy (preceded by a flying oyster-shell) appeared upon the scene,
8610 and requested to have the sum of threepence instantly ‘chucked’ to him by
8611 Mr. Durdles, whom he had been vainly seeking up and down, as lawful wages
8612 overdue. While that gentleman, with his bundle under his arm, slowly
8613 found and counted out the money, Mr. Sapsea informed the new settler of
8614 Durdles’s habits, pursuits, abode, and reputation. ‘I suppose a curious
8615 stranger might come to see you, and your works, Mr. Durdles, at any odd
8616 time?’ said Mr. Datchery upon that.
8617
8618 ‘Any gentleman is welcome to come and see me any evening if he brings
8619 liquor for two with him,’ returned Durdles, with a penny between his
8620 teeth and certain halfpence in his hands; ‘or if he likes to make it
8621 twice two, he’ll be doubly welcome.’
8622
8623 ‘I shall come. Master Deputy, what do you owe me?’
8624
8625 ‘A job.’
8626
8627 ‘Mind you pay me honestly with the job of showing me Mr. Durdles’s house
8628 when I want to go there.’
8629
8630 Deputy, with a piercing broadside of whistle through the whole gap in his
8631 mouth, as a receipt in full for all arrears, vanished.
8632
8633 The Worshipful and the Worshipper then passed on together until they
8634 parted, with many ceremonies, at the Worshipful’s door; even then the
8635 Worshipper carried his hat under his arm, and gave his streaming white
8636 hair to the breeze.
8637
8638 Said Mr. Datchery to himself that night, as he looked at his white hair
8639 in the gas-lighted looking-glass over the coffee-room chimneypiece at the
8640 Crozier, and shook it out: ‘For a single buffer, of an easy temper,
8641 living idly on his means, I have had a rather busy afternoon!’
8642
8643
8644
8645
8646 CHAPTER XIX—SHADOW ON THE SUN-DIAL
8647
8648
8649 Again Miss Twinkleton has delivered her valedictory address, with the
8650 accompaniments of white-wine and pound-cake, and again the young ladies
8651 have departed to their several homes. Helena Landless has left the Nuns’
8652 House to attend her brother’s fortunes, and pretty Rosa is alone.
8653
8654 Cloisterham is so bright and sunny in these summer days, that the
8655 Cathedral and the monastery-ruin show as if their strong walls were
8656 transparent. A soft glow seems to shine from within them, rather than
8657 upon them from without, such is their mellowness as they look forth on
8658 the hot corn-fields and the smoking roads that distantly wind among them.
8659 The Cloisterham gardens blush with ripening fruit. Time was when
8660 travel-stained pilgrims rode in clattering parties through the city’s
8661 welcome shades; time is when wayfarers, leading a gipsy life between
8662 haymaking time and harvest, and looking as if they were just made of the
8663 dust of the earth, so very dusty are they, lounge about on cool
8664 door-steps, trying to mend their unmendable shoes, or giving them to the
8665 city kennels as a hopeless job, and seeking others in the bundles that
8666 they carry, along with their yet unused sickles swathed in bands of
8667 straw. At all the more public pumps there is much cooling of bare feet,
8668 together with much bubbling and gurgling of drinking with hand to spout
8669 on the part of these Bedouins; the Cloisterham police meanwhile looking
8670 askant from their beats with suspicion, and manifest impatience that the
8671 intruders should depart from within the civic bounds, and once more fry
8672 themselves on the simmering high-roads.
8673
8674 On the afternoon of such a day, when the last Cathedral service is done,
8675 and when that side of the High Street on which the Nuns’ House stands is
8676 in grateful shade, save where its quaint old garden opens to the west
8677 between the boughs of trees, a servant informs Rosa, to her terror, that
8678 Mr. Jasper desires to see her.
8679
8680 If he had chosen his time for finding her at a disadvantage, he could
8681 have done no better. Perhaps he has chosen it. Helena Landless is gone,
8682 Mrs. Tisher is absent on leave, Miss Twinkleton (in her amateur state of
8683 existence) has contributed herself and a veal pie to a picnic.
8684
8685 ‘O why, why, why, did you say I was at home!’ cried Rosa, helplessly.
8686
8687 The maid replies, that Mr. Jasper never asked the question.
8688
8689 That he said he knew she was at home, and begged she might be told that
8690 he asked to see her.
8691
8692 ‘What shall I do! what shall I do!’ thinks Rosa, clasping her hands.
8693
8694 Possessed by a kind of desperation, she adds in the next breath, that she
8695 will come to Mr. Jasper in the garden. She shudders at the thought of
8696 being shut up with him in the house; but many of its windows command the
8697 garden, and she can be seen as well as heard there, and can shriek in the
8698 free air and run away. Such is the wild idea that flutters through her
8699 mind.
8700
8701 She has never seen him since the fatal night, except when she was
8702 questioned before the Mayor, and then he was present in gloomy
8703 watchfulness, as representing his lost nephew and burning to avenge him.
8704 She hangs her garden-hat on her arm, and goes out. The moment she sees
8705 him from the porch, leaning on the sun-dial, the old horrible feeling of
8706 being compelled by him, asserts its hold upon her. She feels that she
8707 would even then go back, but that he draws her feet towards him. She
8708 cannot resist, and sits down, with her head bent, on the garden-seat
8709 beside the sun-dial. She cannot look up at him for abhorrence, but she
8710 has perceived that he is dressed in deep mourning. So is she. It was
8711 not so at first; but the lost has long been given up, and mourned for, as
8712 dead.
8713
8714 He would begin by touching her hand. She feels the intention, and draws
8715 her hand back. His eyes are then fixed upon her, she knows, though her
8716 own see nothing but the grass.
8717
8718 ‘I have been waiting,’ he begins, ‘for some time, to be summoned back to
8719 my duty near you.’
8720
8721 After several times forming her lips, which she knows he is closely
8722 watching, into the shape of some other hesitating reply, and then into
8723 none, she answers: ‘Duty, sir?’
8724
8725 ‘The duty of teaching you, serving you as your faithful music-master.’
8726
8727 ‘I have left off that study.’
8728
8729 ‘Not left off, I think. Discontinued. I was told by your guardian that
8730 you discontinued it under the shock that we have all felt so acutely.
8731 When will you resume?’
8732
8733 ‘Never, sir.’
8734
8735 ‘Never? You could have done no more if you had loved my dear boy.’
8736
8737 ‘I did love him!’ cried Rosa, with a flash of anger.
8738
8739 ‘Yes; but not quite—not quite in the right way, shall I say? Not in the
8740 intended and expected way. Much as my dear boy was, unhappily, too
8741 self-conscious and self-satisfied (I’ll draw no parallel between him and
8742 you in that respect) to love as he should have loved, or as any one in
8743 his place would have loved—must have loved!’
8744
8745 She sits in the same still attitude, but shrinking a little more.
8746
8747 ‘Then, to be told that you discontinued your study with me, was to be
8748 politely told that you abandoned it altogether?’ he suggested.
8749
8750 ‘Yes,’ says Rosa, with sudden spirit, ‘The politeness was my guardian’s,
8751 not mine. I told him that I was resolved to leave off, and that I was
8752 determined to stand by my resolution.’
8753
8754 ‘And you still are?’
8755
8756 ‘I still am, sir. And I beg not to be questioned any more about it. At
8757 all events, I will not answer any more; I have that in my power.’
8758
8759 She is so conscious of his looking at her with a gloating admiration of
8760 the touch of anger on her, and the fire and animation it brings with it,
8761 that even as her spirit rises, it falls again, and she struggles with a
8762 sense of shame, affront, and fear, much as she did that night at the
8763 piano.
8764
8765 ‘I will not question you any more, since you object to it so much; I will
8766 confess—’
8767
8768 ‘I do not wish to hear you, sir,’ cries Rosa, rising.
8769
8770 This time he does touch her with his outstretched hand. In shrinking
8771 from it, she shrinks into her seat again.
8772
8773 ‘We must sometimes act in opposition to our wishes,’ he tells her in a
8774 low voice. ‘You must do so now, or do more harm to others than you can
8775 ever set right.’
8776
8777 ‘What harm?’
8778
8779 ‘Presently, presently. You question _me_, you see, and surely that’s not
8780 fair when you forbid me to question you. Nevertheless, I will answer the
8781 question presently. Dearest Rosa! Charming Rosa!’
8782
8783 She starts up again.
8784
8785 This time he does not touch her. But his face looks so wicked and
8786 menacing, as he stands leaning against the sun-dial-setting, as it were,
8787 his black mark upon the very face of day—that her flight is arrested by
8788 horror as she looks at him.
8789
8790 ‘I do not forget how many windows command a view of us,’ he says,
8791 glancing towards them. ‘I will not touch you again; I will come no
8792 nearer to you than I am. Sit down, and there will be no mighty wonder in
8793 your music-master’s leaning idly against a pedestal and speaking with
8794 you, remembering all that has happened, and our shares in it. Sit down,
8795 my beloved.’
8796
8797 She would have gone once more—was all but gone—and once more his face,
8798 darkly threatening what would follow if she went, has stopped her.
8799 Looking at him with the expression of the instant frozen on her face, she
8800 sits down on the seat again.
8801
8802 ‘Rosa, even when my dear boy was affianced to you, I loved you madly;
8803 even when I thought his happiness in having you for his wife was certain,
8804 I loved you madly; even when I strove to make him more ardently devoted
8805 to you, I loved you madly; even when he gave me the picture of your
8806 lovely face so carelessly traduced by him, which I feigned to hang always
8807 in my sight for his sake, but worshipped in torment for years, I loved
8808 you madly; in the distasteful work of the day, in the wakeful misery of
8809 the night, girded by sordid realities, or wandering through Paradises and
8810 Hells of visions into which I rushed, carrying your image in my arms, I
8811 loved you madly.’
8812
8813 If anything could make his words more hideous to her than they are in
8814 themselves, it would be the contrast between the violence of his look and
8815 delivery, and the composure of his assumed attitude.
8816
8817 ‘I endured it all in silence. So long as you were his, or so long as I
8818 supposed you to be his, I hid my secret loyally. Did I not?’
8819
8820 This lie, so gross, while the mere words in which it is told are so true,
8821 is more than Rosa can endure. She answers with kindling indignation:
8822 ‘You were as false throughout, sir, as you are now. You were false to
8823 him, daily and hourly. You know that you made my life unhappy by your
8824 pursuit of me. You know that you made me afraid to open his generous
8825 eyes, and that you forced me, for his own trusting, good, good sake, to
8826 keep the truth from him, that you were a bad, bad man!’
8827
8828 His preservation of his easy attitude rendering his working features and
8829 his convulsive hands absolutely diabolical, he returns, with a fierce
8830 extreme of admiration:
8831
8832 ‘How beautiful you are! You are more beautiful in anger than in repose.
8833 I don’t ask you for your love; give me yourself and your hatred; give me
8834 yourself and that pretty rage; give me yourself and that enchanting
8835 scorn; it will be enough for me.’
8836
8837 Impatient tears rise to the eyes of the trembling little beauty, and her
8838 face flames; but as she again rises to leave him in indignation, and seek
8839 protection within the house, he stretches out his hand towards the porch,
8840 as though he invited her to enter it.
8841
8842 ‘I told you, you rare charmer, you sweet witch, that you must stay and
8843 hear me, or do more harm than can ever be undone. You asked me what
8844 harm. Stay, and I will tell you. Go, and I will do it!’
8845
8846 Again Rosa quails before his threatening face, though innocent of its
8847 meaning, and she remains. Her panting breathing comes and goes as if it
8848 would choke her; but with a repressive hand upon her bosom, she remains.
8849
8850 ‘I have made my confession that my love is mad. It is so mad, that had
8851 the ties between me and my dear lost boy been one silken thread less
8852 strong, I might have swept even him from your side, when you favoured
8853 him.’
8854
8855 A film comes over the eyes she raises for an instant, as though he had
8856 turned her faint.
8857
8858 ‘Even him,’ he repeats. ‘Yes, even him! Rosa, you see me and you hear
8859 me. Judge for yourself whether any other admirer shall love you and
8860 live, whose life is in my hand.’
8861
8862 ‘What do you mean, sir?’
8863
8864 ‘I mean to show you how mad my love is. It was hawked through the late
8865 inquiries by Mr. Crisparkle, that young Landless had confessed to him
8866 that he was a rival of my lost boy. That is an inexpiable offence in my
8867 eyes. The same Mr. Crisparkle knows under my hand that I have devoted
8868 myself to the murderer’s discovery and destruction, be he whom he might,
8869 and that I determined to discuss the mystery with no one until I should
8870 hold the clue in which to entangle the murderer as in a net. I have
8871 since worked patiently to wind and wind it round him; and it is slowly
8872 winding as I speak.’
8873
8874 [Picture: Jasper’s sacrifices]
8875
8876 ‘Your belief, if you believe in the criminality of Mr. Landless, is not
8877 Mr. Crisparkle’s belief, and he is a good man,’ Rosa retorts.
8878
8879 ‘My belief is my own; and I reserve it, worshipped of my soul!
8880 Circumstances may accumulate so strongly _even against an innocent man_,
8881 that directed, sharpened, and pointed, they may slay him. One wanting
8882 link discovered by perseverance against a guilty man, proves his guilt,
8883 however slight its evidence before, and he dies. Young Landless stands
8884 in deadly peril either way.’
8885
8886 ‘If you really suppose,’ Rosa pleads with him, turning paler, ‘that I
8887 favour Mr. Landless, or that Mr. Landless has ever in any way addressed
8888 himself to me, you are wrong.’
8889
8890 He puts that from him with a slighting action of his hand and a curled
8891 lip.
8892
8893 ‘I was going to show you how madly I love you. More madly now than ever,
8894 for I am willing to renounce the second object that has arisen in my life
8895 to divide it with you; and henceforth to have no object in existence but
8896 you only. Miss Landless has become your bosom friend. You care for her
8897 peace of mind?’
8898
8899 ‘I love her dearly.’
8900
8901 ‘You care for her good name?’
8902
8903 ‘I have said, sir, I love her dearly.’
8904
8905 ‘I am unconsciously,’ he observes with a smile, as he folds his hands
8906 upon the sun-dial and leans his chin upon them, so that his talk would
8907 seem from the windows (faces occasionally come and go there) to be of the
8908 airiest and playfullest—‘I am unconsciously giving offence by questioning
8909 again. I will simply make statements, therefore, and not put questions.
8910 You do care for your bosom friend’s good name, and you do care for her
8911 peace of mind. Then remove the shadow of the gallows from her, dear
8912 one!’
8913
8914 ‘You dare propose to me to—’
8915
8916 ‘Darling, I dare propose to you. Stop there. If it be bad to idolise
8917 you, I am the worst of men; if it be good, I am the best. My love for
8918 you is above all other love, and my truth to you is above all other
8919 truth. Let me have hope and favour, and I am a forsworn man for your
8920 sake.’
8921
8922 Rosa puts her hands to her temples, and, pushing back her hair, looks
8923 wildly and abhorrently at him, as though she were trying to piece
8924 together what it is his deep purpose to present to her only in fragments.
8925
8926 ‘Reckon up nothing at this moment, angel, but the sacrifices that I lay
8927 at those dear feet, which I could fall down among the vilest ashes and
8928 kiss, and put upon my head as a poor savage might. There is my fidelity
8929 to my dear boy after death. Tread upon it!’
8930
8931 With an action of his hands, as though he cast down something precious.
8932
8933 ‘There is the inexpiable offence against my adoration of you. Spurn it!’
8934
8935 With a similar action.
8936
8937 ‘There are my labours in the cause of a just vengeance for six toiling
8938 months. Crush them!’
8939
8940 With another repetition of the action.
8941
8942 ‘There is my past and my present wasted life. There is the desolation of
8943 my heart and my soul. There is my peace; there is my despair. Stamp
8944 them into the dust; so that you take me, were it even mortally hating
8945 me!’
8946
8947 The frightful vehemence of the man, now reaching its full height, so
8948 additionally terrifies her as to break the spell that has held her to the
8949 spot. She swiftly moves towards the porch; but in an instant he is at
8950 her side, and speaking in her ear.
8951
8952 ‘Rosa, I am self-repressed again. I am walking calmly beside you to the
8953 house. I shall wait for some encouragement and hope. I shall not strike
8954 too soon. Give me a sign that you attend to me.’
8955
8956 She slightly and constrainedly moves her hand.
8957
8958 ‘Not a word of this to any one, or it will bring down the blow, as
8959 certainly as night follows day. Another sign that you attend to me.’
8960
8961 She moves her hand once more.
8962
8963 ‘I love you, love you, love you! If you were to cast me off now—but you
8964 will not—you would never be rid of me. No one should come between us. I
8965 would pursue you to the death.’
8966
8967 The handmaid coming out to open the gate for him, he quietly pulls off
8968 his hat as a parting salute, and goes away with no greater show of
8969 agitation than is visible in the effigy of Mr. Sapsea’s father opposite.
8970 Rosa faints in going up-stairs, and is carefully carried to her room and
8971 laid down on her bed. A thunderstorm is coming on, the maids say, and
8972 the hot and stifling air has overset the pretty dear: no wonder; they
8973 have felt their own knees all of a tremble all day long.
8974
8975
8976
8977
8978 CHAPTER XX—A FLIGHT
8979
8980
8981 Rosa no sooner came to herself than the whole of the late interview was
8982 before her. It even seemed as if it had pursued her into her
8983 insensibility, and she had not had a moment’s unconsciousness of it.
8984 What to do, she was at a frightened loss to know: the only one clear
8985 thought in her mind was, that she must fly from this terrible man.
8986
8987 But where could she take refuge, and how could she go? She had never
8988 breathed her dread of him to any one but Helena. If she went to Helena,
8989 and told her what had passed, that very act might bring down the
8990 irreparable mischief that he threatened he had the power, and that she
8991 knew he had the will, to do. The more fearful he appeared to her excited
8992 memory and imagination, the more alarming her responsibility appeared;
8993 seeing that a slight mistake on her part, either in action or delay,
8994 might let his malevolence loose on Helena’s brother.
8995
8996 Rosa’s mind throughout the last six months had been stormily confused. A
8997 half-formed, wholly unexpressed suspicion tossed in it, now heaving
8998 itself up, and now sinking into the deep; now gaining palpability, and
8999 now losing it. Jasper’s self-absorption in his nephew when he was alive,
9000 and his unceasing pursuit of the inquiry how he came by his death, if he
9001 were dead, were themes so rife in the place, that no one appeared able to
9002 suspect the possibility of foul play at his hands. She had asked herself
9003 the question, ‘Am I so wicked in my thoughts as to conceive a wickedness
9004 that others cannot imagine?’ Then she had considered, Did the suspicion
9005 come of her previous recoiling from him before the fact? And if so, was
9006 not that a proof of its baselessness? Then she had reflected, ‘What
9007 motive could he have, according to my accusation?’ She was ashamed to
9008 answer in her mind, ‘The motive of gaining _me_!’ And covered her face,
9009 as if the lightest shadow of the idea of founding murder on such an idle
9010 vanity were a crime almost as great.
9011
9012 She ran over in her mind again, all that he had said by the sun-dial in
9013 the garden. He had persisted in treating the disappearance as murder,
9014 consistently with his whole public course since the finding of the watch
9015 and shirt-pin. If he were afraid of the crime being traced out, would he
9016 not rather encourage the idea of a voluntary disappearance? He had even
9017 declared that if the ties between him and his nephew had been less
9018 strong, he might have swept ‘even him’ away from her side. Was that like
9019 his having really done so? He had spoken of laying his six months’
9020 labours in the cause of a just vengeance at her feet. Would he have done
9021 that, with that violence of passion, if they were a pretence? Would he
9022 have ranged them with his desolate heart and soul, his wasted life, his
9023 peace and his despair? The very first sacrifice that he represented
9024 himself as making for her, was his fidelity to his dear boy after death.
9025 Surely these facts were strong against a fancy that scarcely dared to
9026 hint itself. And yet he was so terrible a man! In short, the poor girl
9027 (for what could she know of the criminal intellect, which its own
9028 professed students perpetually misread, because they persist in trying to
9029 reconcile it with the average intellect of average men, instead of
9030 identifying it as a horrible wonder apart) could get by no road to any
9031 other conclusion than that he _was_ a terrible man, and must be fled
9032 from.
9033
9034 She had been Helena’s stay and comfort during the whole time. She had
9035 constantly assured her of her full belief in her brother’s innocence, and
9036 of her sympathy with him in his misery. But she had never seen him since
9037 the disappearance, nor had Helena ever spoken one word of his avowal to
9038 Mr. Crisparkle in regard of Rosa, though as a part of the interest of the
9039 case it was well known far and wide. He was Helena’s unfortunate
9040 brother, to her, and nothing more. The assurance she had given her
9041 odious suitor was strictly true, though it would have been better (she
9042 considered now) if she could have restrained herself from so giving it.
9043 Afraid of him as the bright and delicate little creature was, her spirit
9044 swelled at the thought of his knowing it from her own lips.
9045
9046 But where was she to go? Anywhere beyond his reach, was no reply to the
9047 question. Somewhere must be thought of. She determined to go to her
9048 guardian, and to go immediately. The feeling she had imparted to Helena
9049 on the night of their first confidence, was so strong upon her—the
9050 feeling of not being safe from him, and of the solid walls of the old
9051 convent being powerless to keep out his ghostly following of her—that no
9052 reasoning of her own could calm her terrors. The fascination of
9053 repulsion had been upon her so long, and now culminated so darkly, that
9054 she felt as if he had power to bind her by a spell. Glancing out at
9055 window, even now, as she rose to dress, the sight of the sun-dial on
9056 which he had leaned when he declared himself, turned her cold, and made
9057 her shrink from it, as though he had invested it with some awful quality
9058 from his own nature.
9059
9060 She wrote a hurried note to Miss Twinkleton, saying that she had sudden
9061 reason for wishing to see her guardian promptly, and had gone to him;
9062 also, entreating the good lady not to be uneasy, for all was well with
9063 her. She hurried a few quite useless articles into a very little bag,
9064 left the note in a conspicuous place, and went out, softly closing the
9065 gate after her.
9066
9067 It was the first time she had ever been even in Cloisterham High Street
9068 alone. But knowing all its ways and windings very well, she hurried
9069 straight to the corner from which the omnibus departed. It was, at that
9070 very moment, going off.
9071
9072 ‘Stop and take me, if you please, Joe. I am obliged to go to London.’
9073
9074 In less than another minute she was on her road to the railway, under
9075 Joe’s protection. Joe waited on her when she got there, put her safely
9076 into the railway carriage, and handed in the very little bag after her,
9077 as though it were some enormous trunk, hundredweights heavy, which she
9078 must on no account endeavour to lift.
9079
9080 ‘Can you go round when you get back, and tell Miss Twinkleton that you
9081 saw me safely off, Joe?’
9082
9083 ‘It shall be done, Miss.’
9084
9085 ‘With my love, please, Joe.’
9086
9087 ‘Yes, Miss—and I wouldn’t mind having it myself!’ But Joe did not
9088 articulate the last clause; only thought it.
9089
9090 Now that she was whirling away for London in real earnest, Rosa was at
9091 leisure to resume the thoughts which her personal hurry had checked. The
9092 indignant thought that his declaration of love soiled her; that she could
9093 only be cleansed from the stain of its impurity by appealing to the
9094 honest and true; supported her for a time against her fears, and
9095 confirmed her in her hasty resolution. But as the evening grew darker
9096 and darker, and the great city impended nearer and nearer, the doubts
9097 usual in such cases began to arise. Whether this was not a wild
9098 proceeding, after all; how Mr. Grewgious might regard it; whether she
9099 should find him at the journey’s end; how she would act if he were
9100 absent; what might become of her, alone, in a place so strange and
9101 crowded; how if she had but waited and taken counsel first; whether, if
9102 she could now go back, she would not do it thankfully; a multitude of
9103 such uneasy speculations disturbed her, more and more as they
9104 accumulated. At length the train came into London over the housetops;
9105 and down below lay the gritty streets with their yet un-needed lamps
9106 a-glow, on a hot, light, summer night.
9107
9108 ‘Hiram Grewgious, Esquire, Staple Inn, London.’ This was all Rosa knew
9109 of her destination; but it was enough to send her rattling away again in
9110 a cab, through deserts of gritty streets, where many people crowded at
9111 the corner of courts and byways to get some air, and where many other
9112 people walked with a miserably monotonous noise of shuffling of feet on
9113 hot paving-stones, and where all the people and all their surroundings
9114 were so gritty and so shabby!
9115
9116 There was music playing here and there, but it did not enliven the case.
9117 No barrel-organ mended the matter, and no big drum beat dull care away.
9118 Like the chapel bells that were also going here and there, they only
9119 seemed to evoke echoes from brick surfaces, and dust from everything. As
9120 to the flat wind-instruments, they seemed to have cracked their hearts
9121 and souls in pining for the country.
9122
9123 Her jingling conveyance stopped at last at a fast-closed gateway, which
9124 appeared to belong to somebody who had gone to bed very early, and was
9125 much afraid of housebreakers; Rosa, discharging her conveyance, timidly
9126 knocked at this gateway, and was let in, very little bag and all, by a
9127 watchman.
9128
9129 ‘Does Mr. Grewgious live here?’
9130
9131 ‘Mr. Grewgious lives there, Miss,’ said the watchman, pointing further
9132 in.
9133
9134 So Rosa went further in, and, when the clocks were striking ten, stood on
9135 P. J. T.’s doorsteps, wondering what P. J. T. had done with his
9136 street-door.
9137
9138 Guided by the painted name of Mr. Grewgious, she went up-stairs and
9139 softly tapped and tapped several times. But no one answering, and Mr.
9140 Grewgious’s door-handle yielding to her touch, she went in, and saw her
9141 guardian sitting on a window-seat at an open window, with a shaded lamp
9142 placed far from him on a table in a corner.
9143
9144 Rosa drew nearer to him in the twilight of the room. He saw her, and he
9145 said, in an undertone: ‘Good Heaven!’
9146
9147 Rosa fell upon his neck, with tears, and then he said, returning her
9148 embrace:
9149
9150 ‘My child, my child! I thought you were your mother!—But what, what,
9151 what,’ he added, soothingly, ‘has happened? My dear, what has brought
9152 you here? Who has brought you here?’
9153
9154 ‘No one. I came alone.’
9155
9156 ‘Lord bless me!’ ejaculated Mr. Grewgious. ‘Came alone! Why didn’t you
9157 write to me to come and fetch you?’
9158
9159 ‘I had no time. I took a sudden resolution. Poor, poor Eddy!’
9160
9161 ‘Ah, poor fellow, poor fellow!’
9162
9163 ‘His uncle has made love to me. I cannot bear it,’ said Rosa, at once
9164 with a burst of tears, and a stamp of her little foot; ‘I shudder with
9165 horror of him, and I have come to you to protect me and all of us from
9166 him, if you will?’
9167
9168 ‘I will,’ cried Mr. Grewgious, with a sudden rush of amazing energy.
9169 ‘Damn him!
9170
9171 “Confound his politics!
9172 Frustrate his knavish tricks!
9173 On Thee his hopes to fix?
9174 Damn him again!”’
9175
9176 After this most extraordinary outburst, Mr. Grewgious, quite beside
9177 himself, plunged about the room, to all appearance undecided whether he
9178 was in a fit of loyal enthusiasm, or combative denunciation.
9179
9180 He stopped and said, wiping his face: ‘I beg your pardon, my dear, but
9181 you will be glad to know I feel better. Tell me no more just now, or I
9182 might do it again. You must be refreshed and cheered. What did you take
9183 last? Was it breakfast, lunch, dinner, tea, or supper? And what will
9184 you take next? Shall it be breakfast, lunch, dinner, tea, or supper?’
9185
9186 The respectful tenderness with which, on one knee before her, he helped
9187 her to remove her hat, and disentangle her pretty hair from it, was quite
9188 a chivalrous sight. Yet who, knowing him only on the surface, would have
9189 expected chivalry—and of the true sort, too; not the spurious—from Mr.
9190 Grewgious?
9191
9192 ‘Your rest too must be provided for,’ he went on; ‘and you shall have the
9193 prettiest chamber in Furnival’s. Your toilet must be provided for, and
9194 you shall have everything that an unlimited head chambermaid—by which
9195 expression I mean a head chambermaid not limited as to outlay—can
9196 procure. Is that a bag?’ he looked hard at it; sooth to say, it required
9197 hard looking at to be seen at all in a dimly lighted room: ‘and is it
9198 your property, my dear?’
9199
9200 ‘Yes, sir. I brought it with me.’
9201
9202 ‘It is not an extensive bag,’ said Mr. Grewgious, candidly, ‘though
9203 admirably calculated to contain a day’s provision for a canary-bird.
9204 Perhaps you brought a canary-bird?’
9205
9206 Rosa smiled and shook her head.
9207
9208 ‘If you had, he should have been made welcome,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘and
9209 I think he would have been pleased to be hung upon a nail outside and pit
9210 himself against our Staple sparrows; whose execution must be admitted to
9211 be not quite equal to their intention. Which is the case with so many of
9212 us! You didn’t say what meal, my dear. Have a nice jumble of all
9213 meals.’
9214
9215 Rosa thanked him, but said she could only take a cup of tea. Mr.
9216 Grewgious, after several times running out, and in again, to mention such
9217 supplementary items as marmalade, eggs, watercresses, salted fish, and
9218 frizzled ham, ran across to Furnival’s without his hat, to give his
9219 various directions. And soon afterwards they were realised in practice,
9220 and the board was spread.
9221
9222 ‘Lord bless my soul,’ cried Mr. Grewgious, putting the lamp upon it, and
9223 taking his seat opposite Rosa; ‘what a new sensation for a poor old
9224 Angular bachelor, to be sure!’
9225
9226 [Picture: Mr. Grewgious experiences a new sensation]
9227
9228 Rosa’s expressive little eyebrows asked him what he meant?
9229
9230 ‘The sensation of having a sweet young presence in the place, that
9231 whitewashes it, paints it, papers it, decorates it with gilding, and
9232 makes it Glorious!’ said Mr. Grewgious. ‘Ah me! Ah me!’
9233
9234 As there was something mournful in his sigh, Rosa, in touching him with
9235 her tea-cup, ventured to touch him with her small hand too.
9236
9237 ‘Thank you, my dear,’ said Mr. Grewgious. ‘Ahem! Let’s talk!’
9238
9239 ‘Do you always live here, sir?’ asked Rosa.
9240
9241 ‘Yes, my dear.’
9242
9243 ‘And always alone?’
9244
9245 ‘Always alone; except that I have daily company in a gentleman by the
9246 name of Bazzard, my clerk.’
9247
9248 ‘_He_ doesn’t live here?’
9249
9250 ‘No, he goes his way, after office hours. In fact, he is off duty here,
9251 altogether, just at present; and a firm down-stairs, with which I have
9252 business relations, lend me a substitute. But it would be extremely
9253 difficult to replace Mr. Bazzard.’
9254
9255 ‘He must be very fond of you,’ said Rosa.
9256
9257 ‘He bears up against it with commendable fortitude if he is,’ returned
9258 Mr. Grewgious, after considering the matter. ‘But I doubt if he is. Not
9259 particularly so. You see, he is discontented, poor fellow.’
9260
9261 ‘Why isn’t he contented?’ was the natural inquiry.
9262
9263 ‘Misplaced,’ said Mr. Grewgious, with great mystery.
9264
9265 Rosa’s eyebrows resumed their inquisitive and perplexed expression.
9266
9267 ‘So misplaced,’ Mr. Grewgious went on, ‘that I feel constantly apologetic
9268 towards him. And he feels (though he doesn’t mention it) that I have
9269 reason to be.’
9270
9271 Mr. Grewgious had by this time grown so very mysterious, that Rosa did
9272 not know how to go on. While she was thinking about it Mr. Grewgious
9273 suddenly jerked out of himself for the second time:
9274
9275 ‘Let’s talk. We were speaking of Mr. Bazzard. It’s a secret, and
9276 moreover it is Mr. Bazzard’s secret; but the sweet presence at my table
9277 makes me so unusually expansive, that I feel I must impart it in
9278 inviolable confidence. What do you think Mr. Bazzard has done?’
9279
9280 ‘O dear!’ cried Rosa, drawing her chair a little nearer, and her mind
9281 reverting to Jasper, ‘nothing dreadful, I hope?’
9282
9283 ‘He has written a play,’ said Mr. Grewgious, in a solemn whisper. ‘A
9284 tragedy.’
9285
9286 Rosa seemed much relieved.
9287
9288 ‘And nobody,’ pursued Mr. Grewgious in the same tone, ‘will hear, on any
9289 account whatever, of bringing it out.’
9290
9291 Rosa looked reflective, and nodded her head slowly; as who should say,
9292 ‘Such things are, and why are they!’
9293
9294 ‘Now, you know,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘_I_ couldn’t write a play.’
9295
9296 ‘Not a bad one, sir?’ said Rosa, innocently, with her eyebrows again in
9297 action.
9298
9299 ‘No. If I was under sentence of decapitation, and was about to be
9300 instantly decapitated, and an express arrived with a pardon for the
9301 condemned convict Grewgious if he wrote a play, I should be under the
9302 necessity of resuming the block, and begging the executioner to proceed
9303 to extremities,—meaning,’ said Mr. Grewgious, passing his hand under his
9304 chin, ‘the singular number, and this extremity.’
9305
9306 Rosa appeared to consider what she would do if the awkward supposititious
9307 case were hers.
9308
9309 ‘Consequently,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘Mr. Bazzard would have a sense of my
9310 inferiority to himself under any circumstances; but when I am his master,
9311 you know, the case is greatly aggravated.’
9312
9313 Mr. Grewgious shook his head seriously, as if he felt the offence to be a
9314 little too much, though of his own committing.
9315
9316 ‘How came you to be his master, sir?’ asked Rosa.
9317
9318 ‘A question that naturally follows,’ said Mr. Grewgious. ‘Let’s talk.
9319 Mr. Bazzard’s father, being a Norfolk farmer, would have furiously laid
9320 about him with a flail, a pitch-fork, and every agricultural implement
9321 available for assaulting purposes, on the slightest hint of his son’s
9322 having written a play. So the son, bringing to me the father’s rent
9323 (which I receive), imparted his secret, and pointed out that he was
9324 determined to pursue his genius, and that it would put him in peril of
9325 starvation, and that he was not formed for it.’
9326
9327 ‘For pursuing his genius, sir?’
9328
9329 ‘No, my dear,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘for starvation. It was impossible to
9330 deny the position, that Mr. Bazzard was not formed to be starved, and Mr.
9331 Bazzard then pointed out that it was desirable that I should stand
9332 between him and a fate so perfectly unsuited to his formation. In that
9333 way Mr. Bazzard became my clerk, and he feels it very much.’
9334
9335 ‘I am glad he is grateful,’ said Rosa.
9336
9337 ‘I didn’t quite mean that, my dear. I mean, that he feels the
9338 degradation. There are some other geniuses that Mr. Bazzard has become
9339 acquainted with, who have also written tragedies, which likewise nobody
9340 will on any account whatever hear of bringing out, and these choice
9341 spirits dedicate their plays to one another in a highly panegyrical
9342 manner. Mr. Bazzard has been the subject of one of these dedications.
9343 Now, you know, I never had a play dedicated to _me_!’
9344
9345 Rosa looked at him as if she would have liked him to be the recipient of
9346 a thousand dedications.
9347
9348 ‘Which again, naturally, rubs against the grain of Mr. Bazzard,’ said Mr.
9349 Grewgious. ‘He is very short with me sometimes, and then I feel that he
9350 is meditating, “This blockhead is my master! A fellow who couldn’t write
9351 a tragedy on pain of death, and who will never have one dedicated to him
9352 with the most complimentary congratulations on the high position he has
9353 taken in the eyes of posterity!” Very trying, very trying. However, in
9354 giving him directions, I reflect beforehand: “Perhaps he may not like
9355 this,” or “He might take it ill if I asked that;” and so we get on very
9356 well. Indeed, better than I could have expected.’
9357
9358 ‘Is the tragedy named, sir?’ asked Rosa.
9359
9360 ‘Strictly between ourselves,’ answered Mr. Grewgious, ‘it has a
9361 dreadfully appropriate name. It is called The Thorn of Anxiety. But Mr.
9362 Bazzard hopes—and I hope—that it will come out at last.’
9363
9364 It was not hard to divine that Mr. Grewgious had related the Bazzard
9365 history thus fully, at least quite as much for the recreation of his
9366 ward’s mind from the subject that had driven her there, as for the
9367 gratification of his own tendency to be social and communicative.
9368
9369 ‘And now, my dear,’ he said at this point, ‘if you are not too tired to
9370 tell me more of what passed to-day—but only if you feel quite able—I
9371 should be glad to hear it. I may digest it the better, if I sleep on it
9372 to-night.’
9373
9374 Rosa, composed now, gave him a faithful account of the interview. Mr.
9375 Grewgious often smoothed his head while it was in progress, and begged to
9376 be told a second time those parts which bore on Helena and Neville. When
9377 Rosa had finished, he sat grave, silent, and meditative for a while.
9378
9379 ‘Clearly narrated,’ was his only remark at last, ‘and, I hope, clearly
9380 put away here,’ smoothing his head again. ‘See, my dear,’ taking her to
9381 the open window, ‘where they live! The dark windows over yonder.’
9382
9383 ‘I may go to Helena to-morrow?’ asked Rosa.
9384
9385 ‘I should like to sleep on that question to-night,’ he answered
9386 doubtfully. ‘But let me take you to your own rest, for you must need
9387 it.’
9388
9389 With that Mr. Grewgious helped her to get her hat on again, and hung upon
9390 his arm the very little bag that was of no earthly use, and led her by
9391 the hand (with a certain stately awkwardness, as if he were going to walk
9392 a minuet) across Holborn, and into Furnival’s Inn. At the hotel door, he
9393 confided her to the Unlimited head chambermaid, and said that while she
9394 went up to see her room, he would remain below, in case she should wish
9395 it exchanged for another, or should find that there was anything she
9396 wanted.
9397
9398 Rosa’s room was airy, clean, comfortable, almost gay. The Unlimited had
9399 laid in everything omitted from the very little bag (that is to say,
9400 everything she could possibly need), and Rosa tripped down the great many
9401 stairs again, to thank her guardian for his thoughtful and affectionate
9402 care of her.
9403
9404 ‘Not at all, my dear,’ said Mr. Grewgious, infinitely gratified; ‘it is I
9405 who thank you for your charming confidence and for your charming company.
9406 Your breakfast will be provided for you in a neat, compact, and graceful
9407 little sitting-room (appropriate to your figure), and I will come to you
9408 at ten o’clock in the morning. I hope you don’t feel very strange
9409 indeed, in this strange place.’
9410
9411 ‘O no, I feel so safe!’
9412
9413 ‘Yes, you may be sure that the stairs are fire-proof,’ said Mr.
9414 Grewgious, ‘and that any outbreak of the devouring element would be
9415 perceived and suppressed by the watchmen.’
9416
9417 ‘I did not mean that,’ Rosa replied. ‘I mean, I feel so safe from him.’
9418
9419 ‘There is a stout gate of iron bars to keep him out,’ said Mr. Grewgious,
9420 smiling; ‘and Furnival’s is fire-proof, and specially watched and
9421 lighted, and _I_ live over the way!’ In the stoutness of his
9422 knight-errantry, he seemed to think the last-named protection all
9423 sufficient. In the same spirit he said to the gate-porter as he went
9424 out, ‘If some one staying in the hotel should wish to send across the
9425 road to me in the night, a crown will be ready for the messenger.’ In
9426 the same spirit, he walked up and down outside the iron gate for the best
9427 part of an hour, with some solicitude; occasionally looking in between
9428 the bars, as if he had laid a dove in a high roost in a cage of lions,
9429 and had it on his mind that she might tumble out.
9430
9431
9432
9433
9434 CHAPTER XXI—A RECOGNITION
9435
9436
9437 Nothing occurred in the night to flutter the tired dove; and the dove
9438 arose refreshed. With Mr. Grewgious, when the clock struck ten in the
9439 morning, came Mr. Crisparkle, who had come at one plunge out of the river
9440 at Cloisterham.
9441
9442 ‘Miss Twinkleton was so uneasy, Miss Rosa,’ he explained to her, ‘and
9443 came round to Ma and me with your note, in such a state of wonder, that,
9444 to quiet her, I volunteered on this service by the very first train to be
9445 caught in the morning. I wished at the time that you had come to me; but
9446 now I think it best that you did _as_ you did, and came to your
9447 guardian.’
9448
9449 ‘I did think of you,’ Rosa told him; ‘but Minor Canon Corner was so near
9450 him—’
9451
9452 ‘I understand. It was quite natural.’
9453
9454 ‘I have told Mr. Crisparkle,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘all that you told me
9455 last night, my dear. Of course I should have written it to him
9456 immediately; but his coming was most opportune. And it was particularly
9457 kind of him to come, for he had but just gone.’
9458
9459 ‘Have you settled,’ asked Rosa, appealing to them both, ‘what is to be
9460 done for Helena and her brother?’
9461
9462 ‘Why really,’ said Mr. Crisparkle, ‘I am in great perplexity. If even
9463 Mr. Grewgious, whose head is much longer than mine, and who is a whole
9464 night’s cogitation in advance of me, is undecided, what must I be!’
9465
9466 The Unlimited here put her head in at the door—after having rapped, and
9467 been authorised to present herself—announcing that a gentleman wished for
9468 a word with another gentleman named Crisparkle, if any such gentleman
9469 were there. If no such gentleman were there, he begged pardon for being
9470 mistaken.
9471
9472 ‘Such a gentleman is here,’ said Mr. Crisparkle, ‘but is engaged just
9473 now.’
9474
9475 ‘Is it a dark gentleman?’ interposed Rosa, retreating on her guardian.
9476
9477 ‘No, Miss, more of a brown gentleman.’
9478
9479 ‘You are sure not with black hair?’ asked Rosa, taking courage.
9480
9481 ‘Quite sure of that, Miss. Brown hair and blue eyes.’
9482
9483 ‘Perhaps,’ hinted Mr. Grewgious, with habitual caution, ‘it might be well
9484 to see him, reverend sir, if you don’t object. When one is in a
9485 difficulty or at a loss, one never knows in what direction a way out may
9486 chance to open. It is a business principle of mine, in such a case, not
9487 to close up any direction, but to keep an eye on every direction that may
9488 present itself. I could relate an anecdote in point, but that it would
9489 be premature.’
9490
9491 ‘If Miss Rosa will allow me, then? Let the gentleman come in,’ said Mr.
9492 Crisparkle.
9493
9494 The gentleman came in; apologised, with a frank but modest grace, for not
9495 finding Mr. Crisparkle alone; turned to Mr. Crisparkle, and smilingly
9496 asked the unexpected question: ‘Who am I?’
9497
9498 ‘You are the gentleman I saw smoking under the trees in Staple Inn, a few
9499 minutes ago.’
9500
9501 ‘True. There I saw you. Who else am I?’
9502
9503 Mr. Crisparkle concentrated his attention on a handsome face, much
9504 sunburnt; and the ghost of some departed boy seemed to rise, gradually
9505 and dimly, in the room.
9506
9507 The gentleman saw a struggling recollection lighten up the Minor Canon’s
9508 features, and smiling again, said: ‘What will you have for breakfast this
9509 morning? You are out of jam.’
9510
9511 ‘Wait a moment!’ cried Mr. Crisparkle, raising his right hand. ‘Give me
9512 another instant! Tartar!’
9513
9514 The two shook hands with the greatest heartiness, and then went the
9515 wonderful length—for Englishmen—of laying their hands each on the other’s
9516 shoulders, and looking joyfully each into the other’s face.
9517
9518 ‘My old fag!’ said Mr. Crisparkle.
9519
9520 ‘My old master!’ said Mr. Tartar.
9521
9522 ‘You saved me from drowning!’ said Mr. Crisparkle.
9523
9524 ‘After which you took to swimming, you know!’ said Mr. Tartar.
9525
9526 ‘God bless my soul!’ said Mr. Crisparkle.
9527
9528 ‘Amen!’ said Mr. Tartar.
9529
9530 And then they fell to shaking hands most heartily again.
9531
9532 ‘Imagine,’ exclaimed Mr. Crisparkle, with glistening eyes: ‘Miss Rosa Bud
9533 and Mr. Grewgious, imagine Mr. Tartar, when he was the smallest of
9534 juniors, diving for me, catching me, a big heavy senior, by the hair of
9535 the head, and striking out for the shore with me like a water-giant!’
9536
9537 ‘Imagine my not letting him sink, as I was his fag!’ said Mr. Tartar.
9538 ‘But the truth being that he was my best protector and friend, and did me
9539 more good than all the masters put together, an irrational impulse seized
9540 me to pick him up, or go down with him.’
9541
9542 ‘Hem! Permit me, sir, to have the honour,’ said Mr. Grewgious, advancing
9543 with extended hand, ‘for an honour I truly esteem it. I am proud to make
9544 your acquaintance. I hope you didn’t take cold. I hope you were not
9545 inconvenienced by swallowing too much water. How have you been since?’
9546
9547 It was by no means apparent that Mr. Grewgious knew what he said, though
9548 it was very apparent that he meant to say something highly friendly and
9549 appreciative.
9550
9551 If Heaven, Rosa thought, had but sent such courage and skill to her poor
9552 mother’s aid! And he to have been so slight and young then!
9553
9554 ‘I don’t wish to be complimented upon it, I thank you; but I think I have
9555 an idea,’ Mr. Grewgious announced, after taking a jog-trot or two across
9556 the room, so unexpected and unaccountable that they all stared at him,
9557 doubtful whether he was choking or had the cramp—‘I _think_ I have an
9558 idea. I believe I have had the pleasure of seeing Mr. Tartar’s name as
9559 tenant of the top set in the house next the top set in the corner?’
9560
9561 ‘Yes, sir,’ returned Mr. Tartar. ‘You are right so far.’
9562
9563 ‘I am right so far,’ said Mr. Grewgious. ‘Tick that off;’ which he did,
9564 with his right thumb on his left. ‘Might you happen to know the name of
9565 your neighbour in the top set on the other side of the party-wall?’
9566 coming very close to Mr. Tartar, to lose nothing of his face, in his
9567 shortness of sight.
9568
9569 ‘Landless.’
9570
9571 ‘Tick that off,’ said Mr. Grewgious, taking another trot, and then coming
9572 back. ‘No personal knowledge, I suppose, sir?’
9573
9574 ‘Slight, but some.’
9575
9576 ‘Tick that off,’ said Mr. Grewgious, taking another trot, and again
9577 coming back. ‘Nature of knowledge, Mr. Tartar?’
9578
9579 ‘I thought he seemed to be a young fellow in a poor way, and I asked his
9580 leave—only within a day or so—to share my flowers up there with him; that
9581 is to say, to extend my flower-garden to his windows.’
9582
9583 ‘Would you have the kindness to take seats?’ said Mr. Grewgious. ‘I
9584 _have_ an idea!’
9585
9586 They complied; Mr. Tartar none the less readily, for being all abroad;
9587 and Mr. Grewgious, seated in the centre, with his hands upon his knees,
9588 thus stated his idea, with his usual manner of having got the statement
9589 by heart.
9590
9591 ‘I cannot as yet make up my mind whether it is prudent to hold open
9592 communication under present circumstances, and on the part of the fair
9593 member of the present company, with Mr. Neville or Miss Helena. I have
9594 reason to know that a local friend of ours (on whom I beg to bestow a
9595 passing but a hearty malediction, with the kind permission of my reverend
9596 friend) sneaks to and fro, and dodges up and down. When not doing so
9597 himself, he may have some informant skulking about, in the person of a
9598 watchman, porter, or such-like hanger-on of Staple. On the other hand,
9599 Miss Rosa very naturally wishes to see her friend Miss Helena, and it
9600 would seem important that at least Miss Helena (if not her brother too,
9601 through her) should privately know from Miss Rosa’s lips what has
9602 occurred, and what has been threatened. Am I agreed with generally in
9603 the views I take?’
9604
9605 ‘I entirely coincide with them,’ said Mr. Crisparkle, who had been very
9606 attentive.
9607
9608 ‘As I have no doubt I should,’ added Mr. Tartar, smiling, ‘if I
9609 understood them.’
9610
9611 ‘Fair and softly, sir,’ said Mr. Grewgious; ‘we shall fully confide in
9612 you directly, if you will favour us with your permission. Now, if our
9613 local friend should have any informant on the spot, it is tolerably clear
9614 that such informant can only be set to watch the chambers in the
9615 occupation of Mr. Neville. He reporting, to our local friend, who comes
9616 and goes there, our local friend would supply for himself, from his own
9617 previous knowledge, the identity of the parties. Nobody can be set to
9618 watch all Staple, or to concern himself with comers and goers to other
9619 sets of chambers: unless, indeed, mine.’
9620
9621 ‘I begin to understand to what you tend,’ said Mr. Crisparkle, ‘and
9622 highly approve of your caution.’
9623
9624 ‘I needn’t repeat that I know nothing yet of the why and wherefore,’ said
9625 Mr. Tartar; ‘but I also understand to what you tend, so let me say at
9626 once that my chambers are freely at your disposal.’
9627
9628 ‘There!’ cried Mr. Grewgious, smoothing his head triumphantly, ‘now we
9629 have all got the idea. You have it, my dear?’
9630
9631 ‘I think I have,’ said Rosa, blushing a little as Mr. Tartar looked
9632 quickly towards her.
9633
9634 ‘You see, you go over to Staple with Mr. Crisparkle and Mr. Tartar,’ said
9635 Mr. Grewgious; ‘I going in and out, and out and in alone, in my usual
9636 way; you go up with those gentlemen to Mr. Tartar’s rooms; you look into
9637 Mr. Tartar’s flower-garden; you wait for Miss Helena’s appearance there,
9638 or you signify to Miss Helena that you are close by; and you communicate
9639 with her freely, and no spy can be the wiser.’
9640
9641 ‘I am very much afraid I shall be—’
9642
9643 ‘Be what, my dear?’ asked Mr. Grewgious, as she hesitated. ‘Not
9644 frightened?’
9645
9646 ‘No, not that,’ said Rosa, shyly; ‘in Mr. Tartar’s way. We seem to be
9647 appropriating Mr. Tartar’s residence so very coolly.’
9648
9649 ‘I protest to you,’ returned that gentleman, ‘that I shall think the
9650 better of it for evermore, if your voice sounds in it only once.’
9651
9652 Rosa, not quite knowing what to say about that, cast down her eyes, and
9653 turning to Mr. Grewgious, dutifully asked if she should put her hat on?
9654 Mr. Grewgious being of opinion that she could not do better, she withdrew
9655 for the purpose. Mr. Crisparkle took the opportunity of giving Mr.
9656 Tartar a summary of the distresses of Neville and his sister; the
9657 opportunity was quite long enough, as the hat happened to require a
9658 little extra fitting on.
9659
9660 Mr. Tartar gave his arm to Rosa, and Mr. Crisparkle walked, detached, in
9661 front.
9662
9663 ‘Poor, poor Eddy!’ thought Rosa, as they went along.
9664
9665 Mr. Tartar waved his right hand as he bent his head down over Rosa,
9666 talking in an animated way.
9667
9668 ‘It was not so powerful or so sun-browned when it saved Mr. Crisparkle,’
9669 thought Rosa, glancing at it; ‘but it must have been very steady and
9670 determined even then.’
9671
9672 Mr. Tartar told her he had been a sailor, roving everywhere for years and
9673 years.
9674
9675 ‘When are you going to sea again?’ asked Rosa.
9676
9677 ‘Never!’
9678
9679 Rosa wondered what the girls would say if they could see her crossing the
9680 wide street on the sailor’s arm. And she fancied that the passers-by
9681 must think her very little and very helpless, contrasted with the strong
9682 figure that could have caught her up and carried her out of any danger,
9683 miles and miles without resting.
9684
9685 She was thinking further, that his far-seeing blue eyes looked as if they
9686 had been used to watch danger afar off, and to watch it without
9687 flinching, drawing nearer and nearer: when, happening to raise her own
9688 eyes, she found that he seemed to be thinking something about _them_.
9689
9690 This a little confused Rosebud, and may account for her never afterwards
9691 quite knowing how she ascended (with his help) to his garden in the air,
9692 and seemed to get into a marvellous country that came into sudden bloom
9693 like the country on the summit of the magic bean-stalk. May it flourish
9694 for ever!
9695
9696
9697
9698
9699 CHAPTER XXII—A GRITTY STATE OF THINGS COMES ON
9700
9701
9702 Mr. Tartar’s chambers were the neatest, the cleanest, and the
9703 best-ordered chambers ever seen under the sun, moon, and stars. The
9704 floors were scrubbed to that extent, that you might have supposed the
9705 London blacks emancipated for ever, and gone out of the land for good.
9706 Every inch of brass-work in Mr. Tartar’s possession was polished and
9707 burnished, till it shone like a brazen mirror. No speck, nor spot, nor
9708 spatter soiled the purity of any of Mr. Tartar’s household gods, large,
9709 small, or middle-sized. His sitting-room was like the admiral’s cabin,
9710 his bath-room was like a dairy, his sleeping-chamber, fitted all about
9711 with lockers and drawers, was like a seedsman’s shop; and his
9712 nicely-balanced cot just stirred in the midst, as if it breathed.
9713 Everything belonging to Mr. Tartar had quarters of its own assigned to
9714 it: his maps and charts had their quarters; his books had theirs; his
9715 brushes had theirs; his boots had theirs; his clothes had theirs; his
9716 case-bottles had theirs; his telescopes and other instruments had theirs.
9717 Everything was readily accessible. Shelf, bracket, locker, hook, and
9718 drawer were equally within reach, and were equally contrived with a view
9719 to avoiding waste of room, and providing some snug inches of stowage for
9720 something that would have exactly fitted nowhere else. His gleaming
9721 little service of plate was so arranged upon his sideboard as that a
9722 slack salt-spoon would have instantly betrayed itself; his toilet
9723 implements were so arranged upon his dressing-table as that a toothpick
9724 of slovenly deportment could have been reported at a glance. So with the
9725 curiosities he had brought home from various voyages. Stuffed, dried,
9726 repolished, or otherwise preserved, according to their kind; birds,
9727 fishes, reptiles, arms, articles of dress, shells, seaweeds, grasses, or
9728 memorials of coral reef; each was displayed in its especial place, and
9729 each could have been displayed in no better place. Paint and varnish
9730 seemed to be kept somewhere out of sight, in constant readiness to
9731 obliterate stray finger-marks wherever any might become perceptible in
9732 Mr. Tartar’s chambers. No man-of-war was ever kept more spick and span
9733 from careless touch. On this bright summer day, a neat awning was rigged
9734 over Mr. Tartar’s flower-garden as only a sailor can rig it, and there
9735 was a sea-going air upon the whole effect, so delightfully complete, that
9736 the flower-garden might have appertained to stern-windows afloat, and the
9737 whole concern might have bowled away gallantly with all on board, if Mr.
9738 Tartar had only clapped to his lips the speaking-trumpet that was slung
9739 in a corner, and given hoarse orders to heave the anchor up, look alive
9740 there, men, and get all sail upon her!
9741
9742 Mr. Tartar doing the honours of this gallant craft was of a piece with
9743 the rest. When a man rides an amiable hobby that shies at nothing and
9744 kicks nobody, it is only agreeable to find him riding it with a humorous
9745 sense of the droll side of the creature. When the man is a cordial and
9746 an earnest man by nature, and withal is perfectly fresh and genuine, it
9747 may be doubted whether he is ever seen to greater advantage than at such
9748 a time. So Rosa would have naturally thought (even if she hadn’t been
9749 conducted over the ship with all the homage due to the First Lady of the
9750 Admiralty, or First Fairy of the Sea), that it was charming to see and
9751 hear Mr. Tartar half laughing at, and half rejoicing in, his various
9752 contrivances. So Rosa would have naturally thought, anyhow, that the
9753 sunburnt sailor showed to great advantage when, the inspection finished,
9754 he delicately withdrew out of his admiral’s cabin, beseeching her to
9755 consider herself its Queen, and waving her free of his flower-garden with
9756 the hand that had had Mr. Crisparkle’s life in it.
9757
9758 ‘Helena! Helena Landless! Are you there?’
9759
9760 ‘Who speaks to me? Not Rosa?’ Then a second handsome face appearing.
9761
9762 ‘Yes, my darling!’
9763
9764 ‘Why, how did you come here, dearest?’
9765
9766 ‘I—I don’t quite know,’ said Rosa with a blush; ‘unless I am dreaming!’
9767
9768 Why with a blush? For their two faces were alone with the other flowers.
9769 Are blushes among the fruits of the country of the magic bean-stalk?
9770
9771 ‘_I_ am not dreaming,’ said Helena, smiling. ‘I should take more for
9772 granted if I were. How do we come together—or so near together—so very
9773 unexpectedly?’
9774
9775 Unexpectedly indeed, among the dingy gables and chimney-pots of P. J.
9776 T.’s connection, and the flowers that had sprung from the salt sea. But
9777 Rosa, waking, told in a hurry how they came to be together, and all the
9778 why and wherefore of that matter.
9779
9780 ‘And Mr. Crisparkle is here,’ said Rosa, in rapid conclusion; ‘and, could
9781 you believe it? long ago he saved his life!’
9782
9783 ‘I could believe any such thing of Mr. Crisparkle,’ returned Helena, with
9784 a mantling face.
9785
9786 (More blushes in the bean-stalk country!)
9787
9788 ‘Yes, but it wasn’t Crisparkle,’ said Rosa, quickly putting in the
9789 correction.
9790
9791 ‘I don’t understand, love.’
9792
9793 ‘It was very nice of Mr. Crisparkle to be saved,’ said Rosa, ‘and he
9794 couldn’t have shown his high opinion of Mr. Tartar more expressively.
9795 But it was Mr. Tartar who saved him.’
9796
9797 Helena’s dark eyes looked very earnestly at the bright face among the
9798 leaves, and she asked, in a slower and more thoughtful tone:
9799
9800 ‘Is Mr. Tartar with you now, dear?’
9801
9802 ‘No; because he has given up his rooms to me—to us, I mean. It is such a
9803 beautiful place!’
9804
9805 ‘Is it?’
9806
9807 ‘It is like the inside of the most exquisite ship that ever sailed. It
9808 is like—it is like—’
9809
9810 ‘Like a dream?’ suggested Helena.
9811
9812 Rosa answered with a little nod, and smelled the flowers.
9813
9814 Helena resumed, after a short pause of silence, during which she seemed
9815 (or it was Rosa’s fancy) to compassionate somebody: ‘My poor Neville is
9816 reading in his own room, the sun being so very bright on this side just
9817 now. I think he had better not know that you are so near.’
9818
9819 ‘O, I think so too!’ cried Rosa very readily.
9820
9821 ‘I suppose,’ pursued Helena, doubtfully, ‘that he must know by-and-by all
9822 you have told me; but I am not sure. Ask Mr. Crisparkle’s advice, my
9823 darling. Ask him whether I may tell Neville as much or as little of what
9824 you have told me as I think best.’
9825
9826 Rosa subsided into her state-cabin, and propounded the question. The
9827 Minor Canon was for the free exercise of Helena’s judgment.
9828
9829 ‘I thank him very much,’ said Helena, when Rosa emerged again with her
9830 report. ‘Ask him whether it would be best to wait until any more
9831 maligning and pursuing of Neville on the part of this wretch shall
9832 disclose itself, or to try to anticipate it: I mean, so far as to find
9833 out whether any such goes on darkly about us?’
9834
9835 The Minor Canon found this point so difficult to give a confident opinion
9836 on, that, after two or three attempts and failures, he suggested a
9837 reference to Mr. Grewgious. Helena acquiescing, he betook himself (with
9838 a most unsuccessful assumption of lounging indifference) across the
9839 quadrangle to P. J. T.’s, and stated it. Mr. Grewgious held decidedly to
9840 the general principle, that if you could steal a march upon a brigand or
9841 a wild beast, you had better do it; and he also held decidedly to the
9842 special case, that John Jasper was a brigand and a wild beast in
9843 combination.
9844
9845 Thus advised, Mr. Crisparkle came back again and reported to Rosa, who in
9846 her turn reported to Helena. She now steadily pursuing her train of
9847 thought at her window, considered thereupon.
9848
9849 ‘We may count on Mr. Tartar’s readiness to help us, Rosa?’ she inquired.
9850
9851 O yes! Rosa shyly thought so. O yes, Rosa shyly believed she could
9852 almost answer for it. But should she ask Mr. Crisparkle? ‘I think your
9853 authority on the point as good as his, my dear,’ said Helena, sedately,
9854 ‘and you needn’t disappear again for that.’ Odd of Helena!
9855
9856 ‘You see, Neville,’ Helena pursued after more reflection, ‘knows no one
9857 else here: he has not so much as exchanged a word with any one else here.
9858 If Mr. Tartar would call to see him openly and often; if he would spare a
9859 minute for the purpose, frequently; if he would even do so, almost daily;
9860 something might come of it.’
9861
9862 ‘Something might come of it, dear?’ repeated Rosa, surveying her friend’s
9863 beauty with a highly perplexed face. ‘Something might?’
9864
9865 ‘If Neville’s movements are really watched, and if the purpose really is
9866 to isolate him from all friends and acquaintance and wear his daily life
9867 out grain by grain (which would seem to be the threat to you), does it
9868 not appear likely,’ said Helena, ‘that his enemy would in some way
9869 communicate with Mr. Tartar to warn him off from Neville? In which case,
9870 we might not only know the fact, but might know from Mr. Tartar what the
9871 terms of the communication were.’
9872
9873 ‘I see!’ cried Rosa. And immediately darted into her state-cabin again.
9874
9875 Presently her pretty face reappeared, with a greatly heightened colour,
9876 and she said that she had told Mr. Crisparkle, and that Mr. Crisparkle
9877 had fetched in Mr. Tartar, and that Mr. Tartar—‘who is waiting now, in
9878 case you want him,’ added Rosa, with a half look back, and in not a
9879 little confusion between the inside of the state-cabin and out—had
9880 declared his readiness to act as she had suggested, and to enter on his
9881 task that very day.
9882
9883 ‘I thank him from my heart,’ said Helena. ‘Pray tell him so.’
9884
9885 Again not a little confused between the Flower-garden and the Cabin, Rosa
9886 dipped in with her message, and dipped out again with more assurances
9887 from Mr. Tartar, and stood wavering in a divided state between Helena and
9888 him, which proved that confusion is not always necessarily awkward, but
9889 may sometimes present a very pleasant appearance.
9890
9891 ‘And now, darling,’ said Helena, ‘we will be mindful of the caution that
9892 has restricted us to this interview for the present, and will part. I
9893 hear Neville moving too. Are you going back?’
9894
9895 ‘To Miss Twinkleton’s?’ asked Rosa.
9896
9897 ‘Yes.’
9898
9899 ‘O, I could never go there any more. I couldn’t indeed, after that
9900 dreadful interview!’ said Rosa.
9901
9902 ‘Then where _are_ you going, pretty one?’
9903
9904 ‘Now I come to think of it, I don’t know,’ said Rosa. ‘I have settled
9905 nothing at all yet, but my guardian will take care of me. Don’t be
9906 uneasy, dear. I shall be sure to be somewhere.’
9907
9908 (It did seem likely.)
9909
9910 ‘And I shall hear of my Rosebud from Mr. Tartar?’ inquired Helena.
9911
9912 ‘Yes, I suppose so; from—’ Rosa looked back again in a flutter, instead
9913 of supplying the name. ‘But tell me one thing before we part, dearest
9914 Helena. Tell me—that you are sure, sure, sure, I couldn’t help it.’
9915
9916 ‘Help it, love?’
9917
9918 ‘Help making him malicious and revengeful. I couldn’t hold any terms
9919 with him, could I?’
9920
9921 ‘You know how I love you, darling,’ answered Helena, with indignation;
9922 ‘but I would sooner see you dead at his wicked feet.’
9923
9924 ‘That’s a great comfort to me! And you will tell your poor brother so,
9925 won’t you? And you will give him my remembrance and my sympathy? And
9926 you will ask him not to hate me?’
9927
9928 With a mournful shake of the head, as if that would be quite a
9929 superfluous entreaty, Helena lovingly kissed her two hands to her friend,
9930 and her friend’s two hands were kissed to her; and then she saw a third
9931 hand (a brown one) appear among the flowers and leaves, and help her
9932 friend out of sight.
9933
9934 The refection that Mr. Tartar produced in the Admiral’s Cabin by merely
9935 touching the spring knob of a locker and the handle of a drawer, was a
9936 dazzling enchanted repast. Wonderful macaroons, glittering liqueurs,
9937 magically-preserved tropical spices, and jellies of celestial tropical
9938 fruits, displayed themselves profusely at an instant’s notice. But Mr.
9939 Tartar could not make time stand still; and time, with his hard-hearted
9940 fleetness, strode on so fast, that Rosa was obliged to come down from the
9941 bean-stalk country to earth and her guardian’s chambers.
9942
9943 ‘And now, my dear,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘what is to be done next? To put
9944 the same thought in another form; what is to be done with you?’
9945
9946 Rosa could only look apologetically sensible of being very much in her
9947 own way and in everybody else’s. Some passing idea of living, fireproof,
9948 up a good many stairs in Furnival’s Inn for the rest of her life, was the
9949 only thing in the nature of a plan that occurred to her.
9950
9951 ‘It has come into my thoughts,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘that as the
9952 respected lady, Miss Twinkleton, occasionally repairs to London in the
9953 recess, with the view of extending her connection, and being available
9954 for interviews with metropolitan parents, if any—whether, until we have
9955 time in which to turn ourselves round, we might invite Miss Twinkleton to
9956 come and stay with you for a month?’
9957
9958 ‘Stay where, sir?’
9959
9960 ‘Whether,’ explained Mr. Grewgious, ‘we might take a furnished lodging in
9961 town for a month, and invite Miss Twinkleton to assume the charge of you
9962 in it for that period?’
9963
9964 ‘And afterwards?’ hinted Rosa.
9965
9966 ‘And afterwards,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘we should be no worse off than we
9967 are now.’
9968
9969 ‘I think that might smooth the way,’ assented Rosa.
9970
9971 ‘Then let us,’ said Mr. Grewgious, rising, ‘go and look for a furnished
9972 lodging. Nothing could be more acceptable to me than the sweet presence
9973 of last evening, for all the remaining evenings of my existence; but
9974 these are not fit surroundings for a young lady. Let us set out in quest
9975 of adventures, and look for a furnished lodging. In the meantime, Mr.
9976 Crisparkle here, about to return home immediately, will no doubt kindly
9977 see Miss Twinkleton, and invite that lady to co-operate in our plan.’
9978
9979 Mr. Crisparkle, willingly accepting the commission, took his departure;
9980 Mr. Grewgious and his ward set forth on their expedition.
9981
9982 As Mr. Grewgious’s idea of looking at a furnished lodging was to get on
9983 the opposite side of the street to a house with a suitable bill in the
9984 window, and stare at it; and then work his way tortuously to the back of
9985 the house, and stare at that; and then not go in, but make similar trials
9986 of another house, with the same result; their progress was but slow. At
9987 length he bethought himself of a widowed cousin, divers times removed, of
9988 Mr. Bazzard’s, who had once solicited his influence in the lodger world,
9989 and who lived in Southampton Street, Bloomsbury Square. This lady’s
9990 name, stated in uncompromising capitals of considerable size on a brass
9991 door-plate, and yet not lucidly as to sex or condition, was BILLICKIN.
9992
9993 Personal faintness, and an overpowering personal candour, were the
9994 distinguishing features of Mrs. Billickin’s organisation. She came
9995 languishing out of her own exclusive back parlour, with the air of having
9996 been expressly brought-to for the purpose, from an accumulation of
9997 several swoons.
9998
9999 ‘I hope I see you well, sir,’ said Mrs. Billickin, recognising her
10000 visitor with a bend.
10001
10002 ‘Thank you, quite well. And you, ma’am?’ returned Mr. Grewgious.
10003
10004 ‘I am as well,’ said Mrs. Billickin, becoming aspirational with excess of
10005 faintness, ‘as I hever ham.’
10006
10007 ‘My ward and an elderly lady,’ said Mr. Grewgious, ‘wish to find a
10008 genteel lodging for a month or so. Have you any apartments available,
10009 ma’am?’
10010
10011 ‘Mr. Grewgious,’ returned Mrs. Billickin, ‘I will not deceive you; far
10012 from it. I _have_ apartments available.’
10013
10014 This with the air of adding: ‘Convey me to the stake, if you will; but
10015 while I live, I will be candid.’
10016
10017 ‘And now, what apartments, ma’am?’ asked Mr. Grewgious, cosily. To tame
10018 a certain severity apparent on the part of Mrs. Billickin.
10019
10020 ‘There is this sitting-room—which, call it what you will, it is the front
10021 parlour, Miss,’ said Mrs. Billickin, impressing Rosa into the
10022 conversation: ‘the back parlour being what I cling to and never part
10023 with; and there is two bedrooms at the top of the ’ouse with gas laid on.
10024 I do not tell you that your bedroom floors is firm, for firm they are
10025 not. The gas-fitter himself allowed, that to make a firm job, he must go
10026 right under your jistes, and it were not worth the outlay as a yearly
10027 tenant so to do. The piping is carried above your jistes, and it is best
10028 that it should be made known to you.’
10029
10030 Mr. Grewgious and Rosa exchanged looks of some dismay, though they had
10031 not the least idea what latent horrors this carriage of the piping might
10032 involve. Mrs. Billickin put her hand to her heart, as having eased it of
10033 a load.
10034
10035 ‘Well! The roof is all right, no doubt,’ said Mr. Grewgious, plucking up
10036 a little.
10037
10038 ‘Mr. Grewgious,’ returned Mrs. Billickin, ‘if I was to tell you, sir,
10039 that to have nothink above you is to have a floor above you, I should put
10040 a deception upon you which I will not do. No, sir. Your slates WILL
10041 rattle loose at that elewation in windy weather, do your utmost, best or
10042 worst! I defy you, sir, be you what you may, to keep your slates tight,
10043 try how you can.’ Here Mrs. Billickin, having been warm with Mr.
10044 Grewgious, cooled a little, not to abuse the moral power she held over
10045 him. ‘Consequent,’ proceeded Mrs. Billickin, more mildly, but still
10046 firmly in her incorruptible candour: ‘consequent it would be worse than
10047 of no use for me to trapse and travel up to the top of the ’ouse with
10048 you, and for you to say, “Mrs. Billickin, what stain do I notice in the
10049 ceiling, for a stain I do consider it?” and for me to answer, “I do not
10050 understand you, sir.” No, sir, I will not be so underhand. I _do_
10051 understand you before you pint it out. It is the wet, sir. It do come
10052 in, and it do not come in. You may lay dry there half your lifetime; but
10053 the time will come, and it is best that you should know it, when a
10054 dripping sop would be no name for you.’
10055
10056 Mr. Grewgious looked much disgraced by being prefigured in this pickle.
10057
10058 ‘Have you any other apartments, ma’am?’ he asked.
10059
10060 ‘Mr. Grewgious,’ returned Mrs. Billickin, with much solemnity, ‘I have.
10061 You ask me have I, and my open and my honest answer air, I have. The
10062 first and second floors is wacant, and sweet rooms.’
10063
10064 ‘Come, come! There’s nothing against _them_,’ said Mr. Grewgious,
10065 comforting himself.
10066
10067 ‘Mr. Grewgious,’ replied Mrs. Billickin, ‘pardon me, there is the stairs.
10068 Unless your mind is prepared for the stairs, it will lead to inevitable
10069 disappointment. You cannot, Miss,’ said Mrs. Billickin, addressing Rosa
10070 reproachfully, ‘place a first floor, and far less a second, on the level
10071 footing ‘of a parlour. No, you cannot do it, Miss, it is beyond your
10072 power, and wherefore try?’
10073
10074 Mrs. Billickin put it very feelingly, as if Rosa had shown a headstrong
10075 determination to hold the untenable position.
10076
10077 ‘Can we see these rooms, ma’am?’ inquired her guardian.
10078
10079 ‘Mr. Grewgious,’ returned Mrs. Billickin, ‘you can. I will not disguise
10080 it from you, sir; you can.’
10081
10082 Mrs. Billickin then sent into her back parlour for her shawl (it being a
10083 state fiction, dating from immemorial antiquity, that she could never go
10084 anywhere without being wrapped up), and having been enrolled by her
10085 attendant, led the way. She made various genteel pauses on the stairs
10086 for breath, and clutched at her heart in the drawing-room as if it had
10087 very nearly got loose, and she had caught it in the act of taking wing.
10088
10089 ‘And the second floor?’ said Mr. Grewgious, on finding the first
10090 satisfactory.
10091
10092 ‘Mr. Grewgious,’ replied Mrs. Billickin, turning upon him with ceremony,
10093 as if the time had now come when a distinct understanding on a difficult
10094 point must be arrived at, and a solemn confidence established, ‘the
10095 second floor is over this.’
10096
10097 ‘Can we see that too, ma’am?’
10098
10099 ‘Yes, sir,’ returned Mrs. Billickin, ‘it is open as the day.’
10100
10101 That also proving satisfactory, Mr. Grewgious retired into a window with
10102 Rosa for a few words of consultation, and then asking for pen and ink,
10103 sketched out a line or two of agreement. In the meantime Mrs. Billickin
10104 took a seat, and delivered a kind of Index to, or Abstract of, the
10105 general question.
10106
10107 ‘Five-and-forty shillings per week by the month certain at the time of
10108 year,’ said Mrs. Billickin, ‘is only reasonable to both parties. It is
10109 not Bond Street nor yet St. James’s Palace; but it is not pretended that
10110 it is. Neither is it attempted to be denied—for why should it?—that the
10111 Arching leads to a mews. Mewses must exist. Respecting attendance; two
10112 is kep’, at liberal wages. Words _has_ arisen as to tradesmen, but dirty
10113 shoes on fresh hearth-stoning was attributable, and no wish for a
10114 commission on your orders. Coals is either _by_ the fire, or _per_ the
10115 scuttle.’ She emphasised the prepositions as marking a subtle but
10116 immense difference. ‘Dogs is not viewed with favour. Besides litter,
10117 they gets stole, and sharing suspicions is apt to creep in, and
10118 unpleasantness takes place.’
10119
10120 By this time Mr. Grewgious had his agreement-lines, and his
10121 earnest-money, ready. ‘I have signed it for the ladies, ma’am,’ he said,
10122 ‘and you’ll have the goodness to sign it for yourself, Christian and
10123 Surname, there, if you please.’
10124
10125 ‘Mr. Grewgious,’ said Mrs. Billickin in a new burst of candour, ‘no, sir!
10126 You must excuse the Christian name.’
10127
10128 Mr. Grewgious stared at her.
10129
10130 ‘The door-plate is used as a protection,’ said Mrs. Billickin, ‘and acts
10131 as such, and go from it I will not.’
10132
10133 Mr. Grewgious stared at Rosa.
10134
10135 ‘No, Mr. Grewgious, you must excuse me. So long as this ’ouse is known
10136 indefinite as Billickin’s, and so long as it is a doubt with the
10137 riff-raff where Billickin may be hidin’, near the street-door or down the
10138 airy, and what his weight and size, so long I feel safe. But commit
10139 myself to a solitary female statement, no, Miss! Nor would you for a
10140 moment wish,’ said Mrs. Billickin, with a strong sense of injury, ‘to
10141 take that advantage of your sex, if you were not brought to it by
10142 inconsiderate example.’
10143
10144 Rosa reddening as if she had made some most disgraceful attempt to
10145 overreach the good lady, besought Mr. Grewgious to rest content with any
10146 signature. And accordingly, in a baronial way, the sign-manual BILLICKIN
10147 got appended to the document.
10148
10149 Details were then settled for taking possession on the next day but one,
10150 when Miss Twinkleton might be reasonably expected; and Rosa went back to
10151 Furnival’s Inn on her guardian’s arm.
10152
10153 Behold Mr. Tartar walking up and down Furnival’s Inn, checking himself
10154 when he saw them coming, and advancing towards them!
10155
10156 ‘It occurred to me,’ hinted Mr. Tartar, ‘that we might go up the river,
10157 the weather being so delicious and the tide serving. I have a boat of my
10158 own at the Temple Stairs.’
10159
10160 ‘I have not been up the river for this many a day,’ said Mr. Grewgious,
10161 tempted.
10162
10163 ‘I was never up the river,’ added Rosa.
10164
10165 Within half an hour they were setting this matter right by going up the
10166 river. The tide was running with them, the afternoon was charming. Mr.
10167 Tartar’s boat was perfect. Mr. Tartar and Lobley (Mr. Tartar’s man)
10168 pulled a pair of oars. Mr. Tartar had a yacht, it seemed, lying
10169 somewhere down by Greenhithe; and Mr. Tartar’s man had charge of this
10170 yacht, and was detached upon his present service. He was a
10171 jolly-favoured man, with tawny hair and whiskers, and a big red face. He
10172 was the dead image of the sun in old woodcuts, his hair and whiskers
10173 answering for rays all around him. Resplendent in the bow of the boat,
10174 he was a shining sight, with a man-of-war’s man’s shirt on—or off,
10175 according to opinion—and his arms and breast tattooed all sorts of
10176 patterns. Lobley seemed to take it easily, and so did Mr. Tartar; yet
10177 their oars bent as they pulled, and the boat bounded under them. Mr.
10178 Tartar talked as if he were doing nothing, to Rosa who was really doing
10179 nothing, and to Mr. Grewgious who was doing this much that he steered all
10180 wrong; but what did that matter, when a turn of Mr. Tartar’s skilful
10181 wrist, or a mere grin of Mr. Lobley’s over the bow, put all to rights!
10182 The tide bore them on in the gayest and most sparkling manner, until they
10183 stopped to dine in some ever-lastingly-green garden, needing no
10184 matter-of-fact identification here; and then the tide obligingly
10185 turned—being devoted to that party alone for that day; and as they
10186 floated idly among some osier-beds, Rosa tried what she could do in the
10187 rowing way, and came off splendidly, being much assisted; and Mr.
10188 Grewgious tried what he could do, and came off on his back, doubled up
10189 with an oar under his chin, being not assisted at all. Then there was an
10190 interval of rest under boughs (such rest!) what time Mr. Lobley mopped,
10191 and, arranging cushions, stretchers, and the like, danced the tight-rope
10192 the whole length of the boat like a man to whom shoes were a superstition
10193 and stockings slavery; and then came the sweet return among delicious
10194 odours of limes in bloom, and musical ripplings; and, all too soon, the
10195 great black city cast its shadow on the waters, and its dark bridges
10196 spanned them as death spans life, and the everlastingly-green garden
10197 seemed to be left for everlasting, unregainable and far away.
10198
10199 [Picture: Up the river]
10200
10201 ‘Cannot people get through life without gritty stages, I wonder?’ Rosa
10202 thought next day, when the town was very gritty again, and everything had
10203 a strange and an uncomfortable appearance of seeming to wait for
10204 something that wouldn’t come. NO. She began to think, that, now the
10205 Cloisterham school-days had glided past and gone, the gritty stages would
10206 begin to set in at intervals and make themselves wearily known!
10207
10208 Yet what did Rosa expect? Did she expect Miss Twinkleton? Miss
10209 Twinkleton duly came. Forth from her back parlour issued the Billickin
10210 to receive Miss Twinkleton, and War was in the Billickin’s eye from that
10211 fell moment.
10212
10213 Miss Twinkleton brought a quantity of luggage with her, having all Rosa’s
10214 as well as her own. The Billickin took it ill that Miss Twinkleton’s
10215 mind, being sorely disturbed by this luggage, failed to take in her
10216 personal identity with that clearness of perception which was due to its
10217 demands. Stateliness mounted her gloomy throne upon the Billickin’s brow
10218 in consequence. And when Miss Twinkleton, in agitation taking stock of
10219 her trunks and packages, of which she had seventeen, particularly counted
10220 in the Billickin herself as number eleven, the B. found it necessary to
10221 repudiate.
10222
10223 ‘Things cannot too soon be put upon the footing,’ said she, with a
10224 candour so demonstrative as to be almost obtrusive, ‘that the person of
10225 the ’ouse is not a box nor yet a bundle, nor a carpet-bag. No, I am ’ily
10226 obleeged to you, Miss Twinkleton, nor yet a beggar.’
10227
10228 This last disclaimer had reference to Miss Twinkleton’s distractedly
10229 pressing two-and-sixpence on her, instead of the cabman.
10230
10231 Thus cast off, Miss Twinkleton wildly inquired, ‘which gentleman’ was to
10232 be paid? There being two gentlemen in that position (Miss Twinkleton
10233 having arrived with two cabs), each gentleman on being paid held forth
10234 his two-and-sixpence on the flat of his open hand, and, with a speechless
10235 stare and a dropped jaw, displayed his wrong to heaven and earth.
10236 Terrified by this alarming spectacle, Miss Twinkleton placed another
10237 shilling in each hand; at the same time appealing to the law in flurried
10238 accents, and recounting her luggage this time with the two gentlemen in,
10239 who caused the total to come out complicated. Meanwhile the two
10240 gentlemen, each looking very hard at the last shilling grumblingly, as if
10241 it might become eighteen-pence if he kept his eyes on it, descended the
10242 doorsteps, ascended their carriages, and drove away, leaving Miss
10243 Twinkleton on a bonnet-box in tears.
10244
10245 The Billickin beheld this manifestation of weakness without sympathy, and
10246 gave directions for ‘a young man to be got in’ to wrestle with the
10247 luggage. When that gladiator had disappeared from the arena, peace
10248 ensued, and the new lodgers dined.
10249
10250 But the Billickin had somehow come to the knowledge that Miss Twinkleton
10251 kept a school. The leap from that knowledge to the inference that Miss
10252 Twinkleton set herself to teach _her_ something, was easy. ‘But you
10253 don’t do it,’ soliloquised the Billickin; ‘I am not your pupil, whatever
10254 she,’ meaning Rosa, ‘may be, poor thing!’
10255
10256 Miss Twinkleton, on the other hand, having changed her dress and
10257 recovered her spirits, was animated by a bland desire to improve the
10258 occasion in all ways, and to be as serene a model as possible. In a
10259 happy compromise between her two states of existence, she had already
10260 become, with her workbasket before her, the equably vivacious companion
10261 with a slight judicious flavouring of information, when the Billickin
10262 announced herself.
10263
10264 ‘I will not hide from you, ladies,’ said the B., enveloped in the shawl
10265 of state, ‘for it is not my character to hide neither my motives nor my
10266 actions, that I take the liberty to look in upon you to express a ’ope
10267 that your dinner was to your liking. Though not Professed but Plain,
10268 still her wages should be a sufficient object to her to stimilate to soar
10269 above mere roast and biled.’
10270
10271 ‘We dined very well indeed,’ said Rosa, ‘thank you.’
10272
10273 ‘Accustomed,’ said Miss Twinkleton with a gracious air, which to the
10274 jealous ears of the Billickin seemed to add ‘my good woman’—‘accustomed
10275 to a liberal and nutritious, yet plain and salutary diet, we have found
10276 no reason to bemoan our absence from the ancient city, and the methodical
10277 household, in which the quiet routine of our lot has been hitherto cast.’
10278
10279 ‘I did think it well to mention to my cook,’ observed the Billickin with
10280 a gush of candour, ‘which I ’ope you will agree with, Miss Twinkleton,
10281 was a right precaution, that the young lady being used to what we should
10282 consider here but poor diet, had better be brought forward by degrees.
10283 For, a rush from scanty feeding to generous feeding, and from what you
10284 may call messing to what you may call method, do require a power of
10285 constitution which is not often found in youth, particular when
10286 undermined by boarding-school!’
10287
10288 It will be seen that the Billickin now openly pitted herself against Miss
10289 Twinkleton, as one whom she had fully ascertained to be her natural
10290 enemy.
10291
10292 ‘Your remarks,’ returned Miss Twinkleton, from a remote moral eminence,
10293 ‘are well meant, I have no doubt; but you will permit me to observe that
10294 they develop a mistaken view of the subject, which can only be imputed to
10295 your extreme want of accurate information.’
10296
10297 ‘My informiation,’ retorted the Billickin, throwing in an extra syllable
10298 for the sake of emphasis at once polite and powerful—‘my informiation,
10299 Miss Twinkleton, were my own experience, which I believe is usually
10300 considered to be good guidance. But whether so or not, I was put in
10301 youth to a very genteel boarding-school, the mistress being no less a
10302 lady than yourself, of about your own age or it may be some years
10303 younger, and a poorness of blood flowed from the table which has run
10304 through my life.’
10305
10306 ‘Very likely,’ said Miss Twinkleton, still from her distant eminence;
10307 ‘and very much to be deplored.—Rosa, my dear, how are you getting on with
10308 your work?’
10309
10310 ‘Miss Twinkleton,’ resumed the Billickin, in a courtly manner, ‘before
10311 retiring on the ’int, as a lady should, I wish to ask of yourself, as a
10312 lady, whether I am to consider that my words is doubted?’
10313
10314 ‘I am not aware on what ground you cherish such a supposition,’ began
10315 Miss Twinkleton, when the Billickin neatly stopped her.
10316
10317 ‘Do not, if you please, put suppositions betwixt my lips where none such
10318 have been imparted by myself. Your flow of words is great, Miss
10319 Twinkleton, and no doubt is expected from you by your pupils, and no
10320 doubt is considered worth the money. _No_ doubt, I am sure. But not
10321 paying for flows of words, and not asking to be favoured with them here,
10322 I wish to repeat my question.’
10323
10324 ‘If you refer to the poverty of your circulation,’ began Miss Twinkleton,
10325 when again the Billickin neatly stopped her.
10326
10327 ‘I have used no such expressions.’
10328
10329 ‘If you refer, then, to the poorness of your blood—’
10330
10331 ‘Brought upon me,’ stipulated the Billickin, expressly, ‘at a
10332 boarding-school—’
10333
10334 ‘Then,’ resumed Miss Twinkleton, ‘all I can say is, that I am bound to
10335 believe, on your asseveration, that it is very poor indeed. I cannot
10336 forbear adding, that if that unfortunate circumstance influences your
10337 conversation, it is much to be lamented, and it is eminently desirable
10338 that your blood were richer.—Rosa, my dear, how are you getting on with
10339 your work?’
10340
10341 ‘Hem! Before retiring, Miss,’ proclaimed the Billickin to Rosa, loftily
10342 cancelling Miss Twinkleton, ‘I should wish it to be understood between
10343 yourself and me that my transactions in future is with you alone. I know
10344 no elderly lady here, Miss, none older than yourself.’
10345
10346 ‘A highly desirable arrangement, Rosa my dear,’ observed Miss Twinkleton.
10347
10348 ‘It is not, Miss,’ said the Billickin, with a sarcastic smile, ‘that I
10349 possess the Mill I have heard of, in which old single ladies could be
10350 ground up young (what a gift it would be to some of us), but that I limit
10351 myself to you totally.’
10352
10353 ‘When I have any desire to communicate a request to the person of the
10354 house, Rosa my dear,’ observed Miss Twinkleton with majestic
10355 cheerfulness, ‘I will make it known to you, and you will kindly
10356 undertake, I am sure, that it is conveyed to the proper quarter.’
10357
10358 ‘Good-evening, Miss,’ said the Billickin, at once affectionately and
10359 distantly. ‘Being alone in my eyes, I wish you good-evening with best
10360 wishes, and do not find myself drove, I am truly ’appy to say, into
10361 expressing my contempt for an indiwidual, unfortunately for yourself,
10362 belonging to you.’
10363
10364 The Billickin gracefully withdrew with this parting speech, and from that
10365 time Rosa occupied the restless position of shuttlecock between these two
10366 battledores. Nothing could be done without a smart match being played
10367 out. Thus, on the daily-arising question of dinner, Miss Twinkleton
10368 would say, the three being present together:
10369
10370 ‘Perhaps, my love, you will consult with the person of the house, whether
10371 she can procure us a lamb’s fry; or, failing that, a roast fowl.’
10372
10373 On which the Billickin would retort (Rosa not having spoken a word), ‘If
10374 you was better accustomed to butcher’s meat, Miss, you would not
10375 entertain the idea of a lamb’s fry. Firstly, because lambs has long been
10376 sheep, and secondly, because there is such things as killing-days, and
10377 there is not. As to roast fowls, Miss, why you must be quite surfeited
10378 with roast fowls, letting alone your buying, when you market for
10379 yourself, the agedest of poultry with the scaliest of legs, quite as if
10380 you was accustomed to picking ’em out for cheapness. Try a little
10381 inwention, Miss. Use yourself to ’ousekeeping a bit. Come now, think of
10382 somethink else.’
10383
10384 To this encouragement, offered with the indulgent toleration of a wise
10385 and liberal expert, Miss Twinkleton would rejoin, reddening:
10386
10387 ‘Or, my dear, you might propose to the person of the house a duck.’
10388
10389 ‘Well, Miss!’ the Billickin would exclaim (still no word being spoken by
10390 Rosa), ‘you do surprise me when you speak of ducks! Not to mention that
10391 they’re getting out of season and very dear, it really strikes to my
10392 heart to see you have a duck; for the breast, which is the only delicate
10393 cuts in a duck, always goes in a direction which I cannot imagine where,
10394 and your own plate comes down so miserably skin-and-bony! Try again,
10395 Miss. Think more of yourself, and less of others. A dish of sweetbreads
10396 now, or a bit of mutton. Something at which you can get your equal
10397 chance.’
10398
10399 Occasionally the game would wax very brisk indeed, and would be kept up
10400 with a smartness rendering such an encounter as this quite tame. But the
10401 Billickin almost invariably made by far the higher score; and would come
10402 in with side hits of the most unexpected and extraordinary description,
10403 when she seemed without a chance.
10404
10405 All this did not improve the gritty state of things in London, or the air
10406 that London had acquired in Rosa’s eyes of waiting for something that
10407 never came. Tired of working, and conversing with Miss Twinkleton, she
10408 suggested working and reading: to which Miss Twinkleton readily assented,
10409 as an admirable reader, of tried powers. But Rosa soon made the
10410 discovery that Miss Twinkleton didn’t read fairly. She cut the
10411 love-scenes, interpolated passages in praise of female celibacy, and was
10412 guilty of other glaring pious frauds. As an instance in point, take the
10413 glowing passage: ‘Ever dearest and best adored,—said Edward, clasping the
10414 dear head to his breast, and drawing the silken hair through his
10415 caressing fingers, from which he suffered it to fall like golden
10416 rain,—ever dearest and best adored, let us fly from the unsympathetic
10417 world and the sterile coldness of the stony-hearted, to the rich warm
10418 Paradise of Trust and Love.’ Miss Twinkleton’s fraudulent version tamely
10419 ran thus: ‘Ever engaged to me with the consent of our parents on both
10420 sides, and the approbation of the silver-haired rector of the
10421 district,—said Edward, respectfully raising to his lips the taper fingers
10422 so skilful in embroidery, tambour, crochet, and other truly feminine
10423 arts,—let me call on thy papa ere to-morrow’s dawn has sunk into the
10424 west, and propose a suburban establishment, lowly it may be, but within
10425 our means, where he will be always welcome as an evening guest, and where
10426 every arrangement shall invest economy, and constant interchange of
10427 scholastic acquirements with the attributes of the ministering angel to
10428 domestic bliss.’
10429
10430 As the days crept on and nothing happened, the neighbours began to say
10431 that the pretty girl at Billickin’s, who looked so wistfully and so much
10432 out of the gritty windows of the drawing-room, seemed to be losing her
10433 spirits. The pretty girl might have lost them but for the accident of
10434 lighting on some books of voyages and sea-adventure. As a compensation
10435 against their romance, Miss Twinkleton, reading aloud, made the most of
10436 all the latitudes and longitudes, bearings, winds, currents, offsets, and
10437 other statistics (which she felt to be none the less improving because
10438 they expressed nothing whatever to her); while Rosa, listening intently,
10439 made the most of what was nearest to her heart. So they both did better
10440 than before.
10441
10442
10443
10444
10445 CHAPTER XXIII—THE DAWN AGAIN
10446
10447
10448 Although Mr. Crisparkle and John Jasper met daily under the Cathedral
10449 roof, nothing at any time passed between them having reference to Edwin
10450 Drood, after the time, more than half a year gone by, when Jasper mutely
10451 showed the Minor Canon the conclusion and the resolution entered in his
10452 Diary. It is not likely that they ever met, though so often, without the
10453 thoughts of each reverting to the subject. It is not likely that they
10454 ever met, though so often, without a sensation on the part of each that
10455 the other was a perplexing secret to him. Jasper as the denouncer and
10456 pursuer of Neville Landless, and Mr. Crisparkle as his consistent
10457 advocate and protector, must at least have stood sufficiently in
10458 opposition to have speculated with keen interest on the steadiness and
10459 next direction of the other’s designs. But neither ever broached the
10460 theme.
10461
10462 False pretence not being in the Minor Canon’s nature, he doubtless
10463 displayed openly that he would at any time have revived the subject, and
10464 even desired to discuss it. The determined reticence of Jasper, however,
10465 was not to be so approached. Impassive, moody, solitary, resolute, so
10466 concentrated on one idea, and on its attendant fixed purpose, that he
10467 would share it with no fellow-creature, he lived apart from human life.
10468 Constantly exercising an Art which brought him into mechanical harmony
10469 with others, and which could not have been pursued unless he and they had
10470 been in the nicest mechanical relations and unison, it is curious to
10471 consider that the spirit of the man was in moral accordance or
10472 interchange with nothing around him. This indeed he had confided to his
10473 lost nephew, before the occasion for his present inflexibility arose.
10474
10475 That he must know of Rosa’s abrupt departure, and that he must divine its
10476 cause, was not to be doubted. Did he suppose that he had terrified her
10477 into silence? or did he suppose that she had imparted to any one—to Mr.
10478 Crisparkle himself, for instance—the particulars of his last interview
10479 with her? Mr. Crisparkle could not determine this in his mind. He could
10480 not but admit, however, as a just man, that it was not, of itself, a
10481 crime to fall in love with Rosa, any more than it was a crime to offer to
10482 set love above revenge.
10483
10484 The dreadful suspicion of Jasper, which Rosa was so shocked to have
10485 received into her imagination, appeared to have no harbour in Mr.
10486 Crisparkle’s. If it ever haunted Helena’s thoughts or Neville’s, neither
10487 gave it one spoken word of utterance. Mr. Grewgious took no pains to
10488 conceal his implacable dislike of Jasper, yet he never referred it,
10489 however distantly, to such a source. But he was a reticent as well as an
10490 eccentric man; and he made no mention of a certain evening when he warmed
10491 his hands at the gatehouse fire, and looked steadily down upon a certain
10492 heap of torn and miry clothes upon the floor.
10493
10494 Drowsy Cloisterham, whenever it awoke to a passing reconsideration of a
10495 story above six months old and dismissed by the bench of magistrates, was
10496 pretty equally divided in opinion whether John Jasper’s beloved nephew
10497 had been killed by his treacherously passionate rival, or in an open
10498 struggle; or had, for his own purposes, spirited himself away. It then
10499 lifted up its head, to notice that the bereaved Jasper was still ever
10500 devoted to discovery and revenge; and then dozed off again. This was the
10501 condition of matters, all round, at the period to which the present
10502 history has now attained.
10503
10504 The Cathedral doors have closed for the night; and the Choir-master, on a
10505 short leave of absence for two or three services, sets his face towards
10506 London. He travels thither by the means by which Rosa travelled, and
10507 arrives, as Rosa arrived, on a hot, dusty evening.
10508
10509 His travelling baggage is easily carried in his hand, and he repairs with
10510 it on foot, to a hybrid hotel in a little square behind Aldersgate
10511 Street, near the General Post Office. It is hotel, boarding-house, or
10512 lodging-house, at its visitor’s option. It announces itself, in the new
10513 Railway Advertisers, as a novel enterprise, timidly beginning to spring
10514 up. It bashfully, almost apologetically, gives the traveller to
10515 understand that it does not expect him, on the good old constitutional
10516 hotel plan, to order a pint of sweet blacking for his drinking, and throw
10517 it away; but insinuates that he may have his boots blacked instead of his
10518 stomach, and maybe also have bed, breakfast, attendance, and a porter up
10519 all night, for a certain fixed charge. From these and similar premises,
10520 many true Britons in the lowest spirits deduce that the times are
10521 levelling times, except in the article of high roads, of which there will
10522 shortly be not one in England.
10523
10524 He eats without appetite, and soon goes forth again. Eastward and still
10525 eastward through the stale streets he takes his way, until he reaches his
10526 destination: a miserable court, specially miserable among many such.
10527
10528 He ascends a broken staircase, opens a door, looks into a dark stifling
10529 room, and says: ‘Are you alone here?’
10530
10531 ‘Alone, deary; worse luck for me, and better for you,’ replies a croaking
10532 voice. ‘Come in, come in, whoever you be: I can’t see you till I light a
10533 match, yet I seem to know the sound of your speaking. I’m acquainted
10534 with you, ain’t I?’
10535
10536 ‘Light your match, and try.’
10537
10538 ‘So I will, deary, so I will; but my hand that shakes, as I can’t lay it
10539 on a match all in a moment. And I cough so, that, put my matches where I
10540 may, I never find ’em there. They jump and start, as I cough and cough,
10541 like live things. Are you off a voyage, deary?’
10542
10543 ‘No.’
10544
10545 ‘Not seafaring?’
10546
10547 ‘No.’
10548
10549 ‘Well, there’s land customers, and there’s water customers. I’m a mother
10550 to both. Different from Jack Chinaman t’other side the court. He ain’t
10551 a father to neither. It ain’t in him. And he ain’t got the true secret
10552 of mixing, though he charges as much as me that has, and more if he can
10553 get it. Here’s a match, and now where’s the candle? If my cough takes
10554 me, I shall cough out twenty matches afore I gets a light.’
10555
10556 But she finds the candle, and lights it, before the cough comes on. It
10557 seizes her in the moment of success, and she sits down rocking herself to
10558 and fro, and gasping at intervals: ‘O, my lungs is awful bad! my lungs is
10559 wore away to cabbage-nets!’ until the fit is over. During its
10560 continuance she has had no power of sight, or any other power not
10561 absorbed in the struggle; but as it leaves her, she begins to strain her
10562 eyes, and as soon as she is able to articulate, she cries, staring:
10563
10564 ‘Why, it’s you!’
10565
10566 ‘Are you so surprised to see me?’
10567
10568 ‘I thought I never should have seen you again, deary. I thought you was
10569 dead, and gone to Heaven.’
10570
10571 ‘Why?’
10572
10573 ‘I didn’t suppose you could have kept away, alive, so long, from the poor
10574 old soul with the real receipt for mixing it. And you are in mourning
10575 too! Why didn’t you come and have a pipe or two of comfort? Did they
10576 leave you money, perhaps, and so you didn’t want comfort?’
10577
10578 ‘No.’
10579
10580 ‘Who was they as died, deary?’
10581
10582 ‘A relative.’
10583
10584 ‘Died of what, lovey?’
10585
10586 ‘Probably, Death.’
10587
10588 ‘We are short to-night!’ cries the woman, with a propitiatory laugh.
10589 ‘Short and snappish we are! But we’re out of sorts for want of a smoke.
10590 We’ve got the all-overs, haven’t us, deary? But this is the place to
10591 cure ’em in; this is the place where the all-overs is smoked off.’
10592
10593 ‘You may make ready, then,’ replies the visitor, ‘as soon as you like.’
10594
10595 He divests himself of his shoes, loosens his cravat, and lies across the
10596 foot of the squalid bed, with his head resting on his left hand.
10597
10598 ‘Now you begin to look like yourself,’ says the woman approvingly. ‘Now
10599 I begin to know my old customer indeed! Been trying to mix for yourself
10600 this long time, poppet?’
10601
10602 ‘I have been taking it now and then in my own way.’
10603
10604 ‘Never take it your own way. It ain’t good for trade, and it ain’t good
10605 for you. Where’s my ink-bottle, and where’s my thimble, and where’s my
10606 little spoon? He’s going to take it in a artful form now, my deary
10607 dear!’
10608
10609 Entering on her process, and beginning to bubble and blow at the faint
10610 spark enclosed in the hollow of her hands, she speaks from time to time,
10611 in a tone of snuffling satisfaction, without leaving off. When he
10612 speaks, he does so without looking at her, and as if his thoughts were
10613 already roaming away by anticipation.
10614
10615 ‘I’ve got a pretty many smokes ready for you, first and last, haven’t I,
10616 chuckey?’
10617
10618 ‘A good many.’
10619
10620 ‘When you first come, you was quite new to it; warn’t ye?’
10621
10622 ‘Yes, I was easily disposed of, then.’
10623
10624 ‘But you got on in the world, and was able by-and-by to take your pipe
10625 with the best of ’em, warn’t ye?’
10626
10627 ‘Ah; and the worst.’
10628
10629 ‘It’s just ready for you. What a sweet singer you was when you first
10630 come! Used to drop your head, and sing yourself off like a bird! It’s
10631 ready for you now, deary.’
10632
10633 He takes it from her with great care, and puts the mouthpiece to his
10634 lips. She seats herself beside him, ready to refill the pipe.
10635
10636 After inhaling a few whiffs in silence, he doubtingly accosts her with:
10637
10638 ‘Is it as potent as it used to be?’
10639
10640 ‘What do you speak of, deary?’
10641
10642 ‘What should I speak of, but what I have in my mouth?’
10643
10644 ‘It’s just the same. Always the identical same.’
10645
10646 ‘It doesn’t taste so. And it’s slower.’
10647
10648 ‘You’ve got more used to it, you see.’
10649
10650 ‘That may be the cause, certainly. Look here.’ He stops, becomes
10651 dreamy, and seems to forget that he has invited her attention. She bends
10652 over him, and speaks in his ear.
10653
10654 ‘I’m attending to you. Says you just now, Look here. Says I now, I’m
10655 attending to ye. We was talking just before of your being used to it.’
10656
10657 ‘I know all that. I was only thinking. Look here. Suppose you had
10658 something in your mind; something you were going to do.’
10659
10660 ‘Yes, deary; something I was going to do?’
10661
10662 ‘But had not quite determined to do.’
10663
10664 ‘Yes, deary.’
10665
10666 ‘Might or might not do, you understand.’
10667
10668 ‘Yes.’ With the point of a needle she stirs the contents of the bowl.
10669
10670 ‘Should you do it in your fancy, when you were lying here doing this?’
10671
10672 She nods her head. ‘Over and over again.’
10673
10674 ‘Just like me! I did it over and over again. I have done it hundreds of
10675 thousands of times in this room.’
10676
10677 ‘It’s to be hoped it was pleasant to do, deary.’
10678
10679 ‘It _was_ pleasant to do!’
10680
10681 He says this with a savage air, and a spring or start at her. Quite
10682 unmoved she retouches and replenishes the contents of the bowl with her
10683 little spatula. Seeing her intent upon the occupation, he sinks into his
10684 former attitude.
10685
10686 ‘It was a journey, a difficult and dangerous journey. That was the
10687 subject in my mind. A hazardous and perilous journey, over abysses where
10688 a slip would be destruction. Look down, look down! You see what lies at
10689 the bottom there?’
10690
10691 He has darted forward to say it, and to point at the ground, as though at
10692 some imaginary object far beneath. The woman looks at him, as his
10693 spasmodic face approaches close to hers, and not at his pointing. She
10694 seems to know what the influence of her perfect quietude would be; if so,
10695 she has not miscalculated it, for he subsides again.
10696
10697 ‘Well; I have told you I did it here hundreds of thousands of times.
10698 What do I say? I did it millions and billions of times. I did it so
10699 often, and through such vast expanses of time, that when it was really
10700 done, it seemed not worth the doing, it was done so soon.’
10701
10702 ‘That’s the journey you have been away upon,’ she quietly remarks.
10703
10704 He glares at her as he smokes; and then, his eyes becoming filmy,
10705 answers: ‘That’s the journey.’
10706
10707 Silence ensues. His eyes are sometimes closed and sometimes open. The
10708 woman sits beside him, very attentive to the pipe, which is all the while
10709 at his lips.
10710
10711 ‘I’ll warrant,’ she observes, when he has been looking fixedly at her for
10712 some consecutive moments, with a singular appearance in his eyes of
10713 seeming to see her a long way off, instead of so near him: ‘I’ll warrant
10714 you made the journey in a many ways, when you made it so often?’
10715
10716 ‘No, always in one way.’
10717
10718 ‘Always in the same way?’
10719
10720 ‘Ay.’
10721
10722 ‘In the way in which it was really made at last?’
10723
10724 ‘Ay.’
10725
10726 ‘And always took the same pleasure in harping on it?’
10727
10728 ‘Ay.’
10729
10730 For the time he appears unequal to any other reply than this lazy
10731 monosyllabic assent. Probably to assure herself that it is not the
10732 assent of a mere automaton, she reverses the form of her next sentence.
10733
10734 ‘Did you never get tired of it, deary, and try to call up something else
10735 for a change?’
10736
10737 He struggles into a sitting posture, and retorts upon her: ‘What do you
10738 mean? What did I want? What did I come for?’
10739
10740 She gently lays him back again, and before returning him the instrument
10741 he has dropped, revives the fire in it with her own breath; then says to
10742 him, coaxingly:
10743
10744 ‘Sure, sure, sure! Yes, yes, yes! Now I go along with you. You was too
10745 quick for me. I see now. You come o’ purpose to take the journey. Why,
10746 I might have known it, through its standing by you so.’
10747
10748 He answers first with a laugh, and then with a passionate setting of his
10749 teeth: ‘Yes, I came on purpose. When I could not bear my life, I came to
10750 get the relief, and I got it. It WAS one! It WAS one!’ This repetition
10751 with extraordinary vehemence, and the snarl of a wolf.
10752
10753 She observes him very cautiously, as though mentally feeling her way to
10754 her next remark. It is: ‘There was a fellow-traveller, deary.’
10755
10756 ‘Ha, ha, ha!’ He breaks into a ringing laugh, or rather yell.
10757
10758 ‘To think,’ he cries, ‘how often fellow-traveller, and yet not know it!
10759 To think how many times he went the journey, and never saw the road!’
10760
10761 The woman kneels upon the floor, with her arms crossed on the coverlet of
10762 the bed, close by him, and her chin upon them. In this crouching
10763 attitude she watches him. The pipe is falling from his mouth. She puts
10764 it back, and laying her hand upon his chest, moves him slightly from side
10765 to side. Upon that he speaks, as if she had spoken.
10766
10767 ‘Yes! I always made the journey first, before the changes of colours and
10768 the great landscapes and glittering processions began. They couldn’t
10769 begin till it was off my mind. I had no room till then for anything
10770 else.’
10771
10772 Once more he lapses into silence. Once more she lays her hand upon his
10773 chest, and moves him slightly to and fro, as a cat might stimulate a
10774 half-slain mouse. Once more he speaks, as if she had spoken.
10775
10776 [Picture: Sleeping it off]
10777
10778 ‘What? I told you so. When it comes to be real at last, it is so short
10779 that it seems unreal for the first time. Hark!’
10780
10781 ‘Yes, deary. I’m listening.’
10782
10783 ‘Time and place are both at hand.’
10784
10785 He is on his feet, speaking in a whisper, and as if in the dark.
10786
10787 ‘Time, place, and fellow-traveller,’ she suggests, adopting his tone, and
10788 holding him softly by the arm.
10789
10790 ‘How could the time be at hand unless the fellow-traveller was? Hush!
10791 The journey’s made. It’s over.’
10792
10793 ‘So soon?’
10794
10795 ‘That’s what I said to you. So soon. Wait a little. This is a vision.
10796 I shall sleep it off. It has been too short and easy. I must have a
10797 better vision than this; this is the poorest of all. No struggle, no
10798 consciousness of peril, no entreaty—and yet I never saw _that_ before.’
10799 With a start.
10800
10801 ‘Saw what, deary?’
10802
10803 ‘Look at it! Look what a poor, mean, miserable thing it is! _That_ must
10804 be real. It’s over.’
10805
10806 He has accompanied this incoherence with some wild unmeaning gestures;
10807 but they trail off into the progressive inaction of stupor, and he lies a
10808 log upon the bed.
10809
10810 The woman, however, is still inquisitive. With a repetition of her
10811 cat-like action she slightly stirs his body again, and listens; stirs
10812 again, and listens; whispers to it, and listens. Finding it past all
10813 rousing for the time, she slowly gets upon her feet, with an air of
10814 disappointment, and flicks the face with the back of her hand in turning
10815 from it.
10816
10817 But she goes no further away from it than the chair upon the hearth. She
10818 sits in it, with an elbow on one of its arms, and her chin upon her hand,
10819 intent upon him. ‘I heard ye say once,’ she croaks under her breath, ‘I
10820 heard ye say once, when I was lying where you’re lying, and you were
10821 making your speculations upon me, “Unintelligible!” I heard you say so,
10822 of two more than me. But don’t ye be too sure always; don’t be ye too
10823 sure, beauty!’
10824
10825 Unwinking, cat-like, and intent, she presently adds: ‘Not so potent as it
10826 once was? Ah! Perhaps not at first. You may be more right there.
10827 Practice makes perfect. I may have learned the secret how to make ye
10828 talk, deary.’
10829
10830 He talks no more, whether or no. Twitching in an ugly way from time to
10831 time, both as to his face and limbs, he lies heavy and silent. The
10832 wretched candle burns down; the woman takes its expiring end between her
10833 fingers, lights another at it, crams the guttering frying morsel deep
10834 into the candlestick, and rams it home with the new candle, as if she
10835 were loading some ill-savoured and unseemly weapon of witchcraft; the new
10836 candle in its turn burns down; and still he lies insensible. At length
10837 what remains of the last candle is blown out, and daylight looks into the
10838 room.
10839
10840 It has not looked very long, when he sits up, chilled and shaking, slowly
10841 recovers consciousness of where he is, and makes himself ready to depart.
10842 The woman receives what he pays her with a grateful, ‘Bless ye, bless ye,
10843 deary!’ and seems, tired out, to begin making herself ready for sleep as
10844 he leaves the room.
10845
10846 But seeming may be false or true. It is false in this case; for, the
10847 moment the stairs have ceased to creak under his tread, she glides after
10848 him, muttering emphatically: ‘I’ll not miss ye twice!’
10849
10850 There is no egress from the court but by its entrance. With a weird peep
10851 from the doorway, she watches for his looking back. He does not look
10852 back before disappearing, with a wavering step. She follows him, peeps
10853 from the court, sees him still faltering on without looking back, and
10854 holds him in view.
10855
10856 He repairs to the back of Aldersgate Street, where a door immediately
10857 opens to his knocking. She crouches in another doorway, watching that
10858 one, and easily comprehending that he puts up temporarily at that house.
10859 Her patience is unexhausted by hours. For sustenance she can, and does,
10860 buy bread within a hundred yards, and milk as it is carried past her.
10861
10862 He comes forth again at noon, having changed his dress, but carrying
10863 nothing in his hand, and having nothing carried for him. He is not going
10864 back into the country, therefore, just yet. She follows him a little
10865 way, hesitates, instantaneously turns confidently, and goes straight into
10866 the house he has quitted.
10867
10868 ‘Is the gentleman from Cloisterham indoors?
10869
10870 ‘Just gone out.’
10871
10872 ‘Unlucky. When does the gentleman return to Cloisterham?’
10873
10874 ‘At six this evening.’
10875
10876 ‘Bless ye and thank ye. May the Lord prosper a business where a civil
10877 question, even from a poor soul, is so civilly answered!’
10878
10879 ‘I’ll not miss ye twice!’ repeats the poor soul in the street, and not so
10880 civilly. ‘I lost ye last, where that omnibus you got into nigh your
10881 journey’s end plied betwixt the station and the place. I wasn’t so much
10882 as certain that you even went right on to the place. Now I know ye did.
10883 My gentleman from Cloisterham, I’ll be there before ye, and bide your
10884 coming. I’ve swore my oath that I’ll not miss ye twice!’
10885
10886 Accordingly, that same evening the poor soul stands in Cloisterham High
10887 Street, looking at the many quaint gables of the Nuns’ House, and getting
10888 through the time as she best can until nine o’clock; at which hour she
10889 has reason to suppose that the arriving omnibus passengers may have some
10890 interest for her. The friendly darkness, at that hour, renders it easy
10891 for her to ascertain whether this be so or not; and it is so, for the
10892 passenger not to be missed twice arrives among the rest.
10893
10894 ‘Now let me see what becomes of you. Go on!’
10895
10896 An observation addressed to the air, and yet it might be addressed to the
10897 passenger, so compliantly does he go on along the High Street until he
10898 comes to an arched gateway, at which he unexpectedly vanishes. The poor
10899 soul quickens her pace; is swift, and close upon him entering under the
10900 gateway; but only sees a postern staircase on one side of it, and on the
10901 other side an ancient vaulted room, in which a large-headed, gray-haired
10902 gentleman is writing, under the odd circumstances of sitting open to the
10903 thoroughfare and eyeing all who pass, as if he were toll-taker of the
10904 gateway: though the way is free.
10905
10906 ‘Halloa!’ he cries in a low voice, seeing her brought to a stand-still:
10907 ‘who are you looking for?’
10908
10909 ‘There was a gentleman passed in here this minute, sir.’
10910
10911 ‘Of course there was. What do you want with him?’
10912
10913 ‘Where do he live, deary?’
10914
10915 ‘Live? Up that staircase.’
10916
10917 ‘Bless ye! Whisper. What’s his name, deary?’
10918
10919 ‘Surname Jasper, Christian name John. Mr. John Jasper.’
10920
10921 ‘Has he a calling, good gentleman?’
10922
10923 ‘Calling? Yes. Sings in the choir.’
10924
10925 ‘In the spire?’
10926
10927 ‘Choir.’
10928
10929 ‘What’s that?’
10930
10931 Mr. Datchery rises from his papers, and comes to his doorstep. ‘Do you
10932 know what a cathedral is?’ he asks, jocosely.
10933
10934 The woman nods.
10935
10936 ‘What is it?’
10937
10938 She looks puzzled, casting about in her mind to find a definition, when
10939 it occurs to her that it is easier to point out the substantial object
10940 itself, massive against the dark-blue sky and the early stars.
10941
10942 ‘That’s the answer. Go in there at seven to-morrow morning, and you may
10943 see Mr. John Jasper, and hear him too.’
10944
10945 ‘Thank ye! Thank ye!’
10946
10947 The burst of triumph in which she thanks him does not escape the notice
10948 of the single buffer of an easy temper living idly on his means. He
10949 glances at her; clasps his hands behind him, as the wont of such buffers
10950 is; and lounges along the echoing Precincts at her side.
10951
10952 ‘Or,’ he suggests, with a backward hitch of his head, ‘you can go up at
10953 once to Mr. Jasper’s rooms there.’
10954
10955 The woman eyes him with a cunning smile, and shakes her head.
10956
10957 ‘O! you don’t want to speak to him?’
10958
10959 She repeats her dumb reply, and forms with her lips a soundless ‘No.’
10960
10961 ‘You can admire him at a distance three times a day, whenever you like.
10962 It’s a long way to come for that, though.’
10963
10964 The woman looks up quickly. If Mr. Datchery thinks she is to be so
10965 induced to declare where she comes from, he is of a much easier temper
10966 than she is. But she acquits him of such an artful thought, as he
10967 lounges along, like the chartered bore of the city, with his uncovered
10968 gray hair blowing about, and his purposeless hands rattling the loose
10969 money in the pockets of his trousers.
10970
10971 The chink of the money has an attraction for her greedy ears. ‘Wouldn’t
10972 you help me to pay for my traveller’s lodging, dear gentleman, and to pay
10973 my way along? I am a poor soul, I am indeed, and troubled with a
10974 grievous cough.’
10975
10976 ‘You know the travellers’ lodging, I perceive, and are making directly
10977 for it,’ is Mr. Datchery’s bland comment, still rattling his loose money.
10978 ‘Been here often, my good woman?’
10979
10980 ‘Once in all my life.’
10981
10982 ‘Ay, ay?’
10983
10984 They have arrived at the entrance to the Monks’ Vineyard. An appropriate
10985 remembrance, presenting an exemplary model for imitation, is revived in
10986 the woman’s mind by the sight of the place. She stops at the gate, and
10987 says energetically:
10988
10989 ‘By this token, though you mayn’t believe it, That a young gentleman gave
10990 me three-and-sixpence as I was coughing my breath away on this very
10991 grass. I asked him for three-and-sixpence, and he gave it me.’
10992
10993 ‘Wasn’t it a little cool to name your sum?’ hints Mr. Datchery, still
10994 rattling. ‘Isn’t it customary to leave the amount open? Mightn’t it
10995 have had the appearance, to the young gentleman—only the appearance—that
10996 he was rather dictated to?’
10997
10998 ‘Look’ee here, deary,’ she replies, in a confidential and persuasive
10999 tone, ‘I wanted the money to lay it out on a medicine as does me good,
11000 and as I deal in. I told the young gentleman so, and he gave it me, and
11001 I laid it out honest to the last brass farden. I want to lay out the
11002 same sum in the same way now; and if you’ll give it me, I’ll lay it out
11003 honest to the last brass farden again, upon my soul!’
11004
11005 ‘What’s the medicine?’
11006
11007 ‘I’ll be honest with you beforehand, as well as after. It’s opium.’
11008
11009 Mr. Datchery, with a sudden change of countenance, gives her a sudden
11010 look.
11011
11012 ‘It’s opium, deary. Neither more nor less. And it’s like a human
11013 creetur so far, that you always hear what can be said against it, but
11014 seldom what can be said in its praise.’
11015
11016 Mr. Datchery begins very slowly to count out the sum demanded of him.
11017 Greedily watching his hands, she continues to hold forth on the great
11018 example set him.
11019
11020 ‘It was last Christmas Eve, just arter dark, the once that I was here
11021 afore, when the young gentleman gave me the three-and-six.’ Mr. Datchery
11022 stops in his counting, finds he has counted wrong, shakes his money
11023 together, and begins again.
11024
11025 ‘And the young gentleman’s name,’ she adds, ‘was Edwin.’
11026
11027 Mr. Datchery drops some money, stoops to pick it up, and reddens with the
11028 exertion as he asks:
11029
11030 ‘How do you know the young gentleman’s name?’
11031
11032 ‘I asked him for it, and he told it me. I only asked him the two
11033 questions, what was his Chris’en name, and whether he’d a sweetheart?
11034 And he answered, Edwin, and he hadn’t.’
11035
11036 Mr. Datchery pauses with the selected coins in his hand, rather as if he
11037 were falling into a brown study of their value, and couldn’t bear to part
11038 with them. The woman looks at him distrustfully, and with her anger
11039 brewing for the event of his thinking better of the gift; but he bestows
11040 it on her as if he were abstracting his mind from the sacrifice, and with
11041 many servile thanks she goes her way.
11042
11043 John Jasper’s lamp is kindled, and his lighthouse is shining when Mr.
11044 Datchery returns alone towards it. As mariners on a dangerous voyage,
11045 approaching an iron-bound coast, may look along the beams of the warning
11046 light to the haven lying beyond it that may never be reached, so Mr.
11047 Datchery’s wistful gaze is directed to this beacon, and beyond.
11048
11049 His object in now revisiting his lodging is merely to put on the hat
11050 which seems so superfluous an article in his wardrobe. It is half-past
11051 ten by the Cathedral clock when he walks out into the Precincts again; he
11052 lingers and looks about him, as though, the enchanted hour when Mr.
11053 Durdles may be stoned home having struck, he had some expectation of
11054 seeing the Imp who is appointed to the mission of stoning him.
11055
11056 In effect, that Power of Evil is abroad. Having nothing living to stone
11057 at the moment, he is discovered by Mr. Datchery in the unholy office of
11058 stoning the dead, through the railings of the churchyard. The Imp finds
11059 this a relishing and piquing pursuit; firstly, because their
11060 resting-place is announced to be sacred; and secondly, because the tall
11061 headstones are sufficiently like themselves, on their beat in the dark,
11062 to justify the delicious fancy that they are hurt when hit.
11063
11064 Mr. Datchery hails with him: ‘Halloa, Winks!’
11065
11066 He acknowledges the hail with: ‘Halloa, Dick!’ Their acquaintance
11067 seemingly having been established on a familiar footing.
11068
11069 ‘But, I say,’ he remonstrates, ‘don’t yer go a-making my name public. I
11070 never means to plead to no name, mind yer. When they says to me in the
11071 Lock-up, a-going to put me down in the book, “What’s your name?” I says
11072 to them, “Find out.” Likewise when they says, “What’s your religion?” I
11073 says, “Find out.”’
11074
11075 Which, it may be observed in passing, it would be immensely difficult for
11076 the State, however statistical, to do.
11077
11078 ‘Asides which,’ adds the boy, ‘there ain’t no family of Winkses.’
11079
11080 ‘I think there must be.’
11081
11082 ‘Yer lie, there ain’t. The travellers give me the name on account of my
11083 getting no settled sleep and being knocked up all night; whereby I gets
11084 one eye roused open afore I’ve shut the other. That’s what Winks means.
11085 Deputy’s the nighest name to indict me by: but yer wouldn’t catch me
11086 pleading to that, neither.’
11087
11088 ‘Deputy be it always, then. We two are good friends; eh, Deputy?’
11089
11090 ‘Jolly good.’
11091
11092 ‘I forgave you the debt you owed me when we first became acquainted, and
11093 many of my sixpences have come your way since; eh, Deputy?’
11094
11095 ‘Ah! And what’s more, yer ain’t no friend o’ Jarsper’s. What did he go
11096 a-histing me off my legs for?’
11097
11098 ‘What indeed! But never mind him now. A shilling of mine is going your
11099 way to-night, Deputy. You have just taken in a lodger I have been
11100 speaking to; an infirm woman with a cough.’
11101
11102 ‘Puffer,’ assents Deputy, with a shrewd leer of recognition, and smoking
11103 an imaginary pipe, with his head very much on one side and his eyes very
11104 much out of their places: ‘Hopeum Puffer.’
11105
11106 ‘What is her name?’
11107
11108 ‘’Er Royal Highness the Princess Puffer.’
11109
11110 ‘She has some other name than that; where does she live?’
11111
11112 ‘Up in London. Among the Jacks.’
11113
11114 ‘The sailors?’
11115
11116 ‘I said so; Jacks; and Chayner men: and hother Knifers.’
11117
11118 ‘I should like to know, through you, exactly where she lives.’
11119
11120 ‘All right. Give us ’old.’
11121
11122 A shilling passes; and, in that spirit of confidence which should pervade
11123 all business transactions between principals of honour, this piece of
11124 business is considered done.
11125
11126 ‘But here’s a lark!’ cries Deputy. ‘Where did yer think ‘Er Royal
11127 Highness is a-goin’ to to-morrow morning? Blest if she ain’t a-goin’ to
11128 the KIN-FREE-DER-EL!’ He greatly prolongs the word in his ecstasy, and
11129 smites his leg, and doubles himself up in a fit of shrill laughter.
11130
11131 ‘How do you know that, Deputy?’
11132
11133 ‘Cos she told me so just now. She said she must be hup and hout o’
11134 purpose. She ses, “Deputy, I must ’ave a early wash, and make myself as
11135 swell as I can, for I’m a-goin’ to take a turn at the KIN-FREE-DER-EL!”’
11136 He separates the syllables with his former zest, and, not finding his
11137 sense of the ludicrous sufficiently relieved by stamping about on the
11138 pavement, breaks into a slow and stately dance, perhaps supposed to be
11139 performed by the Dean.
11140
11141 Mr. Datchery receives the communication with a well-satisfied though
11142 pondering face, and breaks up the conference. Returning to his quaint
11143 lodging, and sitting long over the supper of bread-and-cheese and salad
11144 and ale which Mrs. Tope has left prepared for him, he still sits when his
11145 supper is finished. At length he rises, throws open the door of a corner
11146 cupboard, and refers to a few uncouth chalked strokes on its inner side.
11147
11148 ‘I like,’ says Mr. Datchery, ‘the old tavern way of keeping scores.
11149 Illegible except to the scorer. The scorer not committed, the scored
11150 debited with what is against him. Hum; ha! A very small score this; a
11151 very poor score!’
11152
11153 He sighs over the contemplation of its poverty, takes a bit of chalk from
11154 one of the cupboard shelves, and pauses with it in his hand, uncertain
11155 what addition to make to the account.
11156
11157 ‘I think a moderate stroke,’ he concludes, ‘is all I am justified in
11158 scoring up;’ so, suits the action to the word, closes the cupboard, and
11159 goes to bed.
11160
11161 A brilliant morning shines on the old city. Its antiquities and ruins
11162 are surpassingly beautiful, with a lusty ivy gleaming in the sun, and the
11163 rich trees waving in the balmy air. Changes of glorious light from
11164 moving boughs, songs of birds, scents from gardens, woods, and fields—or,
11165 rather, from the one great garden of the whole cultivated island in its
11166 yielding time—penetrate into the Cathedral, subdue its earthy odour, and
11167 preach the Resurrection and the Life. The cold stone tombs of centuries
11168 ago grow warm; and flecks of brightness dart into the sternest marble
11169 corners of the building, fluttering there like wings.
11170
11171 Comes Mr. Tope with his large keys, and yawningly unlocks and sets open.
11172 Come Mrs. Tope and attendant sweeping sprites. Come, in due time,
11173 organist and bellows-boy, peeping down from the red curtains in the loft,
11174 fearlessly flapping dust from books up at that remote elevation, and
11175 whisking it from stops and pedals. Come sundry rooks, from various
11176 quarters of the sky, back to the great tower; who may be presumed to
11177 enjoy vibration, and to know that bell and organ are going to give it
11178 them. Come a very small and straggling congregation indeed: chiefly from
11179 Minor Canon Corner and the Precincts. Come Mr. Crisparkle, fresh and
11180 bright; and his ministering brethren, not quite so fresh and bright.
11181 Come the Choir in a hurry (always in a hurry, and struggling into their
11182 nightgowns at the last moment, like children shirking bed), and comes
11183 John Jasper leading their line. Last of all comes Mr. Datchery into a
11184 stall, one of a choice empty collection very much at his service, and
11185 glancing about him for Her Royal Highness the Princess Puffer.
11186
11187 The service is pretty well advanced before Mr. Datchery can discern Her
11188 Royal Highness. But by that time he has made her out, in the shade. She
11189 is behind a pillar, carefully withdrawn from the Choir-master’s view, but
11190 regards him with the closest attention. All unconscious of her presence,
11191 he chants and sings. She grins when he is most musically fervid,
11192 and—yes, Mr. Datchery sees her do it!—shakes her fist at him behind the
11193 pillar’s friendly shelter.
11194
11195 Mr. Datchery looks again, to convince himself. Yes, again! As ugly and
11196 withered as one of the fantastic carvings on the under brackets of the
11197 stall seats, as malignant as the Evil One, as hard as the big brass eagle
11198 holding the sacred books upon his wings (and, according to the sculptor’s
11199 representation of his ferocious attributes, not at all converted by
11200 them), she hugs herself in her lean arms, and then shakes both fists at
11201 the leader of the Choir.
11202
11203 And at that moment, outside the grated door of the Choir, having eluded
11204 the vigilance of Mr. Tope by shifty resources in which he is an adept,
11205 Deputy peeps, sharp-eyed, through the bars, and stares astounded from the
11206 threatener to the threatened.
11207
11208 The service comes to an end, and the servitors disperse to breakfast.
11209 Mr. Datchery accosts his last new acquaintance outside, when the Choir
11210 (as much in a hurry to get their bedgowns off, as they were but now to
11211 get them on) have scuffled away.
11212
11213 ‘Well, mistress. Good morning. You have seen him?’
11214
11215 ‘_I’ve_ seen him, deary; _I’ve_ seen him!’
11216
11217 ‘And you know him?’
11218
11219 ‘Know him! Better far than all the Reverend Parsons put together know
11220 him.’
11221
11222 Mrs. Tope’s care has spread a very neat, clean breakfast ready for her
11223 lodger. Before sitting down to it, he opens his corner-cupboard door;
11224 takes his bit of chalk from its shelf; adds one thick line to the score,
11225 extending from the top of the cupboard door to the bottom; and then falls
11226 to with an appetite.
11227
11228
11229
11230
11231 APPENDIX: FRAGMENT OF “THE MYSTERY OF EDWIN DROOD”
11232
11233
11234 When Forster was just finishing his biography of Dickens, he found among
11235 the leaves of one of the novelist’s other manuscripts certain loose slips
11236 in his writing, “on paper only half the size of that used for the tale,
11237 so cramped, interlined, and blotted as to be nearly illegible.” These
11238 proved, upon examination, to contain a suggested chapter for _Edwin
11239 Drood_, in which Sapsea, the auctioneer, appears as the principal figure,
11240 surrounded by a group of characters new to the story. That chapter,
11241 being among the last things Dickens wrote, seems to contain so much of
11242 interest that it may be well to reprint it here.—ED.
11243
11244
11245
11246 HOW MR. SAPSEA CEASED TO BE A MEMBER OF THE EIGHT CLUB
11247 TOLD BY HIMSELF
11248
11249
11250 Wishing to take the air, I proceeded by a circuitous route to the Club,
11251 it being our weekly night of meeting. I found that we mustered our full
11252 strength. We were enrolled under the denomination of the Eight Club. We
11253 were eight in number; we met at eight o’clock during eight months of the
11254 year; we played eight games of four-handed cribbage, at eightpence the
11255 game; our frugal supper was composed of eight rolls, eight mutton chops,
11256 eight pork sausages, eight baked potatoes, eight marrow-bones, with eight
11257 toasts, and eight bottles of ale. There may, or may not, be a certain
11258 harmony of colour in the ruling idea of this (to adopt a phrase of our
11259 lively neighbours) reunion. It was a little idea of mine.
11260
11261 [Picture: Facsimile of a page of the manuscript of “The Mystery of Edwin
11262 Drood”]
11263
11264 A somewhat popular member of the Eight Club, was a member by the name of
11265 Kimber. By profession, a dancing-master. A commonplace, hopeful sort of
11266 man, wholly destitute of dignity or knowledge of the world.
11267
11268 As I entered the Club-room, Kimber was making the remark: “And he still
11269 half-believes him to be very high in the Church.”
11270
11271 In the act of hanging up my hat on the eighth peg by the door, I caught
11272 Kimber’s visual ray. He lowered it, and passed a remark on the next
11273 change of the moon. I did not take particular notice of this at the
11274 moment, because the world was often pleased to be a little shy of
11275 ecclesiastical topics in my presence. For I felt that I was picked out
11276 (though perhaps only through a coincidence) to a certain extent to
11277 represent what I call our glorious constitution in Church and State. The
11278 phrase may be objected to by cautious minds; but I own to it as mine. I
11279 threw it off in argument some little time back. I said: “OUR GLORIOUS
11280 CONSTITUTION in CHURCH and STATE.”
11281
11282 Another member of the Eight Club was Peartree; also member of the Royal
11283 College of Surgeons. Mr. Peartree is not accountable to me for his
11284 opinions, and I say no more of them here than that he attends the poor
11285 gratis whenever they want him, and is not the parish doctor. Mr.
11286 Peartree may justify it to the grasp of _his_ mind thus to do his
11287 republican utmost to bring an appointed officer into contempt. Suffice
11288 it that Mr. Peartree can never justify it to the grasp of _mine_.
11289
11290 Between Peartree and Kimber there was a sickly sort of feeble-minded
11291 alliance. It came under my particular notice when I sold off Kimber by
11292 auction. (Goods taken in execution.) He was a widower in a white
11293 under-waistcoat, and slight shoes with bows, and had two daughters not
11294 ill-looking. Indeed the reverse. Both daughters taught dancing in
11295 scholastic establishments for Young Ladies—had done so at Mrs. Sapsea’s;
11296 nay, Twinkleton’s—and both, in giving lessons, presented the unwomanly
11297 spectacle of having little fiddles tucked under their chins. In spite of
11298 which, the younger one might, if I am correctly informed—I will raise the
11299 veil so far as to say I KNOW she might—have soared for life from this
11300 degrading taint, but for having the class of mind allotted to what I call
11301 the common herd, and being so incredibly devoid of veneration as to
11302 become painfully ludicrous.
11303
11304 When I sold off Kimber without reserve, Peartree (as poor as he can hold
11305 together) had several prime household lots knocked down to him. I am not
11306 to be blinded; and of course it was as plain to me what he was going to
11307 do with them, as it was that he was a brown hulking sort of revolutionary
11308 subject who had been in India with the soldiers, and ought (for the sake
11309 of society) to have his neck broke. I saw the lots shortly afterwards in
11310 Kimber’s lodgings—through the window—and I easily made out that there had
11311 been a sneaking pretence of lending them till better times. A man with a
11312 smaller knowledge of the world than myself might have been led to suspect
11313 that Kimber had held back money from his creditors, and fraudulently
11314 bought the goods. But, besides that I knew for certain he had no money,
11315 I knew that this would involve a species of forethought not to be made
11316 compatible with the frivolity of a caperer, inoculating other people with
11317 capering, for his bread.
11318
11319 As it was the first time I had seen either of those two since the sale, I
11320 kept myself in what I call Abeyance. When selling him up, I had
11321 delivered a few remarks—shall I say a little homily?—concerning Kimber,
11322 which the world did regard as more than usually worth notice. I had come
11323 up into my pulpit, it was said, uncommonly like—and a murmur of
11324 recognition had repeated his (I will not name whose) title, before I
11325 spoke. I had then gone on to say that all present would find, in the
11326 first page of the catalogue that was lying before them, in the last
11327 paragraph before the first lot, the following words: “Sold in pursuance
11328 of a writ of execution issued by a creditor.” I had then proceeded to
11329 remind my friends, that however frivolous, not to say contemptible, the
11330 business by which a man got his goods together, still his goods were as
11331 dear to him, and as cheap to society (if sold without reserve), as though
11332 his pursuits had been of a character that would bear serious
11333 contemplation. I had then divided my text (if I may be allowed so to
11334 call it) into three heads: firstly, Sold; secondly, In pursuance of a
11335 writ of execution; thirdly, Issued by a creditor; with a few moral
11336 reflections on each, and winding up with, “Now to the first lot” in a
11337 manner that was complimented when I afterwards mingled with my hearers.
11338
11339 So, not being certain on what terms I and Kimber stood, I was grave, I
11340 was chilling. Kimber, however, moving to me, I moved to Kimber. (I was
11341 the creditor who had issued the writ. Not that it matters.)
11342
11343 “I was alluding, Mr. Sapsea,” said Kimber, “to a stranger who entered
11344 into conversation with me in the street as I came to the Club. He had
11345 been speaking to you just before, it seemed, by the churchyard; and
11346 though you had told him who you were, I could hardly persuade him that
11347 you were not high in the Church.”
11348
11349 “Idiot?” said Peartree.
11350
11351 “Ass!” said Kimber.
11352
11353 “Idiot and Ass!” said the other five members.
11354
11355 “Idiot and Ass, gentlemen,” I remonstrated, looking around me, “are
11356 strong expressions to apply to a young man of good appearance and
11357 address.” My generosity was roused; I own it.
11358
11359 “You’ll admit that he must be a Fool,” said Peartree.
11360
11361 “You can’t deny that he must be a Blockhead,” said Kimber.
11362
11363 Their tone of disgust amounted to being offensive. Why should the young
11364 man be so calumniated? What had he done? He had only made an innocent
11365 and natural mistake. I controlled my generous indignation, and said so.
11366
11367 “Natural?” repeated Kimber. “_He’s_ a Natural!”
11368
11369 The remaining six members of the Eight Club laughed unanimously. It
11370 stung me. It was a scornful laugh. My anger was roused in behalf of an
11371 absent, friendless stranger. I rose (for I had been sitting down).
11372
11373 “Gentlemen,” I said with dignity, “I will not remain one of this Club
11374 allowing opprobrium to be cast on an unoffending person in his absence.
11375 I will not so violate what I call the sacred rites of hospitality.
11376 Gentlemen, until you know how to behave yourselves better, I leave you.
11377 Gentlemen, until then I withdraw, from this place of meeting, whatever
11378 personal qualifications I may have brought into it. Gentlemen, until
11379 then you cease to be the Eight Club, and must make the best you can of
11380 becoming the Seven.”
11381
11382 I put on my hat and retired. As I went down stairs I distinctly heard
11383 them give a suppressed cheer. Such is the power of demeanour and
11384 knowledge of mankind. I had forced it out of them.
11385
11386
11387
11388 II
11389
11390
11391 Whom should I meet in the street, within a few yards of the door of the
11392 inn where the Club was held, but the self-same young man whoso cause I
11393 had felt it my duty so warmly—and I will add so disinterestedly—to take
11394 up.
11395
11396 “Is it Mr. Sapsea,” he said doubtfully, “or is it—”
11397
11398 “It is Mr. Sapsea,” I replied.
11399
11400 “Pardon me, Mr. Sapsea; you appear warm, sir.”
11401
11402 “I have been warm,” I said, “and on your account.” Having stated the
11403 circumstances at some length (my generosity almost overpowered him), I
11404 asked him his name.
11405
11406 “Mr. Sapsea,” he answered, looking down, “your penetration is so acute,
11407 your glance into the souls of your fellow men is so penetrating, that if
11408 I was hardly enough to deny that my name is Poker, what would it avail
11409 me?”
11410
11411 I don’t know that I had quite exactly made out to a fraction that his
11412 name _was_ Poker, but I daresay I had been pretty near doing it.
11413
11414 “Well, well,” said I, trying to put him at his ease by nodding my head in
11415 a soothing way. “Your name is Poker, and there is no harm in being named
11416 Poker.”
11417
11418 “Oh, Mr. Sapsea!” cried the young man, in a very well-behaved manner.
11419 “Bless you for those words!” He then, as if ashamed of having given way
11420 to his feelings, looked down again.
11421
11422 “Come Poker,” said I, “let me hear more about you. Tell me. Where are
11423 you going to, Poker? and where do you come from?”
11424
11425 “Ah Mr. Sapsea!” exclaimed the young man. “Disguise from you is
11426 impossible. You know already that I come from somewhere, and am going
11427 somewhere else. If I was to deny it, what would it avail me?”
11428
11429 “Then don’t deny it,” was my remark.
11430
11431 “Or,” pursued Poker, in a kind of despondent rapture, “or if I was to
11432 deny that I came to this town to see and hear you, sir, what would it
11433 avail me? Or if I was to deny—”